Addted table of content and links
[gender-roles-text-analysis.git] / 1342.txt
1 PRIDE AND PREJUDICE
2
3 By Jane Austen
4
5
6
7 Chapter 1
8
9
10 It is a truth universally acknowledged, that a single man in possession
11 of a good fortune, must be in want of a wife.
12
13 However little known the feelings or views of such a man may be on his
14 first entering a neighbourhood, this truth is so well fixed in the minds
15 of the surrounding families, that he is considered the rightful property
16 of some one or other of their daughters.
17
18 "My dear Mr. Bennet," said his lady to him one day, "have you heard that
19 Netherfield Park is let at last?"
20
21 Mr. Bennet replied that he had not.
22
23 "But it is," returned she; "for Mrs. Long has just been here, and she
24 told me all about it."
25
26 Mr. Bennet made no answer.
27
28 "Do you not want to know who has taken it?" cried his wife impatiently.
29
30 "_You_ want to tell me, and I have no objection to hearing it."
31
32 This was invitation enough.
33
34 "Why, my dear, you must know, Mrs. Long says that Netherfield is taken
35 by a young man of large fortune from the north of England; that he came
36 down on Monday in a chaise and four to see the place, and was so much
37 delighted with it, that he agreed with Mr. Morris immediately; that he
38 is to take possession before Michaelmas, and some of his servants are to
39 be in the house by the end of next week."
40
41 "What is his name?"
42
43 "Bingley."
44
45 "Is he married or single?"
46
47 "Oh! Single, my dear, to be sure! A single man of large fortune; four or
48 five thousand a year. What a fine thing for our girls!"
49
50 "How so? How can it affect them?"
51
52 "My dear Mr. Bennet," replied his wife, "how can you be so tiresome! You
53 must know that I am thinking of his marrying one of them."
54
55 "Is that his design in settling here?"
56
57 "Design! Nonsense, how can you talk so! But it is very likely that he
58 _may_ fall in love with one of them, and therefore you must visit him as
59 soon as he comes."
60
61 "I see no occasion for that. You and the girls may go, or you may send
62 them by themselves, which perhaps will be still better, for as you are
63 as handsome as any of them, Mr. Bingley may like you the best of the
64 party."
65
66 "My dear, you flatter me. I certainly _have_ had my share of beauty, but
67 I do not pretend to be anything extraordinary now. When a woman has five
68 grown-up daughters, she ought to give over thinking of her own beauty."
69
70 "In such cases, a woman has not often much beauty to think of."
71
72 "But, my dear, you must indeed go and see Mr. Bingley when he comes into
73 the neighbourhood."
74
75 "It is more than I engage for, I assure you."
76
77 "But consider your daughters. Only think what an establishment it would
78 be for one of them. Sir William and Lady Lucas are determined to
79 go, merely on that account, for in general, you know, they visit no
80 newcomers. Indeed you must go, for it will be impossible for _us_ to
81 visit him if you do not."
82
83 "You are over-scrupulous, surely. I dare say Mr. Bingley will be very
84 glad to see you; and I will send a few lines by you to assure him of my
85 hearty consent to his marrying whichever he chooses of the girls; though
86 I must throw in a good word for my little Lizzy."
87
88 "I desire you will do no such thing. Lizzy is not a bit better than the
89 others; and I am sure she is not half so handsome as Jane, nor half so
90 good-humoured as Lydia. But you are always giving _her_ the preference."
91
92 "They have none of them much to recommend them," replied he; "they are
93 all silly and ignorant like other girls; but Lizzy has something more of
94 quickness than her sisters."
95
96 "Mr. Bennet, how _can_ you abuse your own children in such a way? You
97 take delight in vexing me. You have no compassion for my poor nerves."
98
99 "You mistake me, my dear. I have a high respect for your nerves. They
100 are my old friends. I have heard you mention them with consideration
101 these last twenty years at least."
102
103 "Ah, you do not know what I suffer."
104
105 "But I hope you will get over it, and live to see many young men of four
106 thousand a year come into the neighbourhood."
107
108 "It will be no use to us, if twenty such should come, since you will not
109 visit them."
110
111 "Depend upon it, my dear, that when there are twenty, I will visit them
112 all."
113
114 Mr. Bennet was so odd a mixture of quick parts, sarcastic humour,
115 reserve, and caprice, that the experience of three-and-twenty years had
116 been insufficient to make his wife understand his character. _Her_ mind
117 was less difficult to develop. She was a woman of mean understanding,
118 little information, and uncertain temper. When she was discontented,
119 she fancied herself nervous. The business of her life was to get her
120 daughters married; its solace was visiting and news.
121
122
123
124 Chapter 2
125
126
127 Mr. Bennet was among the earliest of those who waited on Mr. Bingley. He
128 had always intended to visit him, though to the last always assuring
129 his wife that he should not go; and till the evening after the visit was
130 paid she had no knowledge of it. It was then disclosed in the following
131 manner. Observing his second daughter employed in trimming a hat, he
132 suddenly addressed her with:
133
134 "I hope Mr. Bingley will like it, Lizzy."
135
136 "We are not in a way to know _what_ Mr. Bingley likes," said her mother
137 resentfully, "since we are not to visit."
138
139 "But you forget, mamma," said Elizabeth, "that we shall meet him at the
140 assemblies, and that Mrs. Long promised to introduce him."
141
142 "I do not believe Mrs. Long will do any such thing. She has two nieces
143 of her own. She is a selfish, hypocritical woman, and I have no opinion
144 of her."
145
146 "No more have I," said Mr. Bennet; "and I am glad to find that you do
147 not depend on her serving you."
148
149 Mrs. Bennet deigned not to make any reply, but, unable to contain
150 herself, began scolding one of her daughters.
151
152 "Don't keep coughing so, Kitty, for Heaven's sake! Have a little
153 compassion on my nerves. You tear them to pieces."
154
155 "Kitty has no discretion in her coughs," said her father; "she times
156 them ill."
157
158 "I do not cough for my own amusement," replied Kitty fretfully. "When is
159 your next ball to be, Lizzy?"
160
161 "To-morrow fortnight."
162
163 "Aye, so it is," cried her mother, "and Mrs. Long does not come back
164 till the day before; so it will be impossible for her to introduce him,
165 for she will not know him herself."
166
167 "Then, my dear, you may have the advantage of your friend, and introduce
168 Mr. Bingley to _her_."
169
170 "Impossible, Mr. Bennet, impossible, when I am not acquainted with him
171 myself; how can you be so teasing?"
172
173 "I honour your circumspection. A fortnight's acquaintance is certainly
174 very little. One cannot know what a man really is by the end of a
175 fortnight. But if _we_ do not venture somebody else will; and after all,
176 Mrs. Long and her neices must stand their chance; and, therefore, as
177 she will think it an act of kindness, if you decline the office, I will
178 take it on myself."
179
180 The girls stared at their father. Mrs. Bennet said only, "Nonsense,
181 nonsense!"
182
183 "What can be the meaning of that emphatic exclamation?" cried he. "Do
184 you consider the forms of introduction, and the stress that is laid on
185 them, as nonsense? I cannot quite agree with you _there_. What say you,
186 Mary? For you are a young lady of deep reflection, I know, and read
187 great books and make extracts."
188
189 Mary wished to say something sensible, but knew not how.
190
191 "While Mary is adjusting her ideas," he continued, "let us return to Mr.
192 Bingley."
193
194 "I am sick of Mr. Bingley," cried his wife.
195
196 "I am sorry to hear _that_; but why did not you tell me that before? If
197 I had known as much this morning I certainly would not have called
198 on him. It is very unlucky; but as I have actually paid the visit, we
199 cannot escape the acquaintance now."
200
201 The astonishment of the ladies was just what he wished; that of Mrs.
202 Bennet perhaps surpassing the rest; though, when the first tumult of joy
203 was over, she began to declare that it was what she had expected all the
204 while.
205
206 "How good it was in you, my dear Mr. Bennet! But I knew I should
207 persuade you at last. I was sure you loved your girls too well to
208 neglect such an acquaintance. Well, how pleased I am! and it is such a
209 good joke, too, that you should have gone this morning and never said a
210 word about it till now."
211
212 "Now, Kitty, you may cough as much as you choose," said Mr. Bennet; and,
213 as he spoke, he left the room, fatigued with the raptures of his wife.
214
215 "What an excellent father you have, girls!" said she, when the door was
216 shut. "I do not know how you will ever make him amends for his kindness;
217 or me, either, for that matter. At our time of life it is not so
218 pleasant, I can tell you, to be making new acquaintances every day; but
219 for your sakes, we would do anything. Lydia, my love, though you _are_
220 the youngest, I dare say Mr. Bingley will dance with you at the next
221 ball."
222
223 "Oh!" said Lydia stoutly, "I am not afraid; for though I _am_ the
224 youngest, I'm the tallest."
225
226 The rest of the evening was spent in conjecturing how soon he would
227 return Mr. Bennet's visit, and determining when they should ask him to
228 dinner.
229
230
231
232 Chapter 3
233
234
235 Not all that Mrs. Bennet, however, with the assistance of her five
236 daughters, could ask on the subject, was sufficient to draw from her
237 husband any satisfactory description of Mr. Bingley. They attacked him
238 in various ways--with barefaced questions, ingenious suppositions, and
239 distant surmises; but he eluded the skill of them all, and they were at
240 last obliged to accept the second-hand intelligence of their neighbour,
241 Lady Lucas. Her report was highly favourable. Sir William had been
242 delighted with him. He was quite young, wonderfully handsome, extremely
243 agreeable, and, to crown the whole, he meant to be at the next assembly
244 with a large party. Nothing could be more delightful! To be fond of
245 dancing was a certain step towards falling in love; and very lively
246 hopes of Mr. Bingley's heart were entertained.
247
248 "If I can but see one of my daughters happily settled at Netherfield,"
249 said Mrs. Bennet to her husband, "and all the others equally well
250 married, I shall have nothing to wish for."
251
252 In a few days Mr. Bingley returned Mr. Bennet's visit, and sat about
253 ten minutes with him in his library. He had entertained hopes of being
254 admitted to a sight of the young ladies, of whose beauty he had
255 heard much; but he saw only the father. The ladies were somewhat more
256 fortunate, for they had the advantage of ascertaining from an upper
257 window that he wore a blue coat, and rode a black horse.
258
259 An invitation to dinner was soon afterwards dispatched; and already
260 had Mrs. Bennet planned the courses that were to do credit to her
261 housekeeping, when an answer arrived which deferred it all. Mr. Bingley
262 was obliged to be in town the following day, and, consequently, unable
263 to accept the honour of their invitation, etc. Mrs. Bennet was quite
264 disconcerted. She could not imagine what business he could have in town
265 so soon after his arrival in Hertfordshire; and she began to fear that
266 he might be always flying about from one place to another, and never
267 settled at Netherfield as he ought to be. Lady Lucas quieted her fears
268 a little by starting the idea of his being gone to London only to get
269 a large party for the ball; and a report soon followed that Mr. Bingley
270 was to bring twelve ladies and seven gentlemen with him to the assembly.
271 The girls grieved over such a number of ladies, but were comforted the
272 day before the ball by hearing, that instead of twelve he brought only
273 six with him from London--his five sisters and a cousin. And when
274 the party entered the assembly room it consisted of only five
275 altogether--Mr. Bingley, his two sisters, the husband of the eldest, and
276 another young man.
277
278 Mr. Bingley was good-looking and gentlemanlike; he had a pleasant
279 countenance, and easy, unaffected manners. His sisters were fine women,
280 with an air of decided fashion. His brother-in-law, Mr. Hurst, merely
281 looked the gentleman; but his friend Mr. Darcy soon drew the attention
282 of the room by his fine, tall person, handsome features, noble mien, and
283 the report which was in general circulation within five minutes
284 after his entrance, of his having ten thousand a year. The gentlemen
285 pronounced him to be a fine figure of a man, the ladies declared he
286 was much handsomer than Mr. Bingley, and he was looked at with great
287 admiration for about half the evening, till his manners gave a disgust
288 which turned the tide of his popularity; for he was discovered to be
289 proud; to be above his company, and above being pleased; and not all
290 his large estate in Derbyshire could then save him from having a most
291 forbidding, disagreeable countenance, and being unworthy to be compared
292 with his friend.
293
294 Mr. Bingley had soon made himself acquainted with all the principal
295 people in the room; he was lively and unreserved, danced every dance,
296 was angry that the ball closed so early, and talked of giving
297 one himself at Netherfield. Such amiable qualities must speak for
298 themselves. What a contrast between him and his friend! Mr. Darcy danced
299 only once with Mrs. Hurst and once with Miss Bingley, declined being
300 introduced to any other lady, and spent the rest of the evening in
301 walking about the room, speaking occasionally to one of his own party.
302 His character was decided. He was the proudest, most disagreeable man
303 in the world, and everybody hoped that he would never come there again.
304 Amongst the most violent against him was Mrs. Bennet, whose dislike of
305 his general behaviour was sharpened into particular resentment by his
306 having slighted one of her daughters.
307
308 Elizabeth Bennet had been obliged, by the scarcity of gentlemen, to sit
309 down for two dances; and during part of that time, Mr. Darcy had been
310 standing near enough for her to hear a conversation between him and Mr.
311 Bingley, who came from the dance for a few minutes, to press his friend
312 to join it.
313
314 "Come, Darcy," said he, "I must have you dance. I hate to see you
315 standing about by yourself in this stupid manner. You had much better
316 dance."
317
318 "I certainly shall not. You know how I detest it, unless I am
319 particularly acquainted with my partner. At such an assembly as this
320 it would be insupportable. Your sisters are engaged, and there is not
321 another woman in the room whom it would not be a punishment to me to
322 stand up with."
323
324 "I would not be so fastidious as you are," cried Mr. Bingley, "for a
325 kingdom! Upon my honour, I never met with so many pleasant girls in
326 my life as I have this evening; and there are several of them you see
327 uncommonly pretty."
328
329 "_You_ are dancing with the only handsome girl in the room," said Mr.
330 Darcy, looking at the eldest Miss Bennet.
331
332 "Oh! She is the most beautiful creature I ever beheld! But there is one
333 of her sisters sitting down just behind you, who is very pretty, and I
334 dare say very agreeable. Do let me ask my partner to introduce you."
335
336 "Which do you mean?" and turning round he looked for a moment at
337 Elizabeth, till catching her eye, he withdrew his own and coldly said:
338 "She is tolerable, but not handsome enough to tempt _me_; I am in no
339 humour at present to give consequence to young ladies who are slighted
340 by other men. You had better return to your partner and enjoy her
341 smiles, for you are wasting your time with me."
342
343 Mr. Bingley followed his advice. Mr. Darcy walked off; and Elizabeth
344 remained with no very cordial feelings toward him. She told the story,
345 however, with great spirit among her friends; for she had a lively,
346 playful disposition, which delighted in anything ridiculous.
347
348 The evening altogether passed off pleasantly to the whole family. Mrs.
349 Bennet had seen her eldest daughter much admired by the Netherfield
350 party. Mr. Bingley had danced with her twice, and she had been
351 distinguished by his sisters. Jane was as much gratified by this as
352 her mother could be, though in a quieter way. Elizabeth felt Jane's
353 pleasure. Mary had heard herself mentioned to Miss Bingley as the most
354 accomplished girl in the neighbourhood; and Catherine and Lydia had been
355 fortunate enough never to be without partners, which was all that they
356 had yet learnt to care for at a ball. They returned, therefore, in good
357 spirits to Longbourn, the village where they lived, and of which they
358 were the principal inhabitants. They found Mr. Bennet still up. With
359 a book he was regardless of time; and on the present occasion he had a
360 good deal of curiosity as to the event of an evening which had raised
361 such splendid expectations. He had rather hoped that his wife's views on
362 the stranger would be disappointed; but he soon found out that he had a
363 different story to hear.
364
365 "Oh! my dear Mr. Bennet," as she entered the room, "we have had a most
366 delightful evening, a most excellent ball. I wish you had been there.
367 Jane was so admired, nothing could be like it. Everybody said how well
368 she looked; and Mr. Bingley thought her quite beautiful, and danced with
369 her twice! Only think of _that_, my dear; he actually danced with her
370 twice! and she was the only creature in the room that he asked a second
371 time. First of all, he asked Miss Lucas. I was so vexed to see him stand
372 up with her! But, however, he did not admire her at all; indeed, nobody
373 can, you know; and he seemed quite struck with Jane as she was going
374 down the dance. So he inquired who she was, and got introduced, and
375 asked her for the two next. Then the two third he danced with Miss King,
376 and the two fourth with Maria Lucas, and the two fifth with Jane again,
377 and the two sixth with Lizzy, and the _Boulanger_--"
378
379 "If he had had any compassion for _me_," cried her husband impatiently,
380 "he would not have danced half so much! For God's sake, say no more of
381 his partners. Oh that he had sprained his ankle in the first dance!"
382
383 "Oh! my dear, I am quite delighted with him. He is so excessively
384 handsome! And his sisters are charming women. I never in my life saw
385 anything more elegant than their dresses. I dare say the lace upon Mrs.
386 Hurst's gown--"
387
388 Here she was interrupted again. Mr. Bennet protested against any
389 description of finery. She was therefore obliged to seek another branch
390 of the subject, and related, with much bitterness of spirit and some
391 exaggeration, the shocking rudeness of Mr. Darcy.
392
393 "But I can assure you," she added, "that Lizzy does not lose much by not
394 suiting _his_ fancy; for he is a most disagreeable, horrid man, not at
395 all worth pleasing. So high and so conceited that there was no enduring
396 him! He walked here, and he walked there, fancying himself so very
397 great! Not handsome enough to dance with! I wish you had been there, my
398 dear, to have given him one of your set-downs. I quite detest the man."
399
400
401
402 Chapter 4
403
404
405 When Jane and Elizabeth were alone, the former, who had been cautious in
406 her praise of Mr. Bingley before, expressed to her sister just how very
407 much she admired him.
408
409 "He is just what a young man ought to be," said she, "sensible,
410 good-humoured, lively; and I never saw such happy manners!--so much
411 ease, with such perfect good breeding!"
412
413 "He is also handsome," replied Elizabeth, "which a young man ought
414 likewise to be, if he possibly can. His character is thereby complete."
415
416 "I was very much flattered by his asking me to dance a second time. I
417 did not expect such a compliment."
418
419 "Did not you? I did for you. But that is one great difference between
420 us. Compliments always take _you_ by surprise, and _me_ never. What
421 could be more natural than his asking you again? He could not help
422 seeing that you were about five times as pretty as every other woman
423 in the room. No thanks to his gallantry for that. Well, he certainly is
424 very agreeable, and I give you leave to like him. You have liked many a
425 stupider person."
426
427 "Dear Lizzy!"
428
429 "Oh! you are a great deal too apt, you know, to like people in general.
430 You never see a fault in anybody. All the world are good and agreeable
431 in your eyes. I never heard you speak ill of a human being in your
432 life."
433
434 "I would not wish to be hasty in censuring anyone; but I always speak
435 what I think."
436
437 "I know you do; and it is _that_ which makes the wonder. With _your_
438 good sense, to be so honestly blind to the follies and nonsense of
439 others! Affectation of candour is common enough--one meets with it
440 everywhere. But to be candid without ostentation or design--to take the
441 good of everybody's character and make it still better, and say nothing
442 of the bad--belongs to you alone. And so you like this man's sisters,
443 too, do you? Their manners are not equal to his."
444
445 "Certainly not--at first. But they are very pleasing women when you
446 converse with them. Miss Bingley is to live with her brother, and keep
447 his house; and I am much mistaken if we shall not find a very charming
448 neighbour in her."
449
450 Elizabeth listened in silence, but was not convinced; their behaviour at
451 the assembly had not been calculated to please in general; and with more
452 quickness of observation and less pliancy of temper than her sister,
453 and with a judgement too unassailed by any attention to herself, she
454 was very little disposed to approve them. They were in fact very fine
455 ladies; not deficient in good humour when they were pleased, nor in the
456 power of making themselves agreeable when they chose it, but proud and
457 conceited. They were rather handsome, had been educated in one of the
458 first private seminaries in town, had a fortune of twenty thousand
459 pounds, were in the habit of spending more than they ought, and of
460 associating with people of rank, and were therefore in every respect
461 entitled to think well of themselves, and meanly of others. They were of
462 a respectable family in the north of England; a circumstance more deeply
463 impressed on their memories than that their brother's fortune and their
464 own had been acquired by trade.
465
466 Mr. Bingley inherited property to the amount of nearly a hundred
467 thousand pounds from his father, who had intended to purchase an
468 estate, but did not live to do it. Mr. Bingley intended it likewise, and
469 sometimes made choice of his county; but as he was now provided with a
470 good house and the liberty of a manor, it was doubtful to many of those
471 who best knew the easiness of his temper, whether he might not spend the
472 remainder of his days at Netherfield, and leave the next generation to
473 purchase.
474
475 His sisters were anxious for his having an estate of his own; but,
476 though he was now only established as a tenant, Miss Bingley was by no
477 means unwilling to preside at his table--nor was Mrs. Hurst, who had
478 married a man of more fashion than fortune, less disposed to consider
479 his house as her home when it suited her. Mr. Bingley had not been of
480 age two years, when he was tempted by an accidental recommendation
481 to look at Netherfield House. He did look at it, and into it for
482 half-an-hour--was pleased with the situation and the principal
483 rooms, satisfied with what the owner said in its praise, and took it
484 immediately.
485
486 Between him and Darcy there was a very steady friendship, in spite of
487 great opposition of character. Bingley was endeared to Darcy by the
488 easiness, openness, and ductility of his temper, though no disposition
489 could offer a greater contrast to his own, and though with his own he
490 never appeared dissatisfied. On the strength of Darcy's regard, Bingley
491 had the firmest reliance, and of his judgement the highest opinion.
492 In understanding, Darcy was the superior. Bingley was by no means
493 deficient, but Darcy was clever. He was at the same time haughty,
494 reserved, and fastidious, and his manners, though well-bred, were not
495 inviting. In that respect his friend had greatly the advantage. Bingley
496 was sure of being liked wherever he appeared, Darcy was continually
497 giving offense.
498
499 The manner in which they spoke of the Meryton assembly was sufficiently
500 characteristic. Bingley had never met with more pleasant people or
501 prettier girls in his life; everybody had been most kind and attentive
502 to him; there had been no formality, no stiffness; he had soon felt
503 acquainted with all the room; and, as to Miss Bennet, he could not
504 conceive an angel more beautiful. Darcy, on the contrary, had seen a
505 collection of people in whom there was little beauty and no fashion, for
506 none of whom he had felt the smallest interest, and from none received
507 either attention or pleasure. Miss Bennet he acknowledged to be pretty,
508 but she smiled too much.
509
510 Mrs. Hurst and her sister allowed it to be so--but still they admired
511 her and liked her, and pronounced her to be a sweet girl, and one
512 whom they would not object to know more of. Miss Bennet was therefore
513 established as a sweet girl, and their brother felt authorized by such
514 commendation to think of her as he chose.
515
516
517
518 Chapter 5
519
520
521 Within a short walk of Longbourn lived a family with whom the Bennets
522 were particularly intimate. Sir William Lucas had been formerly in trade
523 in Meryton, where he had made a tolerable fortune, and risen to the
524 honour of knighthood by an address to the king during his mayoralty.
525 The distinction had perhaps been felt too strongly. It had given him a
526 disgust to his business, and to his residence in a small market town;
527 and, in quitting them both, he had removed with his family to a house
528 about a mile from Meryton, denominated from that period Lucas Lodge,
529 where he could think with pleasure of his own importance, and,
530 unshackled by business, occupy himself solely in being civil to all
531 the world. For, though elated by his rank, it did not render him
532 supercilious; on the contrary, he was all attention to everybody. By
533 nature inoffensive, friendly, and obliging, his presentation at St.
534 James's had made him courteous.
535
536 Lady Lucas was a very good kind of woman, not too clever to be a
537 valuable neighbour to Mrs. Bennet. They had several children. The eldest
538 of them, a sensible, intelligent young woman, about twenty-seven, was
539 Elizabeth's intimate friend.
540
541 That the Miss Lucases and the Miss Bennets should meet to talk over
542 a ball was absolutely necessary; and the morning after the assembly
543 brought the former to Longbourn to hear and to communicate.
544
545 "_You_ began the evening well, Charlotte," said Mrs. Bennet with civil
546 self-command to Miss Lucas. "_You_ were Mr. Bingley's first choice."
547
548 "Yes; but he seemed to like his second better."
549
550 "Oh! you mean Jane, I suppose, because he danced with her twice. To be
551 sure that _did_ seem as if he admired her--indeed I rather believe he
552 _did_--I heard something about it--but I hardly know what--something
553 about Mr. Robinson."
554
555 "Perhaps you mean what I overheard between him and Mr. Robinson; did not
556 I mention it to you? Mr. Robinson's asking him how he liked our Meryton
557 assemblies, and whether he did not think there were a great many
558 pretty women in the room, and _which_ he thought the prettiest? and his
559 answering immediately to the last question: 'Oh! the eldest Miss Bennet,
560 beyond a doubt; there cannot be two opinions on that point.'"
561
562 "Upon my word! Well, that is very decided indeed--that does seem as
563 if--but, however, it may all come to nothing, you know."
564
565 "_My_ overhearings were more to the purpose than _yours_, Eliza," said
566 Charlotte. "Mr. Darcy is not so well worth listening to as his friend,
567 is he?--poor Eliza!--to be only just _tolerable_."
568
569 "I beg you would not put it into Lizzy's head to be vexed by his
570 ill-treatment, for he is such a disagreeable man, that it would be quite
571 a misfortune to be liked by him. Mrs. Long told me last night that he
572 sat close to her for half-an-hour without once opening his lips."
573
574 "Are you quite sure, ma'am?--is not there a little mistake?" said Jane.
575 "I certainly saw Mr. Darcy speaking to her."
576
577 "Aye--because she asked him at last how he liked Netherfield, and he
578 could not help answering her; but she said he seemed quite angry at
579 being spoke to."
580
581 "Miss Bingley told me," said Jane, "that he never speaks much,
582 unless among his intimate acquaintances. With _them_ he is remarkably
583 agreeable."
584
585 "I do not believe a word of it, my dear. If he had been so very
586 agreeable, he would have talked to Mrs. Long. But I can guess how it
587 was; everybody says that he is eat up with pride, and I dare say he had
588 heard somehow that Mrs. Long does not keep a carriage, and had come to
589 the ball in a hack chaise."
590
591 "I do not mind his not talking to Mrs. Long," said Miss Lucas, "but I
592 wish he had danced with Eliza."
593
594 "Another time, Lizzy," said her mother, "I would not dance with _him_,
595 if I were you."
596
597 "I believe, ma'am, I may safely promise you _never_ to dance with him."
598
599 "His pride," said Miss Lucas, "does not offend _me_ so much as pride
600 often does, because there is an excuse for it. One cannot wonder that so
601 very fine a young man, with family, fortune, everything in his favour,
602 should think highly of himself. If I may so express it, he has a _right_
603 to be proud."
604
605 "That is very true," replied Elizabeth, "and I could easily forgive
606 _his_ pride, if he had not mortified _mine_."
607
608 "Pride," observed Mary, who piqued herself upon the solidity of her
609 reflections, "is a very common failing, I believe. By all that I have
610 ever read, I am convinced that it is very common indeed; that human
611 nature is particularly prone to it, and that there are very few of us
612 who do not cherish a feeling of self-complacency on the score of some
613 quality or other, real or imaginary. Vanity and pride are different
614 things, though the words are often used synonymously. A person may
615 be proud without being vain. Pride relates more to our opinion of
616 ourselves, vanity to what we would have others think of us."
617
618 "If I were as rich as Mr. Darcy," cried a young Lucas, who came with
619 his sisters, "I should not care how proud I was. I would keep a pack of
620 foxhounds, and drink a bottle of wine a day."
621
622 "Then you would drink a great deal more than you ought," said Mrs.
623 Bennet; "and if I were to see you at it, I should take away your bottle
624 directly."
625
626 The boy protested that she should not; she continued to declare that she
627 would, and the argument ended only with the visit.
628
629
630
631 Chapter 6
632
633
634 The ladies of Longbourn soon waited on those of Netherfield. The visit
635 was soon returned in due form. Miss Bennet's pleasing manners grew on
636 the goodwill of Mrs. Hurst and Miss Bingley; and though the mother was
637 found to be intolerable, and the younger sisters not worth speaking to,
638 a wish of being better acquainted with _them_ was expressed towards
639 the two eldest. By Jane, this attention was received with the greatest
640 pleasure, but Elizabeth still saw superciliousness in their treatment
641 of everybody, hardly excepting even her sister, and could not like them;
642 though their kindness to Jane, such as it was, had a value as arising in
643 all probability from the influence of their brother's admiration. It
644 was generally evident whenever they met, that he _did_ admire her and
645 to _her_ it was equally evident that Jane was yielding to the preference
646 which she had begun to entertain for him from the first, and was in a
647 way to be very much in love; but she considered with pleasure that it
648 was not likely to be discovered by the world in general, since Jane
649 united, with great strength of feeling, a composure of temper and a
650 uniform cheerfulness of manner which would guard her from the suspicions
651 of the impertinent. She mentioned this to her friend Miss Lucas.
652
653 "It may perhaps be pleasant," replied Charlotte, "to be able to impose
654 on the public in such a case; but it is sometimes a disadvantage to be
655 so very guarded. If a woman conceals her affection with the same skill
656 from the object of it, she may lose the opportunity of fixing him; and
657 it will then be but poor consolation to believe the world equally in
658 the dark. There is so much of gratitude or vanity in almost every
659 attachment, that it is not safe to leave any to itself. We can all
660 _begin_ freely--a slight preference is natural enough; but there are
661 very few of us who have heart enough to be really in love without
662 encouragement. In nine cases out of ten a women had better show _more_
663 affection than she feels. Bingley likes your sister undoubtedly; but he
664 may never do more than like her, if she does not help him on."
665
666 "But she does help him on, as much as her nature will allow. If I can
667 perceive her regard for him, he must be a simpleton, indeed, not to
668 discover it too."
669
670 "Remember, Eliza, that he does not know Jane's disposition as you do."
671
672 "But if a woman is partial to a man, and does not endeavour to conceal
673 it, he must find it out."
674
675 "Perhaps he must, if he sees enough of her. But, though Bingley and Jane
676 meet tolerably often, it is never for many hours together; and, as they
677 always see each other in large mixed parties, it is impossible that
678 every moment should be employed in conversing together. Jane should
679 therefore make the most of every half-hour in which she can command his
680 attention. When she is secure of him, there will be more leisure for
681 falling in love as much as she chooses."
682
683 "Your plan is a good one," replied Elizabeth, "where nothing is in
684 question but the desire of being well married, and if I were determined
685 to get a rich husband, or any husband, I dare say I should adopt it. But
686 these are not Jane's feelings; she is not acting by design. As yet,
687 she cannot even be certain of the degree of her own regard nor of its
688 reasonableness. She has known him only a fortnight. She danced four
689 dances with him at Meryton; she saw him one morning at his own house,
690 and has since dined with him in company four times. This is not quite
691 enough to make her understand his character."
692
693 "Not as you represent it. Had she merely _dined_ with him, she might
694 only have discovered whether he had a good appetite; but you must
695 remember that four evenings have also been spent together--and four
696 evenings may do a great deal."
697
698 "Yes; these four evenings have enabled them to ascertain that they
699 both like Vingt-un better than Commerce; but with respect to any other
700 leading characteristic, I do not imagine that much has been unfolded."
701
702 "Well," said Charlotte, "I wish Jane success with all my heart; and
703 if she were married to him to-morrow, I should think she had as good a
704 chance of happiness as if she were to be studying his character for a
705 twelvemonth. Happiness in marriage is entirely a matter of chance. If
706 the dispositions of the parties are ever so well known to each other or
707 ever so similar beforehand, it does not advance their felicity in the
708 least. They always continue to grow sufficiently unlike afterwards to
709 have their share of vexation; and it is better to know as little as
710 possible of the defects of the person with whom you are to pass your
711 life."
712
713 "You make me laugh, Charlotte; but it is not sound. You know it is not
714 sound, and that you would never act in this way yourself."
715
716 Occupied in observing Mr. Bingley's attentions to her sister, Elizabeth
717 was far from suspecting that she was herself becoming an object of some
718 interest in the eyes of his friend. Mr. Darcy had at first scarcely
719 allowed her to be pretty; he had looked at her without admiration at the
720 ball; and when they next met, he looked at her only to criticise. But no
721 sooner had he made it clear to himself and his friends that she hardly
722 had a good feature in her face, than he began to find it was rendered
723 uncommonly intelligent by the beautiful expression of her dark eyes. To
724 this discovery succeeded some others equally mortifying. Though he had
725 detected with a critical eye more than one failure of perfect symmetry
726 in her form, he was forced to acknowledge her figure to be light and
727 pleasing; and in spite of his asserting that her manners were not those
728 of the fashionable world, he was caught by their easy playfulness. Of
729 this she was perfectly unaware; to her he was only the man who made
730 himself agreeable nowhere, and who had not thought her handsome enough
731 to dance with.
732
733 He began to wish to know more of her, and as a step towards conversing
734 with her himself, attended to her conversation with others. His doing so
735 drew her notice. It was at Sir William Lucas's, where a large party were
736 assembled.
737
738 "What does Mr. Darcy mean," said she to Charlotte, "by listening to my
739 conversation with Colonel Forster?"
740
741 "That is a question which Mr. Darcy only can answer."
742
743 "But if he does it any more I shall certainly let him know that I see
744 what he is about. He has a very satirical eye, and if I do not begin by
745 being impertinent myself, I shall soon grow afraid of him."
746
747 On his approaching them soon afterwards, though without seeming to have
748 any intention of speaking, Miss Lucas defied her friend to mention such
749 a subject to him; which immediately provoking Elizabeth to do it, she
750 turned to him and said:
751
752 "Did you not think, Mr. Darcy, that I expressed myself uncommonly
753 well just now, when I was teasing Colonel Forster to give us a ball at
754 Meryton?"
755
756 "With great energy; but it is always a subject which makes a lady
757 energetic."
758
759 "You are severe on us."
760
761 "It will be _her_ turn soon to be teased," said Miss Lucas. "I am going
762 to open the instrument, Eliza, and you know what follows."
763
764 "You are a very strange creature by way of a friend!--always wanting me
765 to play and sing before anybody and everybody! If my vanity had taken
766 a musical turn, you would have been invaluable; but as it is, I would
767 really rather not sit down before those who must be in the habit of
768 hearing the very best performers." On Miss Lucas's persevering, however,
769 she added, "Very well, if it must be so, it must." And gravely glancing
770 at Mr. Darcy, "There is a fine old saying, which everybody here is of
771 course familiar with: 'Keep your breath to cool your porridge'; and I
772 shall keep mine to swell my song."
773
774 Her performance was pleasing, though by no means capital. After a song
775 or two, and before she could reply to the entreaties of several that
776 she would sing again, she was eagerly succeeded at the instrument by her
777 sister Mary, who having, in consequence of being the only plain one in
778 the family, worked hard for knowledge and accomplishments, was always
779 impatient for display.
780
781 Mary had neither genius nor taste; and though vanity had given her
782 application, it had given her likewise a pedantic air and conceited
783 manner, which would have injured a higher degree of excellence than she
784 had reached. Elizabeth, easy and unaffected, had been listened to with
785 much more pleasure, though not playing half so well; and Mary, at the
786 end of a long concerto, was glad to purchase praise and gratitude by
787 Scotch and Irish airs, at the request of her younger sisters, who,
788 with some of the Lucases, and two or three officers, joined eagerly in
789 dancing at one end of the room.
790
791 Mr. Darcy stood near them in silent indignation at such a mode of
792 passing the evening, to the exclusion of all conversation, and was too
793 much engrossed by his thoughts to perceive that Sir William Lucas was
794 his neighbour, till Sir William thus began:
795
796 "What a charming amusement for young people this is, Mr. Darcy! There
797 is nothing like dancing after all. I consider it as one of the first
798 refinements of polished society."
799
800 "Certainly, sir; and it has the advantage also of being in vogue amongst
801 the less polished societies of the world. Every savage can dance."
802
803 Sir William only smiled. "Your friend performs delightfully," he
804 continued after a pause, on seeing Bingley join the group; "and I doubt
805 not that you are an adept in the science yourself, Mr. Darcy."
806
807 "You saw me dance at Meryton, I believe, sir."
808
809 "Yes, indeed, and received no inconsiderable pleasure from the sight. Do
810 you often dance at St. James's?"
811
812 "Never, sir."
813
814 "Do you not think it would be a proper compliment to the place?"
815
816 "It is a compliment which I never pay to any place if I can avoid it."
817
818 "You have a house in town, I conclude?"
819
820 Mr. Darcy bowed.
821
822 "I had once had some thought of fixing in town myself--for I am fond
823 of superior society; but I did not feel quite certain that the air of
824 London would agree with Lady Lucas."
825
826 He paused in hopes of an answer; but his companion was not disposed
827 to make any; and Elizabeth at that instant moving towards them, he was
828 struck with the action of doing a very gallant thing, and called out to
829 her:
830
831 "My dear Miss Eliza, why are you not dancing? Mr. Darcy, you must allow
832 me to present this young lady to you as a very desirable partner. You
833 cannot refuse to dance, I am sure when so much beauty is before you."
834 And, taking her hand, he would have given it to Mr. Darcy who, though
835 extremely surprised, was not unwilling to receive it, when she instantly
836 drew back, and said with some discomposure to Sir William:
837
838 "Indeed, sir, I have not the least intention of dancing. I entreat you
839 not to suppose that I moved this way in order to beg for a partner."
840
841 Mr. Darcy, with grave propriety, requested to be allowed the honour of
842 her hand, but in vain. Elizabeth was determined; nor did Sir William at
843 all shake her purpose by his attempt at persuasion.
844
845 "You excel so much in the dance, Miss Eliza, that it is cruel to deny
846 me the happiness of seeing you; and though this gentleman dislikes the
847 amusement in general, he can have no objection, I am sure, to oblige us
848 for one half-hour."
849
850 "Mr. Darcy is all politeness," said Elizabeth, smiling.
851
852 "He is, indeed; but, considering the inducement, my dear Miss Eliza,
853 we cannot wonder at his complaisance--for who would object to such a
854 partner?"
855
856 Elizabeth looked archly, and turned away. Her resistance had not
857 injured her with the gentleman, and he was thinking of her with some
858 complacency, when thus accosted by Miss Bingley:
859
860 "I can guess the subject of your reverie."
861
862 "I should imagine not."
863
864 "You are considering how insupportable it would be to pass many evenings
865 in this manner--in such society; and indeed I am quite of your opinion.
866 I was never more annoyed! The insipidity, and yet the noise--the
867 nothingness, and yet the self-importance of all those people! What would
868 I give to hear your strictures on them!"
869
870 "Your conjecture is totally wrong, I assure you. My mind was more
871 agreeably engaged. I have been meditating on the very great pleasure
872 which a pair of fine eyes in the face of a pretty woman can bestow."
873
874 Miss Bingley immediately fixed her eyes on his face, and desired he
875 would tell her what lady had the credit of inspiring such reflections.
876 Mr. Darcy replied with great intrepidity:
877
878 "Miss Elizabeth Bennet."
879
880 "Miss Elizabeth Bennet!" repeated Miss Bingley. "I am all astonishment.
881 How long has she been such a favourite?--and pray, when am I to wish you
882 joy?"
883
884 "That is exactly the question which I expected you to ask. A lady's
885 imagination is very rapid; it jumps from admiration to love, from love
886 to matrimony, in a moment. I knew you would be wishing me joy."
887
888 "Nay, if you are serious about it, I shall consider the matter is
889 absolutely settled. You will be having a charming mother-in-law, indeed;
890 and, of course, she will always be at Pemberley with you."
891
892 He listened to her with perfect indifference while she chose to
893 entertain herself in this manner; and as his composure convinced her
894 that all was safe, her wit flowed long.
895
896
897
898 Chapter 7
899
900
901 Mr. Bennet's property consisted almost entirely in an estate of two
902 thousand a year, which, unfortunately for his daughters, was entailed,
903 in default of heirs male, on a distant relation; and their mother's
904 fortune, though ample for her situation in life, could but ill supply
905 the deficiency of his. Her father had been an attorney in Meryton, and
906 had left her four thousand pounds.
907
908 She had a sister married to a Mr. Phillips, who had been a clerk to
909 their father and succeeded him in the business, and a brother settled in
910 London in a respectable line of trade.
911
912 The village of Longbourn was only one mile from Meryton; a most
913 convenient distance for the young ladies, who were usually tempted
914 thither three or four times a week, to pay their duty to their aunt and
915 to a milliner's shop just over the way. The two youngest of the family,
916 Catherine and Lydia, were particularly frequent in these attentions;
917 their minds were more vacant than their sisters', and when nothing
918 better offered, a walk to Meryton was necessary to amuse their morning
919 hours and furnish conversation for the evening; and however bare of news
920 the country in general might be, they always contrived to learn some
921 from their aunt. At present, indeed, they were well supplied both with
922 news and happiness by the recent arrival of a militia regiment in the
923 neighbourhood; it was to remain the whole winter, and Meryton was the
924 headquarters.
925
926 Their visits to Mrs. Phillips were now productive of the most
927 interesting intelligence. Every day added something to their knowledge
928 of the officers' names and connections. Their lodgings were not long a
929 secret, and at length they began to know the officers themselves. Mr.
930 Phillips visited them all, and this opened to his nieces a store of
931 felicity unknown before. They could talk of nothing but officers; and
932 Mr. Bingley's large fortune, the mention of which gave animation
933 to their mother, was worthless in their eyes when opposed to the
934 regimentals of an ensign.
935
936 After listening one morning to their effusions on this subject, Mr.
937 Bennet coolly observed:
938
939 "From all that I can collect by your manner of talking, you must be two
940 of the silliest girls in the country. I have suspected it some time, but
941 I am now convinced."
942
943 Catherine was disconcerted, and made no answer; but Lydia, with perfect
944 indifference, continued to express her admiration of Captain Carter,
945 and her hope of seeing him in the course of the day, as he was going the
946 next morning to London.
947
948 "I am astonished, my dear," said Mrs. Bennet, "that you should be so
949 ready to think your own children silly. If I wished to think slightingly
950 of anybody's children, it should not be of my own, however."
951
952 "If my children are silly, I must hope to be always sensible of it."
953
954 "Yes--but as it happens, they are all of them very clever."
955
956 "This is the only point, I flatter myself, on which we do not agree. I
957 had hoped that our sentiments coincided in every particular, but I must
958 so far differ from you as to think our two youngest daughters uncommonly
959 foolish."
960
961 "My dear Mr. Bennet, you must not expect such girls to have the sense of
962 their father and mother. When they get to our age, I dare say they will
963 not think about officers any more than we do. I remember the time when
964 I liked a red coat myself very well--and, indeed, so I do still at my
965 heart; and if a smart young colonel, with five or six thousand a year,
966 should want one of my girls I shall not say nay to him; and I thought
967 Colonel Forster looked very becoming the other night at Sir William's in
968 his regimentals."
969
970 "Mamma," cried Lydia, "my aunt says that Colonel Forster and Captain
971 Carter do not go so often to Miss Watson's as they did when they first
972 came; she sees them now very often standing in Clarke's library."
973
974 Mrs. Bennet was prevented replying by the entrance of the footman with
975 a note for Miss Bennet; it came from Netherfield, and the servant waited
976 for an answer. Mrs. Bennet's eyes sparkled with pleasure, and she was
977 eagerly calling out, while her daughter read,
978
979 "Well, Jane, who is it from? What is it about? What does he say? Well,
980 Jane, make haste and tell us; make haste, my love."
981
982 "It is from Miss Bingley," said Jane, and then read it aloud.
983
984 "MY DEAR FRIEND,--
985
986 "If you are not so compassionate as to dine to-day with Louisa and me,
987 we shall be in danger of hating each other for the rest of our lives,
988 for a whole day's tete-a-tete between two women can never end without a
989 quarrel. Come as soon as you can on receipt of this. My brother and the
990 gentlemen are to dine with the officers.--Yours ever,
991
992 "CAROLINE BINGLEY"
993
994 "With the officers!" cried Lydia. "I wonder my aunt did not tell us of
995 _that_."
996
997 "Dining out," said Mrs. Bennet, "that is very unlucky."
998
999 "Can I have the carriage?" said Jane.
1000
1001 "No, my dear, you had better go on horseback, because it seems likely to
1002 rain; and then you must stay all night."
1003
1004 "That would be a good scheme," said Elizabeth, "if you were sure that
1005 they would not offer to send her home."
1006
1007 "Oh! but the gentlemen will have Mr. Bingley's chaise to go to Meryton,
1008 and the Hursts have no horses to theirs."
1009
1010 "I had much rather go in the coach."
1011
1012 "But, my dear, your father cannot spare the horses, I am sure. They are
1013 wanted in the farm, Mr. Bennet, are they not?"
1014
1015 "They are wanted in the farm much oftener than I can get them."
1016
1017 "But if you have got them to-day," said Elizabeth, "my mother's purpose
1018 will be answered."
1019
1020 She did at last extort from her father an acknowledgment that the horses
1021 were engaged. Jane was therefore obliged to go on horseback, and her
1022 mother attended her to the door with many cheerful prognostics of a
1023 bad day. Her hopes were answered; Jane had not been gone long before
1024 it rained hard. Her sisters were uneasy for her, but her mother was
1025 delighted. The rain continued the whole evening without intermission;
1026 Jane certainly could not come back.
1027
1028 "This was a lucky idea of mine, indeed!" said Mrs. Bennet more than
1029 once, as if the credit of making it rain were all her own. Till the
1030 next morning, however, she was not aware of all the felicity of her
1031 contrivance. Breakfast was scarcely over when a servant from Netherfield
1032 brought the following note for Elizabeth:
1033
1034 "MY DEAREST LIZZY,--
1035
1036 "I find myself very unwell this morning, which, I suppose, is to be
1037 imputed to my getting wet through yesterday. My kind friends will not
1038 hear of my returning till I am better. They insist also on my seeing Mr.
1039 Jones--therefore do not be alarmed if you should hear of his having been
1040 to me--and, excepting a sore throat and headache, there is not much the
1041 matter with me.--Yours, etc."
1042
1043 "Well, my dear," said Mr. Bennet, when Elizabeth had read the note
1044 aloud, "if your daughter should have a dangerous fit of illness--if she
1045 should die, it would be a comfort to know that it was all in pursuit of
1046 Mr. Bingley, and under your orders."
1047
1048 "Oh! I am not afraid of her dying. People do not die of little trifling
1049 colds. She will be taken good care of. As long as she stays there, it is
1050 all very well. I would go and see her if I could have the carriage."
1051
1052 Elizabeth, feeling really anxious, was determined to go to her, though
1053 the carriage was not to be had; and as she was no horsewoman, walking
1054 was her only alternative. She declared her resolution.
1055
1056 "How can you be so silly," cried her mother, "as to think of such a
1057 thing, in all this dirt! You will not be fit to be seen when you get
1058 there."
1059
1060 "I shall be very fit to see Jane--which is all I want."
1061
1062 "Is this a hint to me, Lizzy," said her father, "to send for the
1063 horses?"
1064
1065 "No, indeed, I do not wish to avoid the walk. The distance is nothing
1066 when one has a motive; only three miles. I shall be back by dinner."
1067
1068 "I admire the activity of your benevolence," observed Mary, "but every
1069 impulse of feeling should be guided by reason; and, in my opinion,
1070 exertion should always be in proportion to what is required."
1071
1072 "We will go as far as Meryton with you," said Catherine and Lydia.
1073 Elizabeth accepted their company, and the three young ladies set off
1074 together.
1075
1076 "If we make haste," said Lydia, as they walked along, "perhaps we may
1077 see something of Captain Carter before he goes."
1078
1079 In Meryton they parted; the two youngest repaired to the lodgings of one
1080 of the officers' wives, and Elizabeth continued her walk alone, crossing
1081 field after field at a quick pace, jumping over stiles and springing
1082 over puddles with impatient activity, and finding herself at last
1083 within view of the house, with weary ankles, dirty stockings, and a face
1084 glowing with the warmth of exercise.
1085
1086 She was shown into the breakfast-parlour, where all but Jane were
1087 assembled, and where her appearance created a great deal of surprise.
1088 That she should have walked three miles so early in the day, in such
1089 dirty weather, and by herself, was almost incredible to Mrs. Hurst and
1090 Miss Bingley; and Elizabeth was convinced that they held her in contempt
1091 for it. She was received, however, very politely by them; and in their
1092 brother's manners there was something better than politeness; there
1093 was good humour and kindness. Mr. Darcy said very little, and Mr.
1094 Hurst nothing at all. The former was divided between admiration of the
1095 brilliancy which exercise had given to her complexion, and doubt as
1096 to the occasion's justifying her coming so far alone. The latter was
1097 thinking only of his breakfast.
1098
1099 Her inquiries after her sister were not very favourably answered. Miss
1100 Bennet had slept ill, and though up, was very feverish, and not
1101 well enough to leave her room. Elizabeth was glad to be taken to her
1102 immediately; and Jane, who had only been withheld by the fear of giving
1103 alarm or inconvenience from expressing in her note how much she longed
1104 for such a visit, was delighted at her entrance. She was not equal,
1105 however, to much conversation, and when Miss Bingley left them
1106 together, could attempt little besides expressions of gratitude for the
1107 extraordinary kindness she was treated with. Elizabeth silently attended
1108 her.
1109
1110 When breakfast was over they were joined by the sisters; and Elizabeth
1111 began to like them herself, when she saw how much affection and
1112 solicitude they showed for Jane. The apothecary came, and having
1113 examined his patient, said, as might be supposed, that she had caught
1114 a violent cold, and that they must endeavour to get the better of it;
1115 advised her to return to bed, and promised her some draughts. The advice
1116 was followed readily, for the feverish symptoms increased, and her head
1117 ached acutely. Elizabeth did not quit her room for a moment; nor were
1118 the other ladies often absent; the gentlemen being out, they had, in
1119 fact, nothing to do elsewhere.
1120
1121 When the clock struck three, Elizabeth felt that she must go, and very
1122 unwillingly said so. Miss Bingley offered her the carriage, and she only
1123 wanted a little pressing to accept it, when Jane testified such concern
1124 in parting with her, that Miss Bingley was obliged to convert the offer
1125 of the chaise to an invitation to remain at Netherfield for the present.
1126 Elizabeth most thankfully consented, and a servant was dispatched to
1127 Longbourn to acquaint the family with her stay and bring back a supply
1128 of clothes.
1129
1130
1131
1132 Chapter 8
1133
1134
1135 At five o'clock the two ladies retired to dress, and at half-past six
1136 Elizabeth was summoned to dinner. To the civil inquiries which then
1137 poured in, and amongst which she had the pleasure of distinguishing the
1138 much superior solicitude of Mr. Bingley's, she could not make a very
1139 favourable answer. Jane was by no means better. The sisters, on hearing
1140 this, repeated three or four times how much they were grieved, how
1141 shocking it was to have a bad cold, and how excessively they disliked
1142 being ill themselves; and then thought no more of the matter: and their
1143 indifference towards Jane when not immediately before them restored
1144 Elizabeth to the enjoyment of all her former dislike.
1145
1146 Their brother, indeed, was the only one of the party whom she could
1147 regard with any complacency. His anxiety for Jane was evident, and his
1148 attentions to herself most pleasing, and they prevented her feeling
1149 herself so much an intruder as she believed she was considered by the
1150 others. She had very little notice from any but him. Miss Bingley was
1151 engrossed by Mr. Darcy, her sister scarcely less so; and as for Mr.
1152 Hurst, by whom Elizabeth sat, he was an indolent man, who lived only to
1153 eat, drink, and play at cards; who, when he found her to prefer a plain
1154 dish to a ragout, had nothing to say to her.
1155
1156 When dinner was over, she returned directly to Jane, and Miss Bingley
1157 began abusing her as soon as she was out of the room. Her manners were
1158 pronounced to be very bad indeed, a mixture of pride and impertinence;
1159 she had no conversation, no style, no beauty. Mrs. Hurst thought the
1160 same, and added:
1161
1162 "She has nothing, in short, to recommend her, but being an excellent
1163 walker. I shall never forget her appearance this morning. She really
1164 looked almost wild."
1165
1166 "She did, indeed, Louisa. I could hardly keep my countenance. Very
1167 nonsensical to come at all! Why must _she_ be scampering about the
1168 country, because her sister had a cold? Her hair, so untidy, so blowsy!"
1169
1170 "Yes, and her petticoat; I hope you saw her petticoat, six inches deep
1171 in mud, I am absolutely certain; and the gown which had been let down to
1172 hide it not doing its office."
1173
1174 "Your picture may be very exact, Louisa," said Bingley; "but this was
1175 all lost upon me. I thought Miss Elizabeth Bennet looked remarkably
1176 well when she came into the room this morning. Her dirty petticoat quite
1177 escaped my notice."
1178
1179 "_You_ observed it, Mr. Darcy, I am sure," said Miss Bingley; "and I am
1180 inclined to think that you would not wish to see _your_ sister make such
1181 an exhibition."
1182
1183 "Certainly not."
1184
1185 "To walk three miles, or four miles, or five miles, or whatever it is,
1186 above her ankles in dirt, and alone, quite alone! What could she mean by
1187 it? It seems to me to show an abominable sort of conceited independence,
1188 a most country-town indifference to decorum."
1189
1190 "It shows an affection for her sister that is very pleasing," said
1191 Bingley.
1192
1193 "I am afraid, Mr. Darcy," observed Miss Bingley in a half whisper, "that
1194 this adventure has rather affected your admiration of her fine eyes."
1195
1196 "Not at all," he replied; "they were brightened by the exercise." A
1197 short pause followed this speech, and Mrs. Hurst began again:
1198
1199 "I have an excessive regard for Miss Jane Bennet, she is really a very
1200 sweet girl, and I wish with all my heart she were well settled. But with
1201 such a father and mother, and such low connections, I am afraid there is
1202 no chance of it."
1203
1204 "I think I have heard you say that their uncle is an attorney in
1205 Meryton."
1206
1207 "Yes; and they have another, who lives somewhere near Cheapside."
1208
1209 "That is capital," added her sister, and they both laughed heartily.
1210
1211 "If they had uncles enough to fill _all_ Cheapside," cried Bingley, "it
1212 would not make them one jot less agreeable."
1213
1214 "But it must very materially lessen their chance of marrying men of any
1215 consideration in the world," replied Darcy.
1216
1217 To this speech Bingley made no answer; but his sisters gave it their
1218 hearty assent, and indulged their mirth for some time at the expense of
1219 their dear friend's vulgar relations.
1220
1221 With a renewal of tenderness, however, they returned to her room on
1222 leaving the dining-parlour, and sat with her till summoned to coffee.
1223 She was still very poorly, and Elizabeth would not quit her at all, till
1224 late in the evening, when she had the comfort of seeing her sleep, and
1225 when it seemed to her rather right than pleasant that she should go
1226 downstairs herself. On entering the drawing-room she found the whole
1227 party at loo, and was immediately invited to join them; but suspecting
1228 them to be playing high she declined it, and making her sister the
1229 excuse, said she would amuse herself for the short time she could stay
1230 below, with a book. Mr. Hurst looked at her with astonishment.
1231
1232 "Do you prefer reading to cards?" said he; "that is rather singular."
1233
1234 "Miss Eliza Bennet," said Miss Bingley, "despises cards. She is a great
1235 reader, and has no pleasure in anything else."
1236
1237 "I deserve neither such praise nor such censure," cried Elizabeth; "I am
1238 _not_ a great reader, and I have pleasure in many things."
1239
1240 "In nursing your sister I am sure you have pleasure," said Bingley; "and
1241 I hope it will be soon increased by seeing her quite well."
1242
1243 Elizabeth thanked him from her heart, and then walked towards the
1244 table where a few books were lying. He immediately offered to fetch her
1245 others--all that his library afforded.
1246
1247 "And I wish my collection were larger for your benefit and my own
1248 credit; but I am an idle fellow, and though I have not many, I have more
1249 than I ever looked into."
1250
1251 Elizabeth assured him that she could suit herself perfectly with those
1252 in the room.
1253
1254 "I am astonished," said Miss Bingley, "that my father should have left
1255 so small a collection of books. What a delightful library you have at
1256 Pemberley, Mr. Darcy!"
1257
1258 "It ought to be good," he replied, "it has been the work of many
1259 generations."
1260
1261 "And then you have added so much to it yourself, you are always buying
1262 books."
1263
1264 "I cannot comprehend the neglect of a family library in such days as
1265 these."
1266
1267 "Neglect! I am sure you neglect nothing that can add to the beauties of
1268 that noble place. Charles, when you build _your_ house, I wish it may be
1269 half as delightful as Pemberley."
1270
1271 "I wish it may."
1272
1273 "But I would really advise you to make your purchase in that
1274 neighbourhood, and take Pemberley for a kind of model. There is not a
1275 finer county in England than Derbyshire."
1276
1277 "With all my heart; I will buy Pemberley itself if Darcy will sell it."
1278
1279 "I am talking of possibilities, Charles."
1280
1281 "Upon my word, Caroline, I should think it more possible to get
1282 Pemberley by purchase than by imitation."
1283
1284 Elizabeth was so much caught with what passed, as to leave her very
1285 little attention for her book; and soon laying it wholly aside, she drew
1286 near the card-table, and stationed herself between Mr. Bingley and his
1287 eldest sister, to observe the game.
1288
1289 "Is Miss Darcy much grown since the spring?" said Miss Bingley; "will
1290 she be as tall as I am?"
1291
1292 "I think she will. She is now about Miss Elizabeth Bennet's height, or
1293 rather taller."
1294
1295 "How I long to see her again! I never met with anybody who delighted me
1296 so much. Such a countenance, such manners! And so extremely accomplished
1297 for her age! Her performance on the pianoforte is exquisite."
1298
1299 "It is amazing to me," said Bingley, "how young ladies can have patience
1300 to be so very accomplished as they all are."
1301
1302 "All young ladies accomplished! My dear Charles, what do you mean?"
1303
1304 "Yes, all of them, I think. They all paint tables, cover screens, and
1305 net purses. I scarcely know anyone who cannot do all this, and I am sure
1306 I never heard a young lady spoken of for the first time, without being
1307 informed that she was very accomplished."
1308
1309 "Your list of the common extent of accomplishments," said Darcy, "has
1310 too much truth. The word is applied to many a woman who deserves it no
1311 otherwise than by netting a purse or covering a screen. But I am very
1312 far from agreeing with you in your estimation of ladies in general. I
1313 cannot boast of knowing more than half-a-dozen, in the whole range of my
1314 acquaintance, that are really accomplished."
1315
1316 "Nor I, I am sure," said Miss Bingley.
1317
1318 "Then," observed Elizabeth, "you must comprehend a great deal in your
1319 idea of an accomplished woman."
1320
1321 "Yes, I do comprehend a great deal in it."
1322
1323 "Oh! certainly," cried his faithful assistant, "no one can be really
1324 esteemed accomplished who does not greatly surpass what is usually met
1325 with. A woman must have a thorough knowledge of music, singing, drawing,
1326 dancing, and the modern languages, to deserve the word; and besides
1327 all this, she must possess a certain something in her air and manner of
1328 walking, the tone of her voice, her address and expressions, or the word
1329 will be but half-deserved."
1330
1331 "All this she must possess," added Darcy, "and to all this she must
1332 yet add something more substantial, in the improvement of her mind by
1333 extensive reading."
1334
1335 "I am no longer surprised at your knowing _only_ six accomplished women.
1336 I rather wonder now at your knowing _any_."
1337
1338 "Are you so severe upon your own sex as to doubt the possibility of all
1339 this?"
1340
1341 "I never saw such a woman. I never saw such capacity, and taste, and
1342 application, and elegance, as you describe united."
1343
1344 Mrs. Hurst and Miss Bingley both cried out against the injustice of her
1345 implied doubt, and were both protesting that they knew many women who
1346 answered this description, when Mr. Hurst called them to order, with
1347 bitter complaints of their inattention to what was going forward. As all
1348 conversation was thereby at an end, Elizabeth soon afterwards left the
1349 room.
1350
1351 "Elizabeth Bennet," said Miss Bingley, when the door was closed on her,
1352 "is one of those young ladies who seek to recommend themselves to the
1353 other sex by undervaluing their own; and with many men, I dare say, it
1354 succeeds. But, in my opinion, it is a paltry device, a very mean art."
1355
1356 "Undoubtedly," replied Darcy, to whom this remark was chiefly addressed,
1357 "there is a meanness in _all_ the arts which ladies sometimes condescend
1358 to employ for captivation. Whatever bears affinity to cunning is
1359 despicable."
1360
1361 Miss Bingley was not so entirely satisfied with this reply as to
1362 continue the subject.
1363
1364 Elizabeth joined them again only to say that her sister was worse, and
1365 that she could not leave her. Bingley urged Mr. Jones being sent for
1366 immediately; while his sisters, convinced that no country advice could
1367 be of any service, recommended an express to town for one of the most
1368 eminent physicians. This she would not hear of; but she was not so
1369 unwilling to comply with their brother's proposal; and it was settled
1370 that Mr. Jones should be sent for early in the morning, if Miss Bennet
1371 were not decidedly better. Bingley was quite uncomfortable; his sisters
1372 declared that they were miserable. They solaced their wretchedness,
1373 however, by duets after supper, while he could find no better relief
1374 to his feelings than by giving his housekeeper directions that every
1375 attention might be paid to the sick lady and her sister.
1376
1377
1378
1379 Chapter 9
1380
1381
1382 Elizabeth passed the chief of the night in her sister's room, and in the
1383 morning had the pleasure of being able to send a tolerable answer to the
1384 inquiries which she very early received from Mr. Bingley by a housemaid,
1385 and some time afterwards from the two elegant ladies who waited on his
1386 sisters. In spite of this amendment, however, she requested to have a
1387 note sent to Longbourn, desiring her mother to visit Jane, and form her
1388 own judgement of her situation. The note was immediately dispatched, and
1389 its contents as quickly complied with. Mrs. Bennet, accompanied by her
1390 two youngest girls, reached Netherfield soon after the family breakfast.
1391
1392 Had she found Jane in any apparent danger, Mrs. Bennet would have been
1393 very miserable; but being satisfied on seeing her that her illness was
1394 not alarming, she had no wish of her recovering immediately, as her
1395 restoration to health would probably remove her from Netherfield. She
1396 would not listen, therefore, to her daughter's proposal of being carried
1397 home; neither did the apothecary, who arrived about the same time, think
1398 it at all advisable. After sitting a little while with Jane, on Miss
1399 Bingley's appearance and invitation, the mother and three daughters all
1400 attended her into the breakfast parlour. Bingley met them with hopes
1401 that Mrs. Bennet had not found Miss Bennet worse than she expected.
1402
1403 "Indeed I have, sir," was her answer. "She is a great deal too ill to be
1404 moved. Mr. Jones says we must not think of moving her. We must trespass
1405 a little longer on your kindness."
1406
1407 "Removed!" cried Bingley. "It must not be thought of. My sister, I am
1408 sure, will not hear of her removal."
1409
1410 "You may depend upon it, Madam," said Miss Bingley, with cold civility,
1411 "that Miss Bennet will receive every possible attention while she
1412 remains with us."
1413
1414 Mrs. Bennet was profuse in her acknowledgments.
1415
1416 "I am sure," she added, "if it was not for such good friends I do not
1417 know what would become of her, for she is very ill indeed, and suffers
1418 a vast deal, though with the greatest patience in the world, which is
1419 always the way with her, for she has, without exception, the sweetest
1420 temper I have ever met with. I often tell my other girls they are
1421 nothing to _her_. You have a sweet room here, Mr. Bingley, and a
1422 charming prospect over the gravel walk. I do not know a place in the
1423 country that is equal to Netherfield. You will not think of quitting it
1424 in a hurry, I hope, though you have but a short lease."
1425
1426 "Whatever I do is done in a hurry," replied he; "and therefore if I
1427 should resolve to quit Netherfield, I should probably be off in five
1428 minutes. At present, however, I consider myself as quite fixed here."
1429
1430 "That is exactly what I should have supposed of you," said Elizabeth.
1431
1432 "You begin to comprehend me, do you?" cried he, turning towards her.
1433
1434 "Oh! yes--I understand you perfectly."
1435
1436 "I wish I might take this for a compliment; but to be so easily seen
1437 through I am afraid is pitiful."
1438
1439 "That is as it happens. It does not follow that a deep, intricate
1440 character is more or less estimable than such a one as yours."
1441
1442 "Lizzy," cried her mother, "remember where you are, and do not run on in
1443 the wild manner that you are suffered to do at home."
1444
1445 "I did not know before," continued Bingley immediately, "that you were a
1446 studier of character. It must be an amusing study."
1447
1448 "Yes, but intricate characters are the _most_ amusing. They have at
1449 least that advantage."
1450
1451 "The country," said Darcy, "can in general supply but a few subjects for
1452 such a study. In a country neighbourhood you move in a very confined and
1453 unvarying society."
1454
1455 "But people themselves alter so much, that there is something new to be
1456 observed in them for ever."
1457
1458 "Yes, indeed," cried Mrs. Bennet, offended by his manner of mentioning
1459 a country neighbourhood. "I assure you there is quite as much of _that_
1460 going on in the country as in town."
1461
1462 Everybody was surprised, and Darcy, after looking at her for a moment,
1463 turned silently away. Mrs. Bennet, who fancied she had gained a complete
1464 victory over him, continued her triumph.
1465
1466 "I cannot see that London has any great advantage over the country, for
1467 my part, except the shops and public places. The country is a vast deal
1468 pleasanter, is it not, Mr. Bingley?"
1469
1470 "When I am in the country," he replied, "I never wish to leave it;
1471 and when I am in town it is pretty much the same. They have each their
1472 advantages, and I can be equally happy in either."
1473
1474 "Aye--that is because you have the right disposition. But that
1475 gentleman," looking at Darcy, "seemed to think the country was nothing
1476 at all."
1477
1478 "Indeed, Mamma, you are mistaken," said Elizabeth, blushing for her
1479 mother. "You quite mistook Mr. Darcy. He only meant that there was not
1480 such a variety of people to be met with in the country as in the town,
1481 which you must acknowledge to be true."
1482
1483 "Certainly, my dear, nobody said there were; but as to not meeting
1484 with many people in this neighbourhood, I believe there are few
1485 neighbourhoods larger. I know we dine with four-and-twenty families."
1486
1487 Nothing but concern for Elizabeth could enable Bingley to keep his
1488 countenance. His sister was less delicate, and directed her eyes towards
1489 Mr. Darcy with a very expressive smile. Elizabeth, for the sake of
1490 saying something that might turn her mother's thoughts, now asked her if
1491 Charlotte Lucas had been at Longbourn since _her_ coming away.
1492
1493 "Yes, she called yesterday with her father. What an agreeable man Sir
1494 William is, Mr. Bingley, is not he? So much the man of fashion! So
1495 genteel and easy! He has always something to say to everybody. _That_
1496 is my idea of good breeding; and those persons who fancy themselves very
1497 important, and never open their mouths, quite mistake the matter."
1498
1499 "Did Charlotte dine with you?"
1500
1501 "No, she would go home. I fancy she was wanted about the mince-pies. For
1502 my part, Mr. Bingley, I always keep servants that can do their own work;
1503 _my_ daughters are brought up very differently. But everybody is to
1504 judge for themselves, and the Lucases are a very good sort of girls,
1505 I assure you. It is a pity they are not handsome! Not that I think
1506 Charlotte so _very_ plain--but then she is our particular friend."
1507
1508 "She seems a very pleasant young woman."
1509
1510 "Oh! dear, yes; but you must own she is very plain. Lady Lucas herself
1511 has often said so, and envied me Jane's beauty. I do not like to boast
1512 of my own child, but to be sure, Jane--one does not often see anybody
1513 better looking. It is what everybody says. I do not trust my own
1514 partiality. When she was only fifteen, there was a man at my brother
1515 Gardiner's in town so much in love with her that my sister-in-law was
1516 sure he would make her an offer before we came away. But, however, he
1517 did not. Perhaps he thought her too young. However, he wrote some verses
1518 on her, and very pretty they were."
1519
1520 "And so ended his affection," said Elizabeth impatiently. "There has
1521 been many a one, I fancy, overcome in the same way. I wonder who first
1522 discovered the efficacy of poetry in driving away love!"
1523
1524 "I have been used to consider poetry as the _food_ of love," said Darcy.
1525
1526 "Of a fine, stout, healthy love it may. Everything nourishes what is
1527 strong already. But if it be only a slight, thin sort of inclination, I
1528 am convinced that one good sonnet will starve it entirely away."
1529
1530 Darcy only smiled; and the general pause which ensued made Elizabeth
1531 tremble lest her mother should be exposing herself again. She longed to
1532 speak, but could think of nothing to say; and after a short silence Mrs.
1533 Bennet began repeating her thanks to Mr. Bingley for his kindness to
1534 Jane, with an apology for troubling him also with Lizzy. Mr. Bingley was
1535 unaffectedly civil in his answer, and forced his younger sister to be
1536 civil also, and say what the occasion required. She performed her part
1537 indeed without much graciousness, but Mrs. Bennet was satisfied, and
1538 soon afterwards ordered her carriage. Upon this signal, the youngest of
1539 her daughters put herself forward. The two girls had been whispering to
1540 each other during the whole visit, and the result of it was, that the
1541 youngest should tax Mr. Bingley with having promised on his first coming
1542 into the country to give a ball at Netherfield.
1543
1544 Lydia was a stout, well-grown girl of fifteen, with a fine complexion
1545 and good-humoured countenance; a favourite with her mother, whose
1546 affection had brought her into public at an early age. She had high
1547 animal spirits, and a sort of natural self-consequence, which the
1548 attention of the officers, to whom her uncle's good dinners, and her own
1549 easy manners recommended her, had increased into assurance. She was very
1550 equal, therefore, to address Mr. Bingley on the subject of the ball, and
1551 abruptly reminded him of his promise; adding, that it would be the most
1552 shameful thing in the world if he did not keep it. His answer to this
1553 sudden attack was delightful to their mother's ear:
1554
1555 "I am perfectly ready, I assure you, to keep my engagement; and when
1556 your sister is recovered, you shall, if you please, name the very day of
1557 the ball. But you would not wish to be dancing when she is ill."
1558
1559 Lydia declared herself satisfied. "Oh! yes--it would be much better to
1560 wait till Jane was well, and by that time most likely Captain Carter
1561 would be at Meryton again. And when you have given _your_ ball," she
1562 added, "I shall insist on their giving one also. I shall tell Colonel
1563 Forster it will be quite a shame if he does not."
1564
1565 Mrs. Bennet and her daughters then departed, and Elizabeth returned
1566 instantly to Jane, leaving her own and her relations' behaviour to the
1567 remarks of the two ladies and Mr. Darcy; the latter of whom, however,
1568 could not be prevailed on to join in their censure of _her_, in spite of
1569 all Miss Bingley's witticisms on _fine eyes_.
1570
1571
1572
1573 Chapter 10
1574
1575
1576 The day passed much as the day before had done. Mrs. Hurst and Miss
1577 Bingley had spent some hours of the morning with the invalid, who
1578 continued, though slowly, to mend; and in the evening Elizabeth joined
1579 their party in the drawing-room. The loo-table, however, did not appear.
1580 Mr. Darcy was writing, and Miss Bingley, seated near him, was watching
1581 the progress of his letter and repeatedly calling off his attention by
1582 messages to his sister. Mr. Hurst and Mr. Bingley were at piquet, and
1583 Mrs. Hurst was observing their game.
1584
1585 Elizabeth took up some needlework, and was sufficiently amused in
1586 attending to what passed between Darcy and his companion. The perpetual
1587 commendations of the lady, either on his handwriting, or on the evenness
1588 of his lines, or on the length of his letter, with the perfect unconcern
1589 with which her praises were received, formed a curious dialogue, and was
1590 exactly in union with her opinion of each.
1591
1592 "How delighted Miss Darcy will be to receive such a letter!"
1593
1594 He made no answer.
1595
1596 "You write uncommonly fast."
1597
1598 "You are mistaken. I write rather slowly."
1599
1600 "How many letters you must have occasion to write in the course of a
1601 year! Letters of business, too! How odious I should think them!"
1602
1603 "It is fortunate, then, that they fall to my lot instead of yours."
1604
1605 "Pray tell your sister that I long to see her."
1606
1607 "I have already told her so once, by your desire."
1608
1609 "I am afraid you do not like your pen. Let me mend it for you. I mend
1610 pens remarkably well."
1611
1612 "Thank you--but I always mend my own."
1613
1614 "How can you contrive to write so even?"
1615
1616 He was silent.
1617
1618 "Tell your sister I am delighted to hear of her improvement on the harp;
1619 and pray let her know that I am quite in raptures with her beautiful
1620 little design for a table, and I think it infinitely superior to Miss
1621 Grantley's."
1622
1623 "Will you give me leave to defer your raptures till I write again? At
1624 present I have not room to do them justice."
1625
1626 "Oh! it is of no consequence. I shall see her in January. But do you
1627 always write such charming long letters to her, Mr. Darcy?"
1628
1629 "They are generally long; but whether always charming it is not for me
1630 to determine."
1631
1632 "It is a rule with me, that a person who can write a long letter with
1633 ease, cannot write ill."
1634
1635 "That will not do for a compliment to Darcy, Caroline," cried her
1636 brother, "because he does _not_ write with ease. He studies too much for
1637 words of four syllables. Do not you, Darcy?"
1638
1639 "My style of writing is very different from yours."
1640
1641 "Oh!" cried Miss Bingley, "Charles writes in the most careless way
1642 imaginable. He leaves out half his words, and blots the rest."
1643
1644 "My ideas flow so rapidly that I have not time to express them--by which
1645 means my letters sometimes convey no ideas at all to my correspondents."
1646
1647 "Your humility, Mr. Bingley," said Elizabeth, "must disarm reproof."
1648
1649 "Nothing is more deceitful," said Darcy, "than the appearance of
1650 humility. It is often only carelessness of opinion, and sometimes an
1651 indirect boast."
1652
1653 "And which of the two do you call _my_ little recent piece of modesty?"
1654
1655 "The indirect boast; for you are really proud of your defects in
1656 writing, because you consider them as proceeding from a rapidity of
1657 thought and carelessness of execution, which, if not estimable, you
1658 think at least highly interesting. The power of doing anything with
1659 quickness is always prized much by the possessor, and often without any
1660 attention to the imperfection of the performance. When you told Mrs.
1661 Bennet this morning that if you ever resolved upon quitting Netherfield
1662 you should be gone in five minutes, you meant it to be a sort of
1663 panegyric, of compliment to yourself--and yet what is there so very
1664 laudable in a precipitance which must leave very necessary business
1665 undone, and can be of no real advantage to yourself or anyone else?"
1666
1667 "Nay," cried Bingley, "this is too much, to remember at night all the
1668 foolish things that were said in the morning. And yet, upon my honour,
1669 I believe what I said of myself to be true, and I believe it at this
1670 moment. At least, therefore, I did not assume the character of needless
1671 precipitance merely to show off before the ladies."
1672
1673 "I dare say you believed it; but I am by no means convinced that
1674 you would be gone with such celerity. Your conduct would be quite as
1675 dependent on chance as that of any man I know; and if, as you were
1676 mounting your horse, a friend were to say, 'Bingley, you had better
1677 stay till next week,' you would probably do it, you would probably not
1678 go--and at another word, might stay a month."
1679
1680 "You have only proved by this," cried Elizabeth, "that Mr. Bingley did
1681 not do justice to his own disposition. You have shown him off now much
1682 more than he did himself."
1683
1684 "I am exceedingly gratified," said Bingley, "by your converting what my
1685 friend says into a compliment on the sweetness of my temper. But I am
1686 afraid you are giving it a turn which that gentleman did by no means
1687 intend; for he would certainly think better of me, if under such a
1688 circumstance I were to give a flat denial, and ride off as fast as I
1689 could."
1690
1691 "Would Mr. Darcy then consider the rashness of your original intentions
1692 as atoned for by your obstinacy in adhering to it?"
1693
1694 "Upon my word, I cannot exactly explain the matter; Darcy must speak for
1695 himself."
1696
1697 "You expect me to account for opinions which you choose to call mine,
1698 but which I have never acknowledged. Allowing the case, however, to
1699 stand according to your representation, you must remember, Miss Bennet,
1700 that the friend who is supposed to desire his return to the house, and
1701 the delay of his plan, has merely desired it, asked it without offering
1702 one argument in favour of its propriety."
1703
1704 "To yield readily--easily--to the _persuasion_ of a friend is no merit
1705 with you."
1706
1707 "To yield without conviction is no compliment to the understanding of
1708 either."
1709
1710 "You appear to me, Mr. Darcy, to allow nothing for the influence of
1711 friendship and affection. A regard for the requester would often make
1712 one readily yield to a request, without waiting for arguments to reason
1713 one into it. I am not particularly speaking of such a case as you have
1714 supposed about Mr. Bingley. We may as well wait, perhaps, till the
1715 circumstance occurs before we discuss the discretion of his behaviour
1716 thereupon. But in general and ordinary cases between friend and friend,
1717 where one of them is desired by the other to change a resolution of no
1718 very great moment, should you think ill of that person for complying
1719 with the desire, without waiting to be argued into it?"
1720
1721 "Will it not be advisable, before we proceed on this subject, to
1722 arrange with rather more precision the degree of importance which is to
1723 appertain to this request, as well as the degree of intimacy subsisting
1724 between the parties?"
1725
1726 "By all means," cried Bingley; "let us hear all the particulars, not
1727 forgetting their comparative height and size; for that will have more
1728 weight in the argument, Miss Bennet, than you may be aware of. I assure
1729 you, that if Darcy were not such a great tall fellow, in comparison with
1730 myself, I should not pay him half so much deference. I declare I do not
1731 know a more awful object than Darcy, on particular occasions, and in
1732 particular places; at his own house especially, and of a Sunday evening,
1733 when he has nothing to do."
1734
1735 Mr. Darcy smiled; but Elizabeth thought she could perceive that he was
1736 rather offended, and therefore checked her laugh. Miss Bingley warmly
1737 resented the indignity he had received, in an expostulation with her
1738 brother for talking such nonsense.
1739
1740 "I see your design, Bingley," said his friend. "You dislike an argument,
1741 and want to silence this."
1742
1743 "Perhaps I do. Arguments are too much like disputes. If you and Miss
1744 Bennet will defer yours till I am out of the room, I shall be very
1745 thankful; and then you may say whatever you like of me."
1746
1747 "What you ask," said Elizabeth, "is no sacrifice on my side; and Mr.
1748 Darcy had much better finish his letter."
1749
1750 Mr. Darcy took her advice, and did finish his letter.
1751
1752 When that business was over, he applied to Miss Bingley and Elizabeth
1753 for an indulgence of some music. Miss Bingley moved with some alacrity
1754 to the pianoforte; and, after a polite request that Elizabeth would lead
1755 the way which the other as politely and more earnestly negatived, she
1756 seated herself.
1757
1758 Mrs. Hurst sang with her sister, and while they were thus employed,
1759 Elizabeth could not help observing, as she turned over some music-books
1760 that lay on the instrument, how frequently Mr. Darcy's eyes were fixed
1761 on her. She hardly knew how to suppose that she could be an object of
1762 admiration to so great a man; and yet that he should look at her
1763 because he disliked her, was still more strange. She could only imagine,
1764 however, at last that she drew his notice because there was something
1765 more wrong and reprehensible, according to his ideas of right, than in
1766 any other person present. The supposition did not pain her. She liked
1767 him too little to care for his approbation.
1768
1769 After playing some Italian songs, Miss Bingley varied the charm by
1770 a lively Scotch air; and soon afterwards Mr. Darcy, drawing near
1771 Elizabeth, said to her:
1772
1773 "Do not you feel a great inclination, Miss Bennet, to seize such an
1774 opportunity of dancing a reel?"
1775
1776 She smiled, but made no answer. He repeated the question, with some
1777 surprise at her silence.
1778
1779 "Oh!" said she, "I heard you before, but I could not immediately
1780 determine what to say in reply. You wanted me, I know, to say 'Yes,'
1781 that you might have the pleasure of despising my taste; but I always
1782 delight in overthrowing those kind of schemes, and cheating a person of
1783 their premeditated contempt. I have, therefore, made up my mind to tell
1784 you, that I do not want to dance a reel at all--and now despise me if
1785 you dare."
1786
1787 "Indeed I do not dare."
1788
1789 Elizabeth, having rather expected to affront him, was amazed at his
1790 gallantry; but there was a mixture of sweetness and archness in her
1791 manner which made it difficult for her to affront anybody; and Darcy
1792 had never been so bewitched by any woman as he was by her. He really
1793 believed, that were it not for the inferiority of her connections, he
1794 should be in some danger.
1795
1796 Miss Bingley saw, or suspected enough to be jealous; and her great
1797 anxiety for the recovery of her dear friend Jane received some
1798 assistance from her desire of getting rid of Elizabeth.
1799
1800 She often tried to provoke Darcy into disliking her guest, by talking of
1801 their supposed marriage, and planning his happiness in such an alliance.
1802
1803 "I hope," said she, as they were walking together in the shrubbery
1804 the next day, "you will give your mother-in-law a few hints, when this
1805 desirable event takes place, as to the advantage of holding her tongue;
1806 and if you can compass it, do cure the younger girls of running after
1807 officers. And, if I may mention so delicate a subject, endeavour to
1808 check that little something, bordering on conceit and impertinence,
1809 which your lady possesses."
1810
1811 "Have you anything else to propose for my domestic felicity?"
1812
1813 "Oh! yes. Do let the portraits of your uncle and aunt Phillips be placed
1814 in the gallery at Pemberley. Put them next to your great-uncle the
1815 judge. They are in the same profession, you know, only in different
1816 lines. As for your Elizabeth's picture, you must not have it taken, for
1817 what painter could do justice to those beautiful eyes?"
1818
1819 "It would not be easy, indeed, to catch their expression, but their
1820 colour and shape, and the eyelashes, so remarkably fine, might be
1821 copied."
1822
1823 At that moment they were met from another walk by Mrs. Hurst and
1824 Elizabeth herself.
1825
1826 "I did not know that you intended to walk," said Miss Bingley, in some
1827 confusion, lest they had been overheard.
1828
1829 "You used us abominably ill," answered Mrs. Hurst, "running away without
1830 telling us that you were coming out."
1831
1832 Then taking the disengaged arm of Mr. Darcy, she left Elizabeth to walk
1833 by herself. The path just admitted three. Mr. Darcy felt their rudeness,
1834 and immediately said:
1835
1836 "This walk is not wide enough for our party. We had better go into the
1837 avenue."
1838
1839 But Elizabeth, who had not the least inclination to remain with them,
1840 laughingly answered:
1841
1842 "No, no; stay where you are. You are charmingly grouped, and appear
1843 to uncommon advantage. The picturesque would be spoilt by admitting a
1844 fourth. Good-bye."
1845
1846 She then ran gaily off, rejoicing as she rambled about, in the hope of
1847 being at home again in a day or two. Jane was already so much recovered
1848 as to intend leaving her room for a couple of hours that evening.
1849
1850
1851
1852 Chapter 11
1853
1854
1855 When the ladies removed after dinner, Elizabeth ran up to her
1856 sister, and seeing her well guarded from cold, attended her into the
1857 drawing-room, where she was welcomed by her two friends with many
1858 professions of pleasure; and Elizabeth had never seen them so agreeable
1859 as they were during the hour which passed before the gentlemen appeared.
1860 Their powers of conversation were considerable. They could describe an
1861 entertainment with accuracy, relate an anecdote with humour, and laugh
1862 at their acquaintance with spirit.
1863
1864 But when the gentlemen entered, Jane was no longer the first object;
1865 Miss Bingley's eyes were instantly turned toward Darcy, and she had
1866 something to say to him before he had advanced many steps. He addressed
1867 himself to Miss Bennet, with a polite congratulation; Mr. Hurst also
1868 made her a slight bow, and said he was "very glad;" but diffuseness
1869 and warmth remained for Bingley's salutation. He was full of joy and
1870 attention. The first half-hour was spent in piling up the fire, lest she
1871 should suffer from the change of room; and she removed at his desire
1872 to the other side of the fireplace, that she might be further from
1873 the door. He then sat down by her, and talked scarcely to anyone
1874 else. Elizabeth, at work in the opposite corner, saw it all with great
1875 delight.
1876
1877 When tea was over, Mr. Hurst reminded his sister-in-law of the
1878 card-table--but in vain. She had obtained private intelligence that Mr.
1879 Darcy did not wish for cards; and Mr. Hurst soon found even his open
1880 petition rejected. She assured him that no one intended to play, and
1881 the silence of the whole party on the subject seemed to justify her. Mr.
1882 Hurst had therefore nothing to do, but to stretch himself on one of the
1883 sofas and go to sleep. Darcy took up a book; Miss Bingley did the same;
1884 and Mrs. Hurst, principally occupied in playing with her bracelets
1885 and rings, joined now and then in her brother's conversation with Miss
1886 Bennet.
1887
1888 Miss Bingley's attention was quite as much engaged in watching Mr.
1889 Darcy's progress through _his_ book, as in reading her own; and she
1890 was perpetually either making some inquiry, or looking at his page. She
1891 could not win him, however, to any conversation; he merely answered her
1892 question, and read on. At length, quite exhausted by the attempt to be
1893 amused with her own book, which she had only chosen because it was the
1894 second volume of his, she gave a great yawn and said, "How pleasant
1895 it is to spend an evening in this way! I declare after all there is no
1896 enjoyment like reading! How much sooner one tires of anything than of a
1897 book! When I have a house of my own, I shall be miserable if I have not
1898 an excellent library."
1899
1900 No one made any reply. She then yawned again, threw aside her book, and
1901 cast her eyes round the room in quest for some amusement; when hearing
1902 her brother mentioning a ball to Miss Bennet, she turned suddenly
1903 towards him and said:
1904
1905 "By the bye, Charles, are you really serious in meditating a dance at
1906 Netherfield? I would advise you, before you determine on it, to consult
1907 the wishes of the present party; I am much mistaken if there are
1908 not some among us to whom a ball would be rather a punishment than a
1909 pleasure."
1910
1911 "If you mean Darcy," cried her brother, "he may go to bed, if he
1912 chooses, before it begins--but as for the ball, it is quite a settled
1913 thing; and as soon as Nicholls has made white soup enough, I shall send
1914 round my cards."
1915
1916 "I should like balls infinitely better," she replied, "if they were
1917 carried on in a different manner; but there is something insufferably
1918 tedious in the usual process of such a meeting. It would surely be much
1919 more rational if conversation instead of dancing were made the order of
1920 the day."
1921
1922 "Much more rational, my dear Caroline, I dare say, but it would not be
1923 near so much like a ball."
1924
1925 Miss Bingley made no answer, and soon afterwards she got up and walked
1926 about the room. Her figure was elegant, and she walked well; but
1927 Darcy, at whom it was all aimed, was still inflexibly studious. In
1928 the desperation of her feelings, she resolved on one effort more, and,
1929 turning to Elizabeth, said:
1930
1931 "Miss Eliza Bennet, let me persuade you to follow my example, and take a
1932 turn about the room. I assure you it is very refreshing after sitting so
1933 long in one attitude."
1934
1935 Elizabeth was surprised, but agreed to it immediately. Miss Bingley
1936 succeeded no less in the real object of her civility; Mr. Darcy looked
1937 up. He was as much awake to the novelty of attention in that quarter as
1938 Elizabeth herself could be, and unconsciously closed his book. He was
1939 directly invited to join their party, but he declined it, observing that
1940 he could imagine but two motives for their choosing to walk up and down
1941 the room together, with either of which motives his joining them would
1942 interfere. "What could he mean? She was dying to know what could be his
1943 meaning?"--and asked Elizabeth whether she could at all understand him?
1944
1945 "Not at all," was her answer; "but depend upon it, he means to be severe
1946 on us, and our surest way of disappointing him will be to ask nothing
1947 about it."
1948
1949 Miss Bingley, however, was incapable of disappointing Mr. Darcy in
1950 anything, and persevered therefore in requiring an explanation of his
1951 two motives.
1952
1953 "I have not the smallest objection to explaining them," said he, as soon
1954 as she allowed him to speak. "You either choose this method of passing
1955 the evening because you are in each other's confidence, and have secret
1956 affairs to discuss, or because you are conscious that your figures
1957 appear to the greatest advantage in walking; if the first, I would be
1958 completely in your way, and if the second, I can admire you much better
1959 as I sit by the fire."
1960
1961 "Oh! shocking!" cried Miss Bingley. "I never heard anything so
1962 abominable. How shall we punish him for such a speech?"
1963
1964 "Nothing so easy, if you have but the inclination," said Elizabeth. "We
1965 can all plague and punish one another. Tease him--laugh at him. Intimate
1966 as you are, you must know how it is to be done."
1967
1968 "But upon my honour, I do _not_. I do assure you that my intimacy has
1969 not yet taught me _that_. Tease calmness of manner and presence of
1970 mind! No, no; I feel he may defy us there. And as to laughter, we will
1971 not expose ourselves, if you please, by attempting to laugh without a
1972 subject. Mr. Darcy may hug himself."
1973
1974 "Mr. Darcy is not to be laughed at!" cried Elizabeth. "That is an
1975 uncommon advantage, and uncommon I hope it will continue, for it would
1976 be a great loss to _me_ to have many such acquaintances. I dearly love a
1977 laugh."
1978
1979 "Miss Bingley," said he, "has given me more credit than can be.
1980 The wisest and the best of men--nay, the wisest and best of their
1981 actions--may be rendered ridiculous by a person whose first object in
1982 life is a joke."
1983
1984 "Certainly," replied Elizabeth--"there are such people, but I hope I
1985 am not one of _them_. I hope I never ridicule what is wise and good.
1986 Follies and nonsense, whims and inconsistencies, _do_ divert me, I own,
1987 and I laugh at them whenever I can. But these, I suppose, are precisely
1988 what you are without."
1989
1990 "Perhaps that is not possible for anyone. But it has been the study
1991 of my life to avoid those weaknesses which often expose a strong
1992 understanding to ridicule."
1993
1994 "Such as vanity and pride."
1995
1996 "Yes, vanity is a weakness indeed. But pride--where there is a real
1997 superiority of mind, pride will be always under good regulation."
1998
1999 Elizabeth turned away to hide a smile.
2000
2001 "Your examination of Mr. Darcy is over, I presume," said Miss Bingley;
2002 "and pray what is the result?"
2003
2004 "I am perfectly convinced by it that Mr. Darcy has no defect. He owns it
2005 himself without disguise."
2006
2007 "No," said Darcy, "I have made no such pretension. I have faults enough,
2008 but they are not, I hope, of understanding. My temper I dare not vouch
2009 for. It is, I believe, too little yielding--certainly too little for the
2010 convenience of the world. I cannot forget the follies and vices of others
2011 so soon as I ought, nor their offenses against myself. My feelings
2012 are not puffed about with every attempt to move them. My temper
2013 would perhaps be called resentful. My good opinion once lost, is lost
2014 forever."
2015
2016 "_That_ is a failing indeed!" cried Elizabeth. "Implacable resentment
2017 _is_ a shade in a character. But you have chosen your fault well. I
2018 really cannot _laugh_ at it. You are safe from me."
2019
2020 "There is, I believe, in every disposition a tendency to some particular
2021 evil--a natural defect, which not even the best education can overcome."
2022
2023 "And _your_ defect is to hate everybody."
2024
2025 "And yours," he replied with a smile, "is willfully to misunderstand
2026 them."
2027
2028 "Do let us have a little music," cried Miss Bingley, tired of a
2029 conversation in which she had no share. "Louisa, you will not mind my
2030 waking Mr. Hurst?"
2031
2032 Her sister had not the smallest objection, and the pianoforte was
2033 opened; and Darcy, after a few moments' recollection, was not sorry for
2034 it. He began to feel the danger of paying Elizabeth too much attention.
2035
2036
2037
2038 Chapter 12
2039
2040
2041 In consequence of an agreement between the sisters, Elizabeth wrote the
2042 next morning to their mother, to beg that the carriage might be sent for
2043 them in the course of the day. But Mrs. Bennet, who had calculated on
2044 her daughters remaining at Netherfield till the following Tuesday, which
2045 would exactly finish Jane's week, could not bring herself to receive
2046 them with pleasure before. Her answer, therefore, was not propitious, at
2047 least not to Elizabeth's wishes, for she was impatient to get home. Mrs.
2048 Bennet sent them word that they could not possibly have the carriage
2049 before Tuesday; and in her postscript it was added, that if Mr. Bingley
2050 and his sister pressed them to stay longer, she could spare them
2051 very well. Against staying longer, however, Elizabeth was positively
2052 resolved--nor did she much expect it would be asked; and fearful, on the
2053 contrary, as being considered as intruding themselves needlessly long,
2054 she urged Jane to borrow Mr. Bingley's carriage immediately, and at
2055 length it was settled that their original design of leaving Netherfield
2056 that morning should be mentioned, and the request made.
2057
2058 The communication excited many professions of concern; and enough was
2059 said of wishing them to stay at least till the following day to work
2060 on Jane; and till the morrow their going was deferred. Miss Bingley was
2061 then sorry that she had proposed the delay, for her jealousy and dislike
2062 of one sister much exceeded her affection for the other.
2063
2064 The master of the house heard with real sorrow that they were to go so
2065 soon, and repeatedly tried to persuade Miss Bennet that it would not be
2066 safe for her--that she was not enough recovered; but Jane was firm where
2067 she felt herself to be right.
2068
2069 To Mr. Darcy it was welcome intelligence--Elizabeth had been at
2070 Netherfield long enough. She attracted him more than he liked--and Miss
2071 Bingley was uncivil to _her_, and more teasing than usual to himself.
2072 He wisely resolved to be particularly careful that no sign of admiration
2073 should _now_ escape him, nothing that could elevate her with the hope
2074 of influencing his felicity; sensible that if such an idea had been
2075 suggested, his behaviour during the last day must have material weight
2076 in confirming or crushing it. Steady to his purpose, he scarcely spoke
2077 ten words to her through the whole of Saturday, and though they were
2078 at one time left by themselves for half-an-hour, he adhered most
2079 conscientiously to his book, and would not even look at her.
2080
2081 On Sunday, after morning service, the separation, so agreeable to almost
2082 all, took place. Miss Bingley's civility to Elizabeth increased at last
2083 very rapidly, as well as her affection for Jane; and when they parted,
2084 after assuring the latter of the pleasure it would always give her
2085 to see her either at Longbourn or Netherfield, and embracing her most
2086 tenderly, she even shook hands with the former. Elizabeth took leave of
2087 the whole party in the liveliest of spirits.
2088
2089 They were not welcomed home very cordially by their mother. Mrs. Bennet
2090 wondered at their coming, and thought them very wrong to give so much
2091 trouble, and was sure Jane would have caught cold again. But their
2092 father, though very laconic in his expressions of pleasure, was really
2093 glad to see them; he had felt their importance in the family circle. The
2094 evening conversation, when they were all assembled, had lost much of
2095 its animation, and almost all its sense by the absence of Jane and
2096 Elizabeth.
2097
2098 They found Mary, as usual, deep in the study of thorough-bass and human
2099 nature; and had some extracts to admire, and some new observations of
2100 threadbare morality to listen to. Catherine and Lydia had information
2101 for them of a different sort. Much had been done and much had been said
2102 in the regiment since the preceding Wednesday; several of the officers
2103 had dined lately with their uncle, a private had been flogged, and it
2104 had actually been hinted that Colonel Forster was going to be married.
2105
2106
2107
2108 Chapter 13
2109
2110
2111 "I hope, my dear," said Mr. Bennet to his wife, as they were at
2112 breakfast the next morning, "that you have ordered a good dinner to-day,
2113 because I have reason to expect an addition to our family party."
2114
2115 "Who do you mean, my dear? I know of nobody that is coming, I am sure,
2116 unless Charlotte Lucas should happen to call in--and I hope _my_ dinners
2117 are good enough for her. I do not believe she often sees such at home."
2118
2119 "The person of whom I speak is a gentleman, and a stranger."
2120
2121 Mrs. Bennet's eyes sparkled. "A gentleman and a stranger! It is Mr.
2122 Bingley, I am sure! Well, I am sure I shall be extremely glad to see Mr.
2123 Bingley. But--good Lord! how unlucky! There is not a bit of fish to be
2124 got to-day. Lydia, my love, ring the bell--I must speak to Hill this
2125 moment."
2126
2127 "It is _not_ Mr. Bingley," said her husband; "it is a person whom I
2128 never saw in the whole course of my life."
2129
2130 This roused a general astonishment; and he had the pleasure of being
2131 eagerly questioned by his wife and his five daughters at once.
2132
2133 After amusing himself some time with their curiosity, he thus explained:
2134
2135 "About a month ago I received this letter; and about a fortnight ago
2136 I answered it, for I thought it a case of some delicacy, and requiring
2137 early attention. It is from my cousin, Mr. Collins, who, when I am dead,
2138 may turn you all out of this house as soon as he pleases."
2139
2140 "Oh! my dear," cried his wife, "I cannot bear to hear that mentioned.
2141 Pray do not talk of that odious man. I do think it is the hardest thing
2142 in the world, that your estate should be entailed away from your own
2143 children; and I am sure, if I had been you, I should have tried long ago
2144 to do something or other about it."
2145
2146 Jane and Elizabeth tried to explain to her the nature of an entail. They
2147 had often attempted to do it before, but it was a subject on which
2148 Mrs. Bennet was beyond the reach of reason, and she continued to rail
2149 bitterly against the cruelty of settling an estate away from a family of
2150 five daughters, in favour of a man whom nobody cared anything about.
2151
2152 "It certainly is a most iniquitous affair," said Mr. Bennet, "and
2153 nothing can clear Mr. Collins from the guilt of inheriting Longbourn.
2154 But if you will listen to his letter, you may perhaps be a little
2155 softened by his manner of expressing himself."
2156
2157 "No, that I am sure I shall not; and I think it is very impertinent of
2158 him to write to you at all, and very hypocritical. I hate such false
2159 friends. Why could he not keep on quarreling with you, as his father did
2160 before him?"
2161
2162 "Why, indeed; he does seem to have had some filial scruples on that
2163 head, as you will hear."
2164
2165 "Hunsford, near Westerham, Kent, 15th October.
2166
2167 "Dear Sir,--
2168
2169 "The disagreement subsisting between yourself and my late honoured
2170 father always gave me much uneasiness, and since I have had the
2171 misfortune to lose him, I have frequently wished to heal the breach; but
2172 for some time I was kept back by my own doubts, fearing lest it might
2173 seem disrespectful to his memory for me to be on good terms with anyone
2174 with whom it had always pleased him to be at variance.--'There, Mrs.
2175 Bennet.'--My mind, however, is now made up on the subject, for having
2176 received ordination at Easter, I have been so fortunate as to be
2177 distinguished by the patronage of the Right Honourable Lady Catherine de
2178 Bourgh, widow of Sir Lewis de Bourgh, whose bounty and beneficence has
2179 preferred me to the valuable rectory of this parish, where it shall be
2180 my earnest endeavour to demean myself with grateful respect towards her
2181 ladyship, and be ever ready to perform those rites and ceremonies which
2182 are instituted by the Church of England. As a clergyman, moreover, I
2183 feel it my duty to promote and establish the blessing of peace in
2184 all families within the reach of my influence; and on these grounds I
2185 flatter myself that my present overtures are highly commendable, and
2186 that the circumstance of my being next in the entail of Longbourn estate
2187 will be kindly overlooked on your side, and not lead you to reject the
2188 offered olive-branch. I cannot be otherwise than concerned at being the
2189 means of injuring your amiable daughters, and beg leave to apologise for
2190 it, as well as to assure you of my readiness to make them every possible
2191 amends--but of this hereafter. If you should have no objection to
2192 receive me into your house, I propose myself the satisfaction of waiting
2193 on you and your family, Monday, November 18th, by four o'clock, and
2194 shall probably trespass on your hospitality till the Saturday se'ennight
2195 following, which I can do without any inconvenience, as Lady Catherine
2196 is far from objecting to my occasional absence on a Sunday, provided
2197 that some other clergyman is engaged to do the duty of the day.--I
2198 remain, dear sir, with respectful compliments to your lady and
2199 daughters, your well-wisher and friend,
2200
2201 "WILLIAM COLLINS"
2202
2203 "At four o'clock, therefore, we may expect this peace-making gentleman,"
2204 said Mr. Bennet, as he folded up the letter. "He seems to be a most
2205 conscientious and polite young man, upon my word, and I doubt not will
2206 prove a valuable acquaintance, especially if Lady Catherine should be so
2207 indulgent as to let him come to us again."
2208
2209 "There is some sense in what he says about the girls, however, and if
2210 he is disposed to make them any amends, I shall not be the person to
2211 discourage him."
2212
2213 "Though it is difficult," said Jane, "to guess in what way he can mean
2214 to make us the atonement he thinks our due, the wish is certainly to his
2215 credit."
2216
2217 Elizabeth was chiefly struck by his extraordinary deference for Lady
2218 Catherine, and his kind intention of christening, marrying, and burying
2219 his parishioners whenever it were required.
2220
2221 "He must be an oddity, I think," said she. "I cannot make him
2222 out.--There is something very pompous in his style.--And what can he
2223 mean by apologising for being next in the entail?--We cannot suppose he
2224 would help it if he could.--Could he be a sensible man, sir?"
2225
2226 "No, my dear, I think not. I have great hopes of finding him quite the
2227 reverse. There is a mixture of servility and self-importance in his
2228 letter, which promises well. I am impatient to see him."
2229
2230 "In point of composition," said Mary, "the letter does not seem
2231 defective. The idea of the olive-branch perhaps is not wholly new, yet I
2232 think it is well expressed."
2233
2234 To Catherine and Lydia, neither the letter nor its writer were in any
2235 degree interesting. It was next to impossible that their cousin should
2236 come in a scarlet coat, and it was now some weeks since they had
2237 received pleasure from the society of a man in any other colour. As for
2238 their mother, Mr. Collins's letter had done away much of her ill-will,
2239 and she was preparing to see him with a degree of composure which
2240 astonished her husband and daughters.
2241
2242 Mr. Collins was punctual to his time, and was received with great
2243 politeness by the whole family. Mr. Bennet indeed said little; but the
2244 ladies were ready enough to talk, and Mr. Collins seemed neither in
2245 need of encouragement, nor inclined to be silent himself. He was a
2246 tall, heavy-looking young man of five-and-twenty. His air was grave and
2247 stately, and his manners were very formal. He had not been long seated
2248 before he complimented Mrs. Bennet on having so fine a family of
2249 daughters; said he had heard much of their beauty, but that in this
2250 instance fame had fallen short of the truth; and added, that he did
2251 not doubt her seeing them all in due time disposed of in marriage. This
2252 gallantry was not much to the taste of some of his hearers; but Mrs.
2253 Bennet, who quarreled with no compliments, answered most readily.
2254
2255 "You are very kind, I am sure; and I wish with all my heart it may
2256 prove so, for else they will be destitute enough. Things are settled so
2257 oddly."
2258
2259 "You allude, perhaps, to the entail of this estate."
2260
2261 "Ah! sir, I do indeed. It is a grievous affair to my poor girls, you
2262 must confess. Not that I mean to find fault with _you_, for such things
2263 I know are all chance in this world. There is no knowing how estates
2264 will go when once they come to be entailed."
2265
2266 "I am very sensible, madam, of the hardship to my fair cousins, and
2267 could say much on the subject, but that I am cautious of appearing
2268 forward and precipitate. But I can assure the young ladies that I come
2269 prepared to admire them. At present I will not say more; but, perhaps,
2270 when we are better acquainted--"
2271
2272 He was interrupted by a summons to dinner; and the girls smiled on each
2273 other. They were not the only objects of Mr. Collins's admiration. The
2274 hall, the dining-room, and all its furniture, were examined and praised;
2275 and his commendation of everything would have touched Mrs. Bennet's
2276 heart, but for the mortifying supposition of his viewing it all as his
2277 own future property. The dinner too in its turn was highly admired; and
2278 he begged to know to which of his fair cousins the excellency of its
2279 cooking was owing. But he was set right there by Mrs. Bennet, who
2280 assured him with some asperity that they were very well able to keep a
2281 good cook, and that her daughters had nothing to do in the kitchen. He
2282 begged pardon for having displeased her. In a softened tone she declared
2283 herself not at all offended; but he continued to apologise for about a
2284 quarter of an hour.
2285
2286
2287
2288 Chapter 14
2289
2290
2291 During dinner, Mr. Bennet scarcely spoke at all; but when the servants
2292 were withdrawn, he thought it time to have some conversation with his
2293 guest, and therefore started a subject in which he expected him to
2294 shine, by observing that he seemed very fortunate in his patroness. Lady
2295 Catherine de Bourgh's attention to his wishes, and consideration for
2296 his comfort, appeared very remarkable. Mr. Bennet could not have chosen
2297 better. Mr. Collins was eloquent in her praise. The subject elevated him
2298 to more than usual solemnity of manner, and with a most important aspect
2299 he protested that "he had never in his life witnessed such behaviour in
2300 a person of rank--such affability and condescension, as he had himself
2301 experienced from Lady Catherine. She had been graciously pleased to
2302 approve of both of the discourses which he had already had the honour of
2303 preaching before her. She had also asked him twice to dine at Rosings,
2304 and had sent for him only the Saturday before, to make up her pool of
2305 quadrille in the evening. Lady Catherine was reckoned proud by many
2306 people he knew, but _he_ had never seen anything but affability in her.
2307 She had always spoken to him as she would to any other gentleman; she
2308 made not the smallest objection to his joining in the society of the
2309 neighbourhood nor to his leaving the parish occasionally for a week or
2310 two, to visit his relations. She had even condescended to advise him to
2311 marry as soon as he could, provided he chose with discretion; and had
2312 once paid him a visit in his humble parsonage, where she had perfectly
2313 approved all the alterations he had been making, and had even vouchsafed
2314 to suggest some herself--some shelves in the closet up stairs."
2315
2316 "That is all very proper and civil, I am sure," said Mrs. Bennet, "and
2317 I dare say she is a very agreeable woman. It is a pity that great ladies
2318 in general are not more like her. Does she live near you, sir?"
2319
2320 "The garden in which stands my humble abode is separated only by a lane
2321 from Rosings Park, her ladyship's residence."
2322
2323 "I think you said she was a widow, sir? Has she any family?"
2324
2325 "She has only one daughter, the heiress of Rosings, and of very
2326 extensive property."
2327
2328 "Ah!" said Mrs. Bennet, shaking her head, "then she is better off than
2329 many girls. And what sort of young lady is she? Is she handsome?"
2330
2331 "She is a most charming young lady indeed. Lady Catherine herself says
2332 that, in point of true beauty, Miss de Bourgh is far superior to the
2333 handsomest of her sex, because there is that in her features which marks
2334 the young lady of distinguished birth. She is unfortunately of a sickly
2335 constitution, which has prevented her from making that progress in many
2336 accomplishments which she could not have otherwise failed of, as I am
2337 informed by the lady who superintended her education, and who still
2338 resides with them. But she is perfectly amiable, and often condescends
2339 to drive by my humble abode in her little phaeton and ponies."
2340
2341 "Has she been presented? I do not remember her name among the ladies at
2342 court."
2343
2344 "Her indifferent state of health unhappily prevents her being in town;
2345 and by that means, as I told Lady Catherine one day, has deprived the
2346 British court of its brightest ornament. Her ladyship seemed pleased
2347 with the idea; and you may imagine that I am happy on every occasion to
2348 offer those little delicate compliments which are always acceptable
2349 to ladies. I have more than once observed to Lady Catherine, that
2350 her charming daughter seemed born to be a duchess, and that the most
2351 elevated rank, instead of giving her consequence, would be adorned by
2352 her. These are the kind of little things which please her ladyship, and
2353 it is a sort of attention which I conceive myself peculiarly bound to
2354 pay."
2355
2356 "You judge very properly," said Mr. Bennet, "and it is happy for you
2357 that you possess the talent of flattering with delicacy. May I ask
2358 whether these pleasing attentions proceed from the impulse of the
2359 moment, or are the result of previous study?"
2360
2361 "They arise chiefly from what is passing at the time, and though I
2362 sometimes amuse myself with suggesting and arranging such little elegant
2363 compliments as may be adapted to ordinary occasions, I always wish to
2364 give them as unstudied an air as possible."
2365
2366 Mr. Bennet's expectations were fully answered. His cousin was as absurd
2367 as he had hoped, and he listened to him with the keenest enjoyment,
2368 maintaining at the same time the most resolute composure of countenance,
2369 and, except in an occasional glance at Elizabeth, requiring no partner
2370 in his pleasure.
2371
2372 By tea-time, however, the dose had been enough, and Mr. Bennet was glad
2373 to take his guest into the drawing-room again, and, when tea was over,
2374 glad to invite him to read aloud to the ladies. Mr. Collins readily
2375 assented, and a book was produced; but, on beholding it (for everything
2376 announced it to be from a circulating library), he started back, and
2377 begging pardon, protested that he never read novels. Kitty stared at
2378 him, and Lydia exclaimed. Other books were produced, and after some
2379 deliberation he chose Fordyce's Sermons. Lydia gaped as he opened the
2380 volume, and before he had, with very monotonous solemnity, read three
2381 pages, she interrupted him with:
2382
2383 "Do you know, mamma, that my uncle Phillips talks of turning away
2384 Richard; and if he does, Colonel Forster will hire him. My aunt told me
2385 so herself on Saturday. I shall walk to Meryton to-morrow to hear more
2386 about it, and to ask when Mr. Denny comes back from town."
2387
2388 Lydia was bid by her two eldest sisters to hold her tongue; but Mr.
2389 Collins, much offended, laid aside his book, and said:
2390
2391 "I have often observed how little young ladies are interested by books
2392 of a serious stamp, though written solely for their benefit. It amazes
2393 me, I confess; for, certainly, there can be nothing so advantageous to
2394 them as instruction. But I will no longer importune my young cousin."
2395
2396 Then turning to Mr. Bennet, he offered himself as his antagonist at
2397 backgammon. Mr. Bennet accepted the challenge, observing that he acted
2398 very wisely in leaving the girls to their own trifling amusements.
2399 Mrs. Bennet and her daughters apologised most civilly for Lydia's
2400 interruption, and promised that it should not occur again, if he would
2401 resume his book; but Mr. Collins, after assuring them that he bore his
2402 young cousin no ill-will, and should never resent her behaviour as any
2403 affront, seated himself at another table with Mr. Bennet, and prepared
2404 for backgammon.
2405
2406
2407
2408 Chapter 15
2409
2410
2411 Mr. Collins was not a sensible man, and the deficiency of nature had
2412 been but little assisted by education or society; the greatest part
2413 of his life having been spent under the guidance of an illiterate and
2414 miserly father; and though he belonged to one of the universities, he
2415 had merely kept the necessary terms, without forming at it any useful
2416 acquaintance. The subjection in which his father had brought him up had
2417 given him originally great humility of manner; but it was now a
2418 good deal counteracted by the self-conceit of a weak head, living in
2419 retirement, and the consequential feelings of early and unexpected
2420 prosperity. A fortunate chance had recommended him to Lady Catherine de
2421 Bourgh when the living of Hunsford was vacant; and the respect which
2422 he felt for her high rank, and his veneration for her as his patroness,
2423 mingling with a very good opinion of himself, of his authority as a
2424 clergyman, and his right as a rector, made him altogether a mixture of
2425 pride and obsequiousness, self-importance and humility.
2426
2427 Having now a good house and a very sufficient income, he intended to
2428 marry; and in seeking a reconciliation with the Longbourn family he had
2429 a wife in view, as he meant to choose one of the daughters, if he found
2430 them as handsome and amiable as they were represented by common report.
2431 This was his plan of amends--of atonement--for inheriting their father's
2432 estate; and he thought it an excellent one, full of eligibility and
2433 suitableness, and excessively generous and disinterested on his own
2434 part.
2435
2436 His plan did not vary on seeing them. Miss Bennet's lovely face
2437 confirmed his views, and established all his strictest notions of what
2438 was due to seniority; and for the first evening _she_ was his settled
2439 choice. The next morning, however, made an alteration; for in a
2440 quarter of an hour's tete-a-tete with Mrs. Bennet before breakfast, a
2441 conversation beginning with his parsonage-house, and leading naturally
2442 to the avowal of his hopes, that a mistress might be found for it at
2443 Longbourn, produced from her, amid very complaisant smiles and general
2444 encouragement, a caution against the very Jane he had fixed on. "As to
2445 her _younger_ daughters, she could not take upon her to say--she could
2446 not positively answer--but she did not _know_ of any prepossession; her
2447 _eldest_ daughter, she must just mention--she felt it incumbent on her
2448 to hint, was likely to be very soon engaged."
2449
2450 Mr. Collins had only to change from Jane to Elizabeth--and it was soon
2451 done--done while Mrs. Bennet was stirring the fire. Elizabeth, equally
2452 next to Jane in birth and beauty, succeeded her of course.
2453
2454 Mrs. Bennet treasured up the hint, and trusted that she might soon have
2455 two daughters married; and the man whom she could not bear to speak of
2456 the day before was now high in her good graces.
2457
2458 Lydia's intention of walking to Meryton was not forgotten; every sister
2459 except Mary agreed to go with her; and Mr. Collins was to attend them,
2460 at the request of Mr. Bennet, who was most anxious to get rid of him,
2461 and have his library to himself; for thither Mr. Collins had followed
2462 him after breakfast; and there he would continue, nominally engaged with
2463 one of the largest folios in the collection, but really talking to Mr.
2464 Bennet, with little cessation, of his house and garden at Hunsford. Such
2465 doings discomposed Mr. Bennet exceedingly. In his library he had been
2466 always sure of leisure and tranquillity; and though prepared, as he told
2467 Elizabeth, to meet with folly and conceit in every other room of the
2468 house, he was used to be free from them there; his civility, therefore,
2469 was most prompt in inviting Mr. Collins to join his daughters in their
2470 walk; and Mr. Collins, being in fact much better fitted for a walker
2471 than a reader, was extremely pleased to close his large book, and go.
2472
2473 In pompous nothings on his side, and civil assents on that of his
2474 cousins, their time passed till they entered Meryton. The attention of
2475 the younger ones was then no longer to be gained by him. Their eyes were
2476 immediately wandering up in the street in quest of the officers, and
2477 nothing less than a very smart bonnet indeed, or a really new muslin in
2478 a shop window, could recall them.
2479
2480 But the attention of every lady was soon caught by a young man, whom
2481 they had never seen before, of most gentlemanlike appearance, walking
2482 with another officer on the other side of the way. The officer was
2483 the very Mr. Denny concerning whose return from London Lydia came
2484 to inquire, and he bowed as they passed. All were struck with the
2485 stranger's air, all wondered who he could be; and Kitty and Lydia,
2486 determined if possible to find out, led the way across the street, under
2487 pretense of wanting something in an opposite shop, and fortunately
2488 had just gained the pavement when the two gentlemen, turning back, had
2489 reached the same spot. Mr. Denny addressed them directly, and entreated
2490 permission to introduce his friend, Mr. Wickham, who had returned with
2491 him the day before from town, and he was happy to say had accepted a
2492 commission in their corps. This was exactly as it should be; for the
2493 young man wanted only regimentals to make him completely charming.
2494 His appearance was greatly in his favour; he had all the best part of
2495 beauty, a fine countenance, a good figure, and very pleasing address.
2496 The introduction was followed up on his side by a happy readiness
2497 of conversation--a readiness at the same time perfectly correct and
2498 unassuming; and the whole party were still standing and talking together
2499 very agreeably, when the sound of horses drew their notice, and Darcy
2500 and Bingley were seen riding down the street. On distinguishing the
2501 ladies of the group, the two gentlemen came directly towards them, and
2502 began the usual civilities. Bingley was the principal spokesman, and
2503 Miss Bennet the principal object. He was then, he said, on his way to
2504 Longbourn on purpose to inquire after her. Mr. Darcy corroborated
2505 it with a bow, and was beginning to determine not to fix his eyes
2506 on Elizabeth, when they were suddenly arrested by the sight of the
2507 stranger, and Elizabeth happening to see the countenance of both as they
2508 looked at each other, was all astonishment at the effect of the meeting.
2509 Both changed colour, one looked white, the other red. Mr. Wickham,
2510 after a few moments, touched his hat--a salutation which Mr. Darcy just
2511 deigned to return. What could be the meaning of it? It was impossible to
2512 imagine; it was impossible not to long to know.
2513
2514 In another minute, Mr. Bingley, but without seeming to have noticed what
2515 passed, took leave and rode on with his friend.
2516
2517 Mr. Denny and Mr. Wickham walked with the young ladies to the door of
2518 Mr. Phillip's house, and then made their bows, in spite of Miss Lydia's
2519 pressing entreaties that they should come in, and even in spite of
2520 Mrs. Phillips's throwing up the parlour window and loudly seconding the
2521 invitation.
2522
2523 Mrs. Phillips was always glad to see her nieces; and the two eldest,
2524 from their recent absence, were particularly welcome, and she was
2525 eagerly expressing her surprise at their sudden return home, which, as
2526 their own carriage had not fetched them, she should have known nothing
2527 about, if she had not happened to see Mr. Jones's shop-boy in the
2528 street, who had told her that they were not to send any more draughts to
2529 Netherfield because the Miss Bennets were come away, when her civility
2530 was claimed towards Mr. Collins by Jane's introduction of him. She
2531 received him with her very best politeness, which he returned with
2532 as much more, apologising for his intrusion, without any previous
2533 acquaintance with her, which he could not help flattering himself,
2534 however, might be justified by his relationship to the young ladies who
2535 introduced him to her notice. Mrs. Phillips was quite awed by such an
2536 excess of good breeding; but her contemplation of one stranger was soon
2537 put to an end by exclamations and inquiries about the other; of whom,
2538 however, she could only tell her nieces what they already knew, that
2539 Mr. Denny had brought him from London, and that he was to have a
2540 lieutenant's commission in the ----shire. She had been watching him the
2541 last hour, she said, as he walked up and down the street, and had Mr.
2542 Wickham appeared, Kitty and Lydia would certainly have continued the
2543 occupation, but unluckily no one passed windows now except a few of the
2544 officers, who, in comparison with the stranger, were become "stupid,
2545 disagreeable fellows." Some of them were to dine with the Phillipses
2546 the next day, and their aunt promised to make her husband call on Mr.
2547 Wickham, and give him an invitation also, if the family from Longbourn
2548 would come in the evening. This was agreed to, and Mrs. Phillips
2549 protested that they would have a nice comfortable noisy game of lottery
2550 tickets, and a little bit of hot supper afterwards. The prospect of such
2551 delights was very cheering, and they parted in mutual good spirits. Mr.
2552 Collins repeated his apologies in quitting the room, and was assured
2553 with unwearying civility that they were perfectly needless.
2554
2555 As they walked home, Elizabeth related to Jane what she had seen pass
2556 between the two gentlemen; but though Jane would have defended either
2557 or both, had they appeared to be in the wrong, she could no more explain
2558 such behaviour than her sister.
2559
2560 Mr. Collins on his return highly gratified Mrs. Bennet by admiring
2561 Mrs. Phillips's manners and politeness. He protested that, except Lady
2562 Catherine and her daughter, he had never seen a more elegant woman;
2563 for she had not only received him with the utmost civility, but even
2564 pointedly included him in her invitation for the next evening, although
2565 utterly unknown to her before. Something, he supposed, might be
2566 attributed to his connection with them, but yet he had never met with so
2567 much attention in the whole course of his life.
2568
2569
2570
2571 Chapter 16
2572
2573
2574 As no objection was made to the young people's engagement with their
2575 aunt, and all Mr. Collins's scruples of leaving Mr. and Mrs. Bennet for
2576 a single evening during his visit were most steadily resisted, the coach
2577 conveyed him and his five cousins at a suitable hour to Meryton; and
2578 the girls had the pleasure of hearing, as they entered the drawing-room,
2579 that Mr. Wickham had accepted their uncle's invitation, and was then in
2580 the house.
2581
2582 When this information was given, and they had all taken their seats, Mr.
2583 Collins was at leisure to look around him and admire, and he was so much
2584 struck with the size and furniture of the apartment, that he declared he
2585 might almost have supposed himself in the small summer breakfast
2586 parlour at Rosings; a comparison that did not at first convey much
2587 gratification; but when Mrs. Phillips understood from him what
2588 Rosings was, and who was its proprietor--when she had listened to the
2589 description of only one of Lady Catherine's drawing-rooms, and found
2590 that the chimney-piece alone had cost eight hundred pounds, she felt all
2591 the force of the compliment, and would hardly have resented a comparison
2592 with the housekeeper's room.
2593
2594 In describing to her all the grandeur of Lady Catherine and her mansion,
2595 with occasional digressions in praise of his own humble abode, and
2596 the improvements it was receiving, he was happily employed until the
2597 gentlemen joined them; and he found in Mrs. Phillips a very attentive
2598 listener, whose opinion of his consequence increased with what she
2599 heard, and who was resolving to retail it all among her neighbours as
2600 soon as she could. To the girls, who could not listen to their cousin,
2601 and who had nothing to do but to wish for an instrument, and examine
2602 their own indifferent imitations of china on the mantelpiece, the
2603 interval of waiting appeared very long. It was over at last, however.
2604 The gentlemen did approach, and when Mr. Wickham walked into the room,
2605 Elizabeth felt that she had neither been seeing him before, nor thinking
2606 of him since, with the smallest degree of unreasonable admiration.
2607 The officers of the ----shire were in general a very creditable,
2608 gentlemanlike set, and the best of them were of the present party; but
2609 Mr. Wickham was as far beyond them all in person, countenance, air, and
2610 walk, as _they_ were superior to the broad-faced, stuffy uncle Phillips,
2611 breathing port wine, who followed them into the room.
2612
2613 Mr. Wickham was the happy man towards whom almost every female eye was
2614 turned, and Elizabeth was the happy woman by whom he finally seated
2615 himself; and the agreeable manner in which he immediately fell into
2616 conversation, though it was only on its being a wet night, made her feel
2617 that the commonest, dullest, most threadbare topic might be rendered
2618 interesting by the skill of the speaker.
2619
2620 With such rivals for the notice of the fair as Mr. Wickham and the
2621 officers, Mr. Collins seemed to sink into insignificance; to the young
2622 ladies he certainly was nothing; but he had still at intervals a kind
2623 listener in Mrs. Phillips, and was by her watchfulness, most abundantly
2624 supplied with coffee and muffin. When the card-tables were placed, he
2625 had the opportunity of obliging her in turn, by sitting down to whist.
2626
2627 "I know little of the game at present," said he, "but I shall be glad
2628 to improve myself, for in my situation in life--" Mrs. Phillips was very
2629 glad for his compliance, but could not wait for his reason.
2630
2631 Mr. Wickham did not play at whist, and with ready delight was he
2632 received at the other table between Elizabeth and Lydia. At first there
2633 seemed danger of Lydia's engrossing him entirely, for she was a most
2634 determined talker; but being likewise extremely fond of lottery tickets,
2635 she soon grew too much interested in the game, too eager in making bets
2636 and exclaiming after prizes to have attention for anyone in particular.
2637 Allowing for the common demands of the game, Mr. Wickham was therefore
2638 at leisure to talk to Elizabeth, and she was very willing to hear
2639 him, though what she chiefly wished to hear she could not hope to be
2640 told--the history of his acquaintance with Mr. Darcy. She dared not
2641 even mention that gentleman. Her curiosity, however, was unexpectedly
2642 relieved. Mr. Wickham began the subject himself. He inquired how far
2643 Netherfield was from Meryton; and, after receiving her answer, asked in
2644 a hesitating manner how long Mr. Darcy had been staying there.
2645
2646 "About a month," said Elizabeth; and then, unwilling to let the subject
2647 drop, added, "He is a man of very large property in Derbyshire, I
2648 understand."
2649
2650 "Yes," replied Mr. Wickham; "his estate there is a noble one. A clear
2651 ten thousand per annum. You could not have met with a person more
2652 capable of giving you certain information on that head than myself, for
2653 I have been connected with his family in a particular manner from my
2654 infancy."
2655
2656 Elizabeth could not but look surprised.
2657
2658 "You may well be surprised, Miss Bennet, at such an assertion, after
2659 seeing, as you probably might, the very cold manner of our meeting
2660 yesterday. Are you much acquainted with Mr. Darcy?"
2661
2662 "As much as I ever wish to be," cried Elizabeth very warmly. "I have
2663 spent four days in the same house with him, and I think him very
2664 disagreeable."
2665
2666 "I have no right to give _my_ opinion," said Wickham, "as to his being
2667 agreeable or otherwise. I am not qualified to form one. I have known him
2668 too long and too well to be a fair judge. It is impossible for _me_
2669 to be impartial. But I believe your opinion of him would in general
2670 astonish--and perhaps you would not express it quite so strongly
2671 anywhere else. Here you are in your own family."
2672
2673 "Upon my word, I say no more _here_ than I might say in any house in
2674 the neighbourhood, except Netherfield. He is not at all liked in
2675 Hertfordshire. Everybody is disgusted with his pride. You will not find
2676 him more favourably spoken of by anyone."
2677
2678 "I cannot pretend to be sorry," said Wickham, after a short
2679 interruption, "that he or that any man should not be estimated beyond
2680 their deserts; but with _him_ I believe it does not often happen. The
2681 world is blinded by his fortune and consequence, or frightened by his
2682 high and imposing manners, and sees him only as he chooses to be seen."
2683
2684 "I should take him, even on _my_ slight acquaintance, to be an
2685 ill-tempered man." Wickham only shook his head.
2686
2687 "I wonder," said he, at the next opportunity of speaking, "whether he is
2688 likely to be in this country much longer."
2689
2690 "I do not at all know; but I _heard_ nothing of his going away when I
2691 was at Netherfield. I hope your plans in favour of the ----shire will
2692 not be affected by his being in the neighbourhood."
2693
2694 "Oh! no--it is not for _me_ to be driven away by Mr. Darcy. If _he_
2695 wishes to avoid seeing _me_, he must go. We are not on friendly terms,
2696 and it always gives me pain to meet him, but I have no reason for
2697 avoiding _him_ but what I might proclaim before all the world, a sense
2698 of very great ill-usage, and most painful regrets at his being what he
2699 is. His father, Miss Bennet, the late Mr. Darcy, was one of the best men
2700 that ever breathed, and the truest friend I ever had; and I can never
2701 be in company with this Mr. Darcy without being grieved to the soul by
2702 a thousand tender recollections. His behaviour to myself has been
2703 scandalous; but I verily believe I could forgive him anything and
2704 everything, rather than his disappointing the hopes and disgracing the
2705 memory of his father."
2706
2707 Elizabeth found the interest of the subject increase, and listened with
2708 all her heart; but the delicacy of it prevented further inquiry.
2709
2710 Mr. Wickham began to speak on more general topics, Meryton, the
2711 neighbourhood, the society, appearing highly pleased with all that
2712 he had yet seen, and speaking of the latter with gentle but very
2713 intelligible gallantry.
2714
2715 "It was the prospect of constant society, and good society," he added,
2716 "which was my chief inducement to enter the ----shire. I knew it to be
2717 a most respectable, agreeable corps, and my friend Denny tempted me
2718 further by his account of their present quarters, and the very great
2719 attentions and excellent acquaintances Meryton had procured them.
2720 Society, I own, is necessary to me. I have been a disappointed man, and
2721 my spirits will not bear solitude. I _must_ have employment and society.
2722 A military life is not what I was intended for, but circumstances have
2723 now made it eligible. The church _ought_ to have been my profession--I
2724 was brought up for the church, and I should at this time have been in
2725 possession of a most valuable living, had it pleased the gentleman we
2726 were speaking of just now."
2727
2728 "Indeed!"
2729
2730 "Yes--the late Mr. Darcy bequeathed me the next presentation of the best
2731 living in his gift. He was my godfather, and excessively attached to me.
2732 I cannot do justice to his kindness. He meant to provide for me amply,
2733 and thought he had done it; but when the living fell, it was given
2734 elsewhere."
2735
2736 "Good heavens!" cried Elizabeth; "but how could _that_ be? How could his
2737 will be disregarded? Why did you not seek legal redress?"
2738
2739 "There was just such an informality in the terms of the bequest as to
2740 give me no hope from law. A man of honour could not have doubted the
2741 intention, but Mr. Darcy chose to doubt it--or to treat it as a merely
2742 conditional recommendation, and to assert that I had forfeited all claim
2743 to it by extravagance, imprudence--in short anything or nothing. Certain
2744 it is, that the living became vacant two years ago, exactly as I was
2745 of an age to hold it, and that it was given to another man; and no
2746 less certain is it, that I cannot accuse myself of having really done
2747 anything to deserve to lose it. I have a warm, unguarded temper, and
2748 I may have spoken my opinion _of_ him, and _to_ him, too freely. I can
2749 recall nothing worse. But the fact is, that we are very different sort
2750 of men, and that he hates me."
2751
2752 "This is quite shocking! He deserves to be publicly disgraced."
2753
2754 "Some time or other he _will_ be--but it shall not be by _me_. Till I
2755 can forget his father, I can never defy or expose _him_."
2756
2757 Elizabeth honoured him for such feelings, and thought him handsomer than
2758 ever as he expressed them.
2759
2760 "But what," said she, after a pause, "can have been his motive? What can
2761 have induced him to behave so cruelly?"
2762
2763 "A thorough, determined dislike of me--a dislike which I cannot but
2764 attribute in some measure to jealousy. Had the late Mr. Darcy liked me
2765 less, his son might have borne with me better; but his father's uncommon
2766 attachment to me irritated him, I believe, very early in life. He had
2767 not a temper to bear the sort of competition in which we stood--the sort
2768 of preference which was often given me."
2769
2770 "I had not thought Mr. Darcy so bad as this--though I have never liked
2771 him. I had not thought so very ill of him. I had supposed him to be
2772 despising his fellow-creatures in general, but did not suspect him of
2773 descending to such malicious revenge, such injustice, such inhumanity as
2774 this."
2775
2776 After a few minutes' reflection, however, she continued, "I _do_
2777 remember his boasting one day, at Netherfield, of the implacability of
2778 his resentments, of his having an unforgiving temper. His disposition
2779 must be dreadful."
2780
2781 "I will not trust myself on the subject," replied Wickham; "I can hardly
2782 be just to him."
2783
2784 Elizabeth was again deep in thought, and after a time exclaimed, "To
2785 treat in such a manner the godson, the friend, the favourite of his
2786 father!" She could have added, "A young man, too, like _you_, whose very
2787 countenance may vouch for your being amiable"--but she contented herself
2788 with, "and one, too, who had probably been his companion from childhood,
2789 connected together, as I think you said, in the closest manner!"
2790
2791 "We were born in the same parish, within the same park; the greatest
2792 part of our youth was passed together; inmates of the same house,
2793 sharing the same amusements, objects of the same parental care. _My_
2794 father began life in the profession which your uncle, Mr. Phillips,
2795 appears to do so much credit to--but he gave up everything to be of
2796 use to the late Mr. Darcy and devoted all his time to the care of the
2797 Pemberley property. He was most highly esteemed by Mr. Darcy, a most
2798 intimate, confidential friend. Mr. Darcy often acknowledged himself to
2799 be under the greatest obligations to my father's active superintendence,
2800 and when, immediately before my father's death, Mr. Darcy gave him a
2801 voluntary promise of providing for me, I am convinced that he felt it to
2802 be as much a debt of gratitude to _him_, as of his affection to myself."
2803
2804 "How strange!" cried Elizabeth. "How abominable! I wonder that the very
2805 pride of this Mr. Darcy has not made him just to you! If from no better
2806 motive, that he should not have been too proud to be dishonest--for
2807 dishonesty I must call it."
2808
2809 "It _is_ wonderful," replied Wickham, "for almost all his actions may
2810 be traced to pride; and pride had often been his best friend. It has
2811 connected him nearer with virtue than with any other feeling. But we are
2812 none of us consistent, and in his behaviour to me there were stronger
2813 impulses even than pride."
2814
2815 "Can such abominable pride as his have ever done him good?"
2816
2817 "Yes. It has often led him to be liberal and generous, to give his money
2818 freely, to display hospitality, to assist his tenants, and relieve the
2819 poor. Family pride, and _filial_ pride--for he is very proud of what
2820 his father was--have done this. Not to appear to disgrace his family,
2821 to degenerate from the popular qualities, or lose the influence of the
2822 Pemberley House, is a powerful motive. He has also _brotherly_ pride,
2823 which, with _some_ brotherly affection, makes him a very kind and
2824 careful guardian of his sister, and you will hear him generally cried up
2825 as the most attentive and best of brothers."
2826
2827 "What sort of girl is Miss Darcy?"
2828
2829 He shook his head. "I wish I could call her amiable. It gives me pain to
2830 speak ill of a Darcy. But she is too much like her brother--very, very
2831 proud. As a child, she was affectionate and pleasing, and extremely fond
2832 of me; and I have devoted hours and hours to her amusement. But she is
2833 nothing to me now. She is a handsome girl, about fifteen or sixteen,
2834 and, I understand, highly accomplished. Since her father's death, her
2835 home has been London, where a lady lives with her, and superintends her
2836 education."
2837
2838 After many pauses and many trials of other subjects, Elizabeth could not
2839 help reverting once more to the first, and saying:
2840
2841 "I am astonished at his intimacy with Mr. Bingley! How can Mr. Bingley,
2842 who seems good humour itself, and is, I really believe, truly amiable,
2843 be in friendship with such a man? How can they suit each other? Do you
2844 know Mr. Bingley?"
2845
2846 "Not at all."
2847
2848 "He is a sweet-tempered, amiable, charming man. He cannot know what Mr.
2849 Darcy is."
2850
2851 "Probably not; but Mr. Darcy can please where he chooses. He does not
2852 want abilities. He can be a conversible companion if he thinks it worth
2853 his while. Among those who are at all his equals in consequence, he is
2854 a very different man from what he is to the less prosperous. His
2855 pride never deserts him; but with the rich he is liberal-minded, just,
2856 sincere, rational, honourable, and perhaps agreeable--allowing something
2857 for fortune and figure."
2858
2859 The whist party soon afterwards breaking up, the players gathered round
2860 the other table and Mr. Collins took his station between his cousin
2861 Elizabeth and Mrs. Phillips. The usual inquiries as to his success were
2862 made by the latter. It had not been very great; he had lost every
2863 point; but when Mrs. Phillips began to express her concern thereupon,
2864 he assured her with much earnest gravity that it was not of the least
2865 importance, that he considered the money as a mere trifle, and begged
2866 that she would not make herself uneasy.
2867
2868 "I know very well, madam," said he, "that when persons sit down to a
2869 card-table, they must take their chances of these things, and happily I
2870 am not in such circumstances as to make five shillings any object. There
2871 are undoubtedly many who could not say the same, but thanks to Lady
2872 Catherine de Bourgh, I am removed far beyond the necessity of regarding
2873 little matters."
2874
2875 Mr. Wickham's attention was caught; and after observing Mr. Collins for
2876 a few moments, he asked Elizabeth in a low voice whether her relation
2877 was very intimately acquainted with the family of de Bourgh.
2878
2879 "Lady Catherine de Bourgh," she replied, "has very lately given him
2880 a living. I hardly know how Mr. Collins was first introduced to her
2881 notice, but he certainly has not known her long."
2882
2883 "You know of course that Lady Catherine de Bourgh and Lady Anne Darcy
2884 were sisters; consequently that she is aunt to the present Mr. Darcy."
2885
2886 "No, indeed, I did not. I knew nothing at all of Lady Catherine's
2887 connections. I never heard of her existence till the day before
2888 yesterday."
2889
2890 "Her daughter, Miss de Bourgh, will have a very large fortune, and it is
2891 believed that she and her cousin will unite the two estates."
2892
2893 This information made Elizabeth smile, as she thought of poor Miss
2894 Bingley. Vain indeed must be all her attentions, vain and useless her
2895 affection for his sister and her praise of himself, if he were already
2896 self-destined for another.
2897
2898 "Mr. Collins," said she, "speaks highly both of Lady Catherine and her
2899 daughter; but from some particulars that he has related of her ladyship,
2900 I suspect his gratitude misleads him, and that in spite of her being his
2901 patroness, she is an arrogant, conceited woman."
2902
2903 "I believe her to be both in a great degree," replied Wickham; "I have
2904 not seen her for many years, but I very well remember that I never liked
2905 her, and that her manners were dictatorial and insolent. She has the
2906 reputation of being remarkably sensible and clever; but I rather believe
2907 she derives part of her abilities from her rank and fortune, part from
2908 her authoritative manner, and the rest from the pride for her
2909 nephew, who chooses that everyone connected with him should have an
2910 understanding of the first class."
2911
2912 Elizabeth allowed that he had given a very rational account of it, and
2913 they continued talking together, with mutual satisfaction till supper
2914 put an end to cards, and gave the rest of the ladies their share of Mr.
2915 Wickham's attentions. There could be no conversation in the noise
2916 of Mrs. Phillips's supper party, but his manners recommended him to
2917 everybody. Whatever he said, was said well; and whatever he did, done
2918 gracefully. Elizabeth went away with her head full of him. She could
2919 think of nothing but of Mr. Wickham, and of what he had told her, all
2920 the way home; but there was not time for her even to mention his name
2921 as they went, for neither Lydia nor Mr. Collins were once silent. Lydia
2922 talked incessantly of lottery tickets, of the fish she had lost and the
2923 fish she had won; and Mr. Collins in describing the civility of Mr. and
2924 Mrs. Phillips, protesting that he did not in the least regard his losses
2925 at whist, enumerating all the dishes at supper, and repeatedly fearing
2926 that he crowded his cousins, had more to say than he could well manage
2927 before the carriage stopped at Longbourn House.
2928
2929
2930
2931 Chapter 17
2932
2933
2934 Elizabeth related to Jane the next day what had passed between Mr.
2935 Wickham and herself. Jane listened with astonishment and concern; she
2936 knew not how to believe that Mr. Darcy could be so unworthy of Mr.
2937 Bingley's regard; and yet, it was not in her nature to question the
2938 veracity of a young man of such amiable appearance as Wickham. The
2939 possibility of his having endured such unkindness, was enough to
2940 interest all her tender feelings; and nothing remained therefore to be
2941 done, but to think well of them both, to defend the conduct of each,
2942 and throw into the account of accident or mistake whatever could not be
2943 otherwise explained.
2944
2945 "They have both," said she, "been deceived, I dare say, in some way
2946 or other, of which we can form no idea. Interested people have perhaps
2947 misrepresented each to the other. It is, in short, impossible for us to
2948 conjecture the causes or circumstances which may have alienated them,
2949 without actual blame on either side."
2950
2951 "Very true, indeed; and now, my dear Jane, what have you got to say on
2952 behalf of the interested people who have probably been concerned in the
2953 business? Do clear _them_ too, or we shall be obliged to think ill of
2954 somebody."
2955
2956 "Laugh as much as you choose, but you will not laugh me out of my
2957 opinion. My dearest Lizzy, do but consider in what a disgraceful light
2958 it places Mr. Darcy, to be treating his father's favourite in such
2959 a manner, one whom his father had promised to provide for. It is
2960 impossible. No man of common humanity, no man who had any value for his
2961 character, could be capable of it. Can his most intimate friends be so
2962 excessively deceived in him? Oh! no."
2963
2964 "I can much more easily believe Mr. Bingley's being imposed on, than
2965 that Mr. Wickham should invent such a history of himself as he gave me
2966 last night; names, facts, everything mentioned without ceremony. If it
2967 be not so, let Mr. Darcy contradict it. Besides, there was truth in his
2968 looks."
2969
2970 "It is difficult indeed--it is distressing. One does not know what to
2971 think."
2972
2973 "I beg your pardon; one knows exactly what to think."
2974
2975 But Jane could think with certainty on only one point--that Mr. Bingley,
2976 if he _had_ been imposed on, would have much to suffer when the affair
2977 became public.
2978
2979 The two young ladies were summoned from the shrubbery, where this
2980 conversation passed, by the arrival of the very persons of whom they had
2981 been speaking; Mr. Bingley and his sisters came to give their personal
2982 invitation for the long-expected ball at Netherfield, which was fixed
2983 for the following Tuesday. The two ladies were delighted to see their
2984 dear friend again, called it an age since they had met, and repeatedly
2985 asked what she had been doing with herself since their separation. To
2986 the rest of the family they paid little attention; avoiding Mrs. Bennet
2987 as much as possible, saying not much to Elizabeth, and nothing at all to
2988 the others. They were soon gone again, rising from their seats with an
2989 activity which took their brother by surprise, and hurrying off as if
2990 eager to escape from Mrs. Bennet's civilities.
2991
2992 The prospect of the Netherfield ball was extremely agreeable to every
2993 female of the family. Mrs. Bennet chose to consider it as given in
2994 compliment to her eldest daughter, and was particularly flattered
2995 by receiving the invitation from Mr. Bingley himself, instead of a
2996 ceremonious card. Jane pictured to herself a happy evening in the
2997 society of her two friends, and the attentions of their brother; and
2998 Elizabeth thought with pleasure of dancing a great deal with Mr.
2999 Wickham, and of seeing a confirmation of everything in Mr. Darcy's look
3000 and behaviour. The happiness anticipated by Catherine and Lydia depended
3001 less on any single event, or any particular person, for though they
3002 each, like Elizabeth, meant to dance half the evening with Mr. Wickham,
3003 he was by no means the only partner who could satisfy them, and a ball
3004 was, at any rate, a ball. And even Mary could assure her family that she
3005 had no disinclination for it.
3006
3007 "While I can have my mornings to myself," said she, "it is enough--I
3008 think it is no sacrifice to join occasionally in evening engagements.
3009 Society has claims on us all; and I profess myself one of those
3010 who consider intervals of recreation and amusement as desirable for
3011 everybody."
3012
3013 Elizabeth's spirits were so high on this occasion, that though she did
3014 not often speak unnecessarily to Mr. Collins, she could not help asking
3015 him whether he intended to accept Mr. Bingley's invitation, and if
3016 he did, whether he would think it proper to join in the evening's
3017 amusement; and she was rather surprised to find that he entertained no
3018 scruple whatever on that head, and was very far from dreading a rebuke
3019 either from the Archbishop, or Lady Catherine de Bourgh, by venturing to
3020 dance.
3021
3022 "I am by no means of the opinion, I assure you," said he, "that a ball
3023 of this kind, given by a young man of character, to respectable people,
3024 can have any evil tendency; and I am so far from objecting to dancing
3025 myself, that I shall hope to be honoured with the hands of all my fair
3026 cousins in the course of the evening; and I take this opportunity of
3027 soliciting yours, Miss Elizabeth, for the two first dances especially,
3028 a preference which I trust my cousin Jane will attribute to the right
3029 cause, and not to any disrespect for her."
3030
3031 Elizabeth felt herself completely taken in. She had fully proposed being
3032 engaged by Mr. Wickham for those very dances; and to have Mr. Collins
3033 instead! her liveliness had never been worse timed. There was no help
3034 for it, however. Mr. Wickham's happiness and her own were perforce
3035 delayed a little longer, and Mr. Collins's proposal accepted with as
3036 good a grace as she could. She was not the better pleased with his
3037 gallantry from the idea it suggested of something more. It now first
3038 struck her, that _she_ was selected from among her sisters as worthy
3039 of being mistress of Hunsford Parsonage, and of assisting to form a
3040 quadrille table at Rosings, in the absence of more eligible visitors.
3041 The idea soon reached to conviction, as she observed his increasing
3042 civilities toward herself, and heard his frequent attempt at a
3043 compliment on her wit and vivacity; and though more astonished than
3044 gratified herself by this effect of her charms, it was not long before
3045 her mother gave her to understand that the probability of their marriage
3046 was extremely agreeable to _her_. Elizabeth, however, did not choose
3047 to take the hint, being well aware that a serious dispute must be the
3048 consequence of any reply. Mr. Collins might never make the offer, and
3049 till he did, it was useless to quarrel about him.
3050
3051 If there had not been a Netherfield ball to prepare for and talk of, the
3052 younger Miss Bennets would have been in a very pitiable state at this
3053 time, for from the day of the invitation, to the day of the ball, there
3054 was such a succession of rain as prevented their walking to Meryton
3055 once. No aunt, no officers, no news could be sought after--the very
3056 shoe-roses for Netherfield were got by proxy. Even Elizabeth might have
3057 found some trial of her patience in weather which totally suspended the
3058 improvement of her acquaintance with Mr. Wickham; and nothing less than
3059 a dance on Tuesday, could have made such a Friday, Saturday, Sunday, and
3060 Monday endurable to Kitty and Lydia.
3061
3062
3063
3064 Chapter 18
3065
3066
3067 Till Elizabeth entered the drawing-room at Netherfield, and looked in
3068 vain for Mr. Wickham among the cluster of red coats there assembled, a
3069 doubt of his being present had never occurred to her. The certainty
3070 of meeting him had not been checked by any of those recollections that
3071 might not unreasonably have alarmed her. She had dressed with more than
3072 usual care, and prepared in the highest spirits for the conquest of all
3073 that remained unsubdued of his heart, trusting that it was not more than
3074 might be won in the course of the evening. But in an instant arose
3075 the dreadful suspicion of his being purposely omitted for Mr. Darcy's
3076 pleasure in the Bingleys' invitation to the officers; and though
3077 this was not exactly the case, the absolute fact of his absence was
3078 pronounced by his friend Denny, to whom Lydia eagerly applied, and who
3079 told them that Wickham had been obliged to go to town on business the
3080 day before, and was not yet returned; adding, with a significant smile,
3081 "I do not imagine his business would have called him away just now, if
3082 he had not wanted to avoid a certain gentleman here."
3083
3084 This part of his intelligence, though unheard by Lydia, was caught by
3085 Elizabeth, and, as it assured her that Darcy was not less answerable for
3086 Wickham's absence than if her first surmise had been just, every
3087 feeling of displeasure against the former was so sharpened by immediate
3088 disappointment, that she could hardly reply with tolerable civility to
3089 the polite inquiries which he directly afterwards approached to make.
3090 Attendance, forbearance, patience with Darcy, was injury to Wickham. She
3091 was resolved against any sort of conversation with him, and turned away
3092 with a degree of ill-humour which she could not wholly surmount even in
3093 speaking to Mr. Bingley, whose blind partiality provoked her.
3094
3095 But Elizabeth was not formed for ill-humour; and though every prospect
3096 of her own was destroyed for the evening, it could not dwell long on her
3097 spirits; and having told all her griefs to Charlotte Lucas, whom she had
3098 not seen for a week, she was soon able to make a voluntary transition
3099 to the oddities of her cousin, and to point him out to her particular
3100 notice. The first two dances, however, brought a return of distress;
3101 they were dances of mortification. Mr. Collins, awkward and solemn,
3102 apologising instead of attending, and often moving wrong without being
3103 aware of it, gave her all the shame and misery which a disagreeable
3104 partner for a couple of dances can give. The moment of her release from
3105 him was ecstasy.
3106
3107 She danced next with an officer, and had the refreshment of talking of
3108 Wickham, and of hearing that he was universally liked. When those dances
3109 were over, she returned to Charlotte Lucas, and was in conversation with
3110 her, when she found herself suddenly addressed by Mr. Darcy who took
3111 her so much by surprise in his application for her hand, that,
3112 without knowing what she did, she accepted him. He walked away again
3113 immediately, and she was left to fret over her own want of presence of
3114 mind; Charlotte tried to console her:
3115
3116 "I dare say you will find him very agreeable."
3117
3118 "Heaven forbid! _That_ would be the greatest misfortune of all! To find
3119 a man agreeable whom one is determined to hate! Do not wish me such an
3120 evil."
3121
3122 When the dancing recommenced, however, and Darcy approached to claim her
3123 hand, Charlotte could not help cautioning her in a whisper, not to be a
3124 simpleton, and allow her fancy for Wickham to make her appear unpleasant
3125 in the eyes of a man ten times his consequence. Elizabeth made no
3126 answer, and took her place in the set, amazed at the dignity to which
3127 she was arrived in being allowed to stand opposite to Mr. Darcy, and
3128 reading in her neighbours' looks, their equal amazement in beholding
3129 it. They stood for some time without speaking a word; and she began to
3130 imagine that their silence was to last through the two dances, and at
3131 first was resolved not to break it; till suddenly fancying that it would
3132 be the greater punishment to her partner to oblige him to talk, she made
3133 some slight observation on the dance. He replied, and was again
3134 silent. After a pause of some minutes, she addressed him a second time
3135 with:--"It is _your_ turn to say something now, Mr. Darcy. I talked
3136 about the dance, and _you_ ought to make some sort of remark on the size
3137 of the room, or the number of couples."
3138
3139 He smiled, and assured her that whatever she wished him to say should be
3140 said.
3141
3142 "Very well. That reply will do for the present. Perhaps by and by I may
3143 observe that private balls are much pleasanter than public ones. But
3144 _now_ we may be silent."
3145
3146 "Do you talk by rule, then, while you are dancing?"
3147
3148 "Sometimes. One must speak a little, you know. It would look odd to be
3149 entirely silent for half an hour together; and yet for the advantage of
3150 _some_, conversation ought to be so arranged, as that they may have the
3151 trouble of saying as little as possible."
3152
3153 "Are you consulting your own feelings in the present case, or do you
3154 imagine that you are gratifying mine?"
3155
3156 "Both," replied Elizabeth archly; "for I have always seen a great
3157 similarity in the turn of our minds. We are each of an unsocial,
3158 taciturn disposition, unwilling to speak, unless we expect to say
3159 something that will amaze the whole room, and be handed down to
3160 posterity with all the eclat of a proverb."
3161
3162 "This is no very striking resemblance of your own character, I am sure,"
3163 said he. "How near it may be to _mine_, I cannot pretend to say. _You_
3164 think it a faithful portrait undoubtedly."
3165
3166 "I must not decide on my own performance."
3167
3168 He made no answer, and they were again silent till they had gone down
3169 the dance, when he asked her if she and her sisters did not very often
3170 walk to Meryton. She answered in the affirmative, and, unable to resist
3171 the temptation, added, "When you met us there the other day, we had just
3172 been forming a new acquaintance."
3173
3174 The effect was immediate. A deeper shade of _hauteur_ overspread his
3175 features, but he said not a word, and Elizabeth, though blaming herself
3176 for her own weakness, could not go on. At length Darcy spoke, and in a
3177 constrained manner said, "Mr. Wickham is blessed with such happy manners
3178 as may ensure his _making_ friends--whether he may be equally capable of
3179 _retaining_ them, is less certain."
3180
3181 "He has been so unlucky as to lose _your_ friendship," replied Elizabeth
3182 with emphasis, "and in a manner which he is likely to suffer from all
3183 his life."
3184
3185 Darcy made no answer, and seemed desirous of changing the subject. At
3186 that moment, Sir William Lucas appeared close to them, meaning to pass
3187 through the set to the other side of the room; but on perceiving Mr.
3188 Darcy, he stopped with a bow of superior courtesy to compliment him on
3189 his dancing and his partner.
3190
3191 "I have been most highly gratified indeed, my dear sir. Such very
3192 superior dancing is not often seen. It is evident that you belong to the
3193 first circles. Allow me to say, however, that your fair partner does not
3194 disgrace you, and that I must hope to have this pleasure often repeated,
3195 especially when a certain desirable event, my dear Eliza (glancing at
3196 her sister and Bingley) shall take place. What congratulations will then
3197 flow in! I appeal to Mr. Darcy:--but let me not interrupt you, sir. You
3198 will not thank me for detaining you from the bewitching converse of that
3199 young lady, whose bright eyes are also upbraiding me."
3200
3201 The latter part of this address was scarcely heard by Darcy; but Sir
3202 William's allusion to his friend seemed to strike him forcibly, and his
3203 eyes were directed with a very serious expression towards Bingley and
3204 Jane, who were dancing together. Recovering himself, however, shortly,
3205 he turned to his partner, and said, "Sir William's interruption has made
3206 me forget what we were talking of."
3207
3208 "I do not think we were speaking at all. Sir William could not have
3209 interrupted two people in the room who had less to say for themselves.
3210 We have tried two or three subjects already without success, and what we
3211 are to talk of next I cannot imagine."
3212
3213 "What think you of books?" said he, smiling.
3214
3215 "Books--oh! no. I am sure we never read the same, or not with the same
3216 feelings."
3217
3218 "I am sorry you think so; but if that be the case, there can at least be
3219 no want of subject. We may compare our different opinions."
3220
3221 "No--I cannot talk of books in a ball-room; my head is always full of
3222 something else."
3223
3224 "The _present_ always occupies you in such scenes--does it?" said he,
3225 with a look of doubt.
3226
3227 "Yes, always," she replied, without knowing what she said, for her
3228 thoughts had wandered far from the subject, as soon afterwards appeared
3229 by her suddenly exclaiming, "I remember hearing you once say, Mr. Darcy,
3230 that you hardly ever forgave, that your resentment once created was
3231 unappeasable. You are very cautious, I suppose, as to its _being
3232 created_."
3233
3234 "I am," said he, with a firm voice.
3235
3236 "And never allow yourself to be blinded by prejudice?"
3237
3238 "I hope not."
3239
3240 "It is particularly incumbent on those who never change their opinion,
3241 to be secure of judging properly at first."
3242
3243 "May I ask to what these questions tend?"
3244
3245 "Merely to the illustration of _your_ character," said she, endeavouring
3246 to shake off her gravity. "I am trying to make it out."
3247
3248 "And what is your success?"
3249
3250 She shook her head. "I do not get on at all. I hear such different
3251 accounts of you as puzzle me exceedingly."
3252
3253 "I can readily believe," answered he gravely, "that reports may vary
3254 greatly with respect to me; and I could wish, Miss Bennet, that you were
3255 not to sketch my character at the present moment, as there is reason to
3256 fear that the performance would reflect no credit on either."
3257
3258 "But if I do not take your likeness now, I may never have another
3259 opportunity."
3260
3261 "I would by no means suspend any pleasure of yours," he coldly replied.
3262 She said no more, and they went down the other dance and parted in
3263 silence; and on each side dissatisfied, though not to an equal degree,
3264 for in Darcy's breast there was a tolerably powerful feeling towards
3265 her, which soon procured her pardon, and directed all his anger against
3266 another.
3267
3268 They had not long separated, when Miss Bingley came towards her, and
3269 with an expression of civil disdain accosted her:
3270
3271 "So, Miss Eliza, I hear you are quite delighted with George Wickham!
3272 Your sister has been talking to me about him, and asking me a thousand
3273 questions; and I find that the young man quite forgot to tell you, among
3274 his other communication, that he was the son of old Wickham, the late
3275 Mr. Darcy's steward. Let me recommend you, however, as a friend, not to
3276 give implicit confidence to all his assertions; for as to Mr. Darcy's
3277 using him ill, it is perfectly false; for, on the contrary, he has
3278 always been remarkably kind to him, though George Wickham has treated
3279 Mr. Darcy in a most infamous manner. I do not know the particulars, but
3280 I know very well that Mr. Darcy is not in the least to blame, that he
3281 cannot bear to hear George Wickham mentioned, and that though my brother
3282 thought that he could not well avoid including him in his invitation to
3283 the officers, he was excessively glad to find that he had taken himself
3284 out of the way. His coming into the country at all is a most insolent
3285 thing, indeed, and I wonder how he could presume to do it. I pity you,
3286 Miss Eliza, for this discovery of your favourite's guilt; but really,
3287 considering his descent, one could not expect much better."
3288
3289 "His guilt and his descent appear by your account to be the same," said
3290 Elizabeth angrily; "for I have heard you accuse him of nothing worse
3291 than of being the son of Mr. Darcy's steward, and of _that_, I can
3292 assure you, he informed me himself."
3293
3294 "I beg your pardon," replied Miss Bingley, turning away with a sneer.
3295 "Excuse my interference--it was kindly meant."
3296
3297 "Insolent girl!" said Elizabeth to herself. "You are much mistaken
3298 if you expect to influence me by such a paltry attack as this. I see
3299 nothing in it but your own wilful ignorance and the malice of Mr.
3300 Darcy." She then sought her eldest sister, who had undertaken to make
3301 inquiries on the same subject of Bingley. Jane met her with a smile of
3302 such sweet complacency, a glow of such happy expression, as sufficiently
3303 marked how well she was satisfied with the occurrences of the evening.
3304 Elizabeth instantly read her feelings, and at that moment solicitude for
3305 Wickham, resentment against his enemies, and everything else, gave way
3306 before the hope of Jane's being in the fairest way for happiness.
3307
3308 "I want to know," said she, with a countenance no less smiling than her
3309 sister's, "what you have learnt about Mr. Wickham. But perhaps you have
3310 been too pleasantly engaged to think of any third person; in which case
3311 you may be sure of my pardon."
3312
3313 "No," replied Jane, "I have not forgotten him; but I have nothing
3314 satisfactory to tell you. Mr. Bingley does not know the whole of
3315 his history, and is quite ignorant of the circumstances which have
3316 principally offended Mr. Darcy; but he will vouch for the good conduct,
3317 the probity, and honour of his friend, and is perfectly convinced that
3318 Mr. Wickham has deserved much less attention from Mr. Darcy than he has
3319 received; and I am sorry to say by his account as well as his sister's,
3320 Mr. Wickham is by no means a respectable young man. I am afraid he has
3321 been very imprudent, and has deserved to lose Mr. Darcy's regard."
3322
3323 "Mr. Bingley does not know Mr. Wickham himself?"
3324
3325 "No; he never saw him till the other morning at Meryton."
3326
3327 "This account then is what he has received from Mr. Darcy. I am
3328 satisfied. But what does he say of the living?"
3329
3330 "He does not exactly recollect the circumstances, though he has heard
3331 them from Mr. Darcy more than once, but he believes that it was left to
3332 him _conditionally_ only."
3333
3334 "I have not a doubt of Mr. Bingley's sincerity," said Elizabeth warmly;
3335 "but you must excuse my not being convinced by assurances only. Mr.
3336 Bingley's defense of his friend was a very able one, I dare say; but
3337 since he is unacquainted with several parts of the story, and has learnt
3338 the rest from that friend himself, I shall venture to still think of
3339 both gentlemen as I did before."
3340
3341 She then changed the discourse to one more gratifying to each, and on
3342 which there could be no difference of sentiment. Elizabeth listened with
3343 delight to the happy, though modest hopes which Jane entertained of Mr.
3344 Bingley's regard, and said all in her power to heighten her confidence
3345 in it. On their being joined by Mr. Bingley himself, Elizabeth withdrew
3346 to Miss Lucas; to whose inquiry after the pleasantness of her last
3347 partner she had scarcely replied, before Mr. Collins came up to them,
3348 and told her with great exultation that he had just been so fortunate as
3349 to make a most important discovery.
3350
3351 "I have found out," said he, "by a singular accident, that there is now
3352 in the room a near relation of my patroness. I happened to overhear the
3353 gentleman himself mentioning to the young lady who does the honours of
3354 the house the names of his cousin Miss de Bourgh, and of her mother Lady
3355 Catherine. How wonderfully these sort of things occur! Who would have
3356 thought of my meeting with, perhaps, a nephew of Lady Catherine de
3357 Bourgh in this assembly! I am most thankful that the discovery is made
3358 in time for me to pay my respects to him, which I am now going to
3359 do, and trust he will excuse my not having done it before. My total
3360 ignorance of the connection must plead my apology."
3361
3362 "You are not going to introduce yourself to Mr. Darcy!"
3363
3364 "Indeed I am. I shall entreat his pardon for not having done it earlier.
3365 I believe him to be Lady Catherine's _nephew_. It will be in my power to
3366 assure him that her ladyship was quite well yesterday se'nnight."
3367
3368 Elizabeth tried hard to dissuade him from such a scheme, assuring him
3369 that Mr. Darcy would consider his addressing him without introduction
3370 as an impertinent freedom, rather than a compliment to his aunt; that
3371 it was not in the least necessary there should be any notice on either
3372 side; and that if it were, it must belong to Mr. Darcy, the superior in
3373 consequence, to begin the acquaintance. Mr. Collins listened to her
3374 with the determined air of following his own inclination, and, when she
3375 ceased speaking, replied thus:
3376
3377 "My dear Miss Elizabeth, I have the highest opinion in the world in
3378 your excellent judgement in all matters within the scope of your
3379 understanding; but permit me to say, that there must be a wide
3380 difference between the established forms of ceremony amongst the laity,
3381 and those which regulate the clergy; for, give me leave to observe that
3382 I consider the clerical office as equal in point of dignity with
3383 the highest rank in the kingdom--provided that a proper humility of
3384 behaviour is at the same time maintained. You must therefore allow me to
3385 follow the dictates of my conscience on this occasion, which leads me to
3386 perform what I look on as a point of duty. Pardon me for neglecting to
3387 profit by your advice, which on every other subject shall be my constant
3388 guide, though in the case before us I consider myself more fitted by
3389 education and habitual study to decide on what is right than a young
3390 lady like yourself." And with a low bow he left her to attack Mr.
3391 Darcy, whose reception of his advances she eagerly watched, and whose
3392 astonishment at being so addressed was very evident. Her cousin prefaced
3393 his speech with a solemn bow and though she could not hear a word of
3394 it, she felt as if hearing it all, and saw in the motion of his lips the
3395 words "apology," "Hunsford," and "Lady Catherine de Bourgh." It vexed
3396 her to see him expose himself to such a man. Mr. Darcy was eyeing him
3397 with unrestrained wonder, and when at last Mr. Collins allowed him time
3398 to speak, replied with an air of distant civility. Mr. Collins, however,
3399 was not discouraged from speaking again, and Mr. Darcy's contempt seemed
3400 abundantly increasing with the length of his second speech, and at the
3401 end of it he only made him a slight bow, and moved another way. Mr.
3402 Collins then returned to Elizabeth.
3403
3404 "I have no reason, I assure you," said he, "to be dissatisfied with my
3405 reception. Mr. Darcy seemed much pleased with the attention. He answered
3406 me with the utmost civility, and even paid me the compliment of saying
3407 that he was so well convinced of Lady Catherine's discernment as to be
3408 certain she could never bestow a favour unworthily. It was really a very
3409 handsome thought. Upon the whole, I am much pleased with him."
3410
3411 As Elizabeth had no longer any interest of her own to pursue, she turned
3412 her attention almost entirely on her sister and Mr. Bingley; and the
3413 train of agreeable reflections which her observations gave birth to,
3414 made her perhaps almost as happy as Jane. She saw her in idea settled in
3415 that very house, in all the felicity which a marriage of true affection
3416 could bestow; and she felt capable, under such circumstances, of
3417 endeavouring even to like Bingley's two sisters. Her mother's thoughts
3418 she plainly saw were bent the same way, and she determined not to
3419 venture near her, lest she might hear too much. When they sat down to
3420 supper, therefore, she considered it a most unlucky perverseness which
3421 placed them within one of each other; and deeply was she vexed to find
3422 that her mother was talking to that one person (Lady Lucas) freely,
3423 openly, and of nothing else but her expectation that Jane would soon
3424 be married to Mr. Bingley. It was an animating subject, and Mrs. Bennet
3425 seemed incapable of fatigue while enumerating the advantages of the
3426 match. His being such a charming young man, and so rich, and living but
3427 three miles from them, were the first points of self-gratulation; and
3428 then it was such a comfort to think how fond the two sisters were of
3429 Jane, and to be certain that they must desire the connection as much as
3430 she could do. It was, moreover, such a promising thing for her younger
3431 daughters, as Jane's marrying so greatly must throw them in the way of
3432 other rich men; and lastly, it was so pleasant at her time of life to be
3433 able to consign her single daughters to the care of their sister, that
3434 she might not be obliged to go into company more than she liked. It was
3435 necessary to make this circumstance a matter of pleasure, because on
3436 such occasions it is the etiquette; but no one was less likely than Mrs.
3437 Bennet to find comfort in staying home at any period of her life. She
3438 concluded with many good wishes that Lady Lucas might soon be equally
3439 fortunate, though evidently and triumphantly believing there was no
3440 chance of it.
3441
3442 In vain did Elizabeth endeavour to check the rapidity of her mother's
3443 words, or persuade her to describe her felicity in a less audible
3444 whisper; for, to her inexpressible vexation, she could perceive that the
3445 chief of it was overheard by Mr. Darcy, who sat opposite to them. Her
3446 mother only scolded her for being nonsensical.
3447
3448 "What is Mr. Darcy to me, pray, that I should be afraid of him? I am
3449 sure we owe him no such particular civility as to be obliged to say
3450 nothing _he_ may not like to hear."
3451
3452 "For heaven's sake, madam, speak lower. What advantage can it be for you
3453 to offend Mr. Darcy? You will never recommend yourself to his friend by
3454 so doing!"
3455
3456 Nothing that she could say, however, had any influence. Her mother would
3457 talk of her views in the same intelligible tone. Elizabeth blushed and
3458 blushed again with shame and vexation. She could not help frequently
3459 glancing her eye at Mr. Darcy, though every glance convinced her of what
3460 she dreaded; for though he was not always looking at her mother, she was
3461 convinced that his attention was invariably fixed by her. The expression
3462 of his face changed gradually from indignant contempt to a composed and
3463 steady gravity.
3464
3465 At length, however, Mrs. Bennet had no more to say; and Lady Lucas, who
3466 had been long yawning at the repetition of delights which she saw no
3467 likelihood of sharing, was left to the comforts of cold ham and
3468 chicken. Elizabeth now began to revive. But not long was the interval of
3469 tranquillity; for, when supper was over, singing was talked of, and
3470 she had the mortification of seeing Mary, after very little entreaty,
3471 preparing to oblige the company. By many significant looks and silent
3472 entreaties, did she endeavour to prevent such a proof of complaisance,
3473 but in vain; Mary would not understand them; such an opportunity of
3474 exhibiting was delightful to her, and she began her song. Elizabeth's
3475 eyes were fixed on her with most painful sensations, and she watched her
3476 progress through the several stanzas with an impatience which was very
3477 ill rewarded at their close; for Mary, on receiving, amongst the thanks
3478 of the table, the hint of a hope that she might be prevailed on to
3479 favour them again, after the pause of half a minute began another.
3480 Mary's powers were by no means fitted for such a display; her voice was
3481 weak, and her manner affected. Elizabeth was in agonies. She looked at
3482 Jane, to see how she bore it; but Jane was very composedly talking to
3483 Bingley. She looked at his two sisters, and saw them making signs
3484 of derision at each other, and at Darcy, who continued, however,
3485 imperturbably grave. She looked at her father to entreat his
3486 interference, lest Mary should be singing all night. He took the hint,
3487 and when Mary had finished her second song, said aloud, "That will do
3488 extremely well, child. You have delighted us long enough. Let the other
3489 young ladies have time to exhibit."
3490
3491 Mary, though pretending not to hear, was somewhat disconcerted; and
3492 Elizabeth, sorry for her, and sorry for her father's speech, was afraid
3493 her anxiety had done no good. Others of the party were now applied to.
3494
3495 "If I," said Mr. Collins, "were so fortunate as to be able to sing, I
3496 should have great pleasure, I am sure, in obliging the company with an
3497 air; for I consider music as a very innocent diversion, and perfectly
3498 compatible with the profession of a clergyman. I do not mean, however,
3499 to assert that we can be justified in devoting too much of our time
3500 to music, for there are certainly other things to be attended to. The
3501 rector of a parish has much to do. In the first place, he must make
3502 such an agreement for tithes as may be beneficial to himself and not
3503 offensive to his patron. He must write his own sermons; and the time
3504 that remains will not be too much for his parish duties, and the care
3505 and improvement of his dwelling, which he cannot be excused from making
3506 as comfortable as possible. And I do not think it of light importance
3507 that he should have attentive and conciliatory manners towards everybody,
3508 especially towards those to whom he owes his preferment. I cannot acquit
3509 him of that duty; nor could I think well of the man who should omit an
3510 occasion of testifying his respect towards anybody connected with the
3511 family." And with a bow to Mr. Darcy, he concluded his speech, which had
3512 been spoken so loud as to be heard by half the room. Many stared--many
3513 smiled; but no one looked more amused than Mr. Bennet himself, while his
3514 wife seriously commended Mr. Collins for having spoken so sensibly,
3515 and observed in a half-whisper to Lady Lucas, that he was a remarkably
3516 clever, good kind of young man.
3517
3518 To Elizabeth it appeared that, had her family made an agreement to
3519 expose themselves as much as they could during the evening, it would
3520 have been impossible for them to play their parts with more spirit or
3521 finer success; and happy did she think it for Bingley and her sister
3522 that some of the exhibition had escaped his notice, and that his
3523 feelings were not of a sort to be much distressed by the folly which he
3524 must have witnessed. That his two sisters and Mr. Darcy, however, should
3525 have such an opportunity of ridiculing her relations, was bad enough,
3526 and she could not determine whether the silent contempt of the
3527 gentleman, or the insolent smiles of the ladies, were more intolerable.
3528
3529 The rest of the evening brought her little amusement. She was teased by
3530 Mr. Collins, who continued most perseveringly by her side, and though
3531 he could not prevail on her to dance with him again, put it out of her
3532 power to dance with others. In vain did she entreat him to stand up with
3533 somebody else, and offer to introduce him to any young lady in the room.
3534 He assured her, that as to dancing, he was perfectly indifferent to it;
3535 that his chief object was by delicate attentions to recommend himself to
3536 her and that he should therefore make a point of remaining close to her
3537 the whole evening. There was no arguing upon such a project. She owed
3538 her greatest relief to her friend Miss Lucas, who often joined them, and
3539 good-naturedly engaged Mr. Collins's conversation to herself.
3540
3541 She was at least free from the offense of Mr. Darcy's further notice;
3542 though often standing within a very short distance of her, quite
3543 disengaged, he never came near enough to speak. She felt it to be the
3544 probable consequence of her allusions to Mr. Wickham, and rejoiced in
3545 it.
3546
3547 The Longbourn party were the last of all the company to depart, and, by
3548 a manoeuvre of Mrs. Bennet, had to wait for their carriage a quarter of
3549 an hour after everybody else was gone, which gave them time to see how
3550 heartily they were wished away by some of the family. Mrs. Hurst and her
3551 sister scarcely opened their mouths, except to complain of fatigue, and
3552 were evidently impatient to have the house to themselves. They repulsed
3553 every attempt of Mrs. Bennet at conversation, and by so doing threw a
3554 languor over the whole party, which was very little relieved by the
3555 long speeches of Mr. Collins, who was complimenting Mr. Bingley and his
3556 sisters on the elegance of their entertainment, and the hospitality and
3557 politeness which had marked their behaviour to their guests. Darcy said
3558 nothing at all. Mr. Bennet, in equal silence, was enjoying the scene.
3559 Mr. Bingley and Jane were standing together, a little detached from the
3560 rest, and talked only to each other. Elizabeth preserved as steady a
3561 silence as either Mrs. Hurst or Miss Bingley; and even Lydia was too
3562 much fatigued to utter more than the occasional exclamation of "Lord,
3563 how tired I am!" accompanied by a violent yawn.
3564
3565 When at length they arose to take leave, Mrs. Bennet was most pressingly
3566 civil in her hope of seeing the whole family soon at Longbourn, and
3567 addressed herself especially to Mr. Bingley, to assure him how happy he
3568 would make them by eating a family dinner with them at any time, without
3569 the ceremony of a formal invitation. Bingley was all grateful pleasure,
3570 and he readily engaged for taking the earliest opportunity of waiting on
3571 her, after his return from London, whither he was obliged to go the next
3572 day for a short time.
3573
3574 Mrs. Bennet was perfectly satisfied, and quitted the house under the
3575 delightful persuasion that, allowing for the necessary preparations of
3576 settlements, new carriages, and wedding clothes, she should undoubtedly
3577 see her daughter settled at Netherfield in the course of three or four
3578 months. Of having another daughter married to Mr. Collins, she thought
3579 with equal certainty, and with considerable, though not equal, pleasure.
3580 Elizabeth was the least dear to her of all her children; and though the
3581 man and the match were quite good enough for _her_, the worth of each
3582 was eclipsed by Mr. Bingley and Netherfield.
3583
3584
3585
3586 Chapter 19
3587
3588
3589 The next day opened a new scene at Longbourn. Mr. Collins made his
3590 declaration in form. Having resolved to do it without loss of time, as
3591 his leave of absence extended only to the following Saturday, and having
3592 no feelings of diffidence to make it distressing to himself even at
3593 the moment, he set about it in a very orderly manner, with all the
3594 observances, which he supposed a regular part of the business. On
3595 finding Mrs. Bennet, Elizabeth, and one of the younger girls together,
3596 soon after breakfast, he addressed the mother in these words:
3597
3598 "May I hope, madam, for your interest with your fair daughter Elizabeth,
3599 when I solicit for the honour of a private audience with her in the
3600 course of this morning?"
3601
3602 Before Elizabeth had time for anything but a blush of surprise, Mrs.
3603 Bennet answered instantly, "Oh dear!--yes--certainly. I am sure Lizzy
3604 will be very happy--I am sure she can have no objection. Come, Kitty, I
3605 want you up stairs." And, gathering her work together, she was hastening
3606 away, when Elizabeth called out:
3607
3608 "Dear madam, do not go. I beg you will not go. Mr. Collins must excuse
3609 me. He can have nothing to say to me that anybody need not hear. I am
3610 going away myself."
3611
3612 "No, no, nonsense, Lizzy. I desire you to stay where you are." And upon
3613 Elizabeth's seeming really, with vexed and embarrassed looks, about to
3614 escape, she added: "Lizzy, I _insist_ upon your staying and hearing Mr.
3615 Collins."
3616
3617 Elizabeth would not oppose such an injunction--and a moment's
3618 consideration making her also sensible that it would be wisest to get it
3619 over as soon and as quietly as possible, she sat down again and tried to
3620 conceal, by incessant employment the feelings which were divided between
3621 distress and diversion. Mrs. Bennet and Kitty walked off, and as soon as
3622 they were gone, Mr. Collins began.
3623
3624 "Believe me, my dear Miss Elizabeth, that your modesty, so far from
3625 doing you any disservice, rather adds to your other perfections. You
3626 would have been less amiable in my eyes had there _not_ been this little
3627 unwillingness; but allow me to assure you, that I have your respected
3628 mother's permission for this address. You can hardly doubt the
3629 purport of my discourse, however your natural delicacy may lead you to
3630 dissemble; my attentions have been too marked to be mistaken. Almost as
3631 soon as I entered the house, I singled you out as the companion of
3632 my future life. But before I am run away with by my feelings on this
3633 subject, perhaps it would be advisable for me to state my reasons for
3634 marrying--and, moreover, for coming into Hertfordshire with the design
3635 of selecting a wife, as I certainly did."
3636
3637 The idea of Mr. Collins, with all his solemn composure, being run away
3638 with by his feelings, made Elizabeth so near laughing, that she could
3639 not use the short pause he allowed in any attempt to stop him further,
3640 and he continued:
3641
3642 "My reasons for marrying are, first, that I think it a right thing for
3643 every clergyman in easy circumstances (like myself) to set the example
3644 of matrimony in his parish; secondly, that I am convinced that it will
3645 add very greatly to my happiness; and thirdly--which perhaps I ought
3646 to have mentioned earlier, that it is the particular advice and
3647 recommendation of the very noble lady whom I have the honour of calling
3648 patroness. Twice has she condescended to give me her opinion (unasked
3649 too!) on this subject; and it was but the very Saturday night before I
3650 left Hunsford--between our pools at quadrille, while Mrs. Jenkinson was
3651 arranging Miss de Bourgh's footstool, that she said, 'Mr. Collins, you
3652 must marry. A clergyman like you must marry. Choose properly, choose
3653 a gentlewoman for _my_ sake; and for your _own_, let her be an active,
3654 useful sort of person, not brought up high, but able to make a small
3655 income go a good way. This is my advice. Find such a woman as soon as
3656 you can, bring her to Hunsford, and I will visit her.' Allow me, by the
3657 way, to observe, my fair cousin, that I do not reckon the notice
3658 and kindness of Lady Catherine de Bourgh as among the least of the
3659 advantages in my power to offer. You will find her manners beyond
3660 anything I can describe; and your wit and vivacity, I think, must be
3661 acceptable to her, especially when tempered with the silence and
3662 respect which her rank will inevitably excite. Thus much for my general
3663 intention in favour of matrimony; it remains to be told why my views
3664 were directed towards Longbourn instead of my own neighbourhood, where I
3665 can assure you there are many amiable young women. But the fact is, that
3666 being, as I am, to inherit this estate after the death of your honoured
3667 father (who, however, may live many years longer), I could not satisfy
3668 myself without resolving to choose a wife from among his daughters, that
3669 the loss to them might be as little as possible, when the melancholy
3670 event takes place--which, however, as I have already said, may not
3671 be for several years. This has been my motive, my fair cousin, and
3672 I flatter myself it will not sink me in your esteem. And now nothing
3673 remains for me but to assure you in the most animated language of the
3674 violence of my affection. To fortune I am perfectly indifferent, and
3675 shall make no demand of that nature on your father, since I am well
3676 aware that it could not be complied with; and that one thousand pounds
3677 in the four per cents, which will not be yours till after your mother's
3678 decease, is all that you may ever be entitled to. On that head,
3679 therefore, I shall be uniformly silent; and you may assure yourself that
3680 no ungenerous reproach shall ever pass my lips when we are married."
3681
3682 It was absolutely necessary to interrupt him now.
3683
3684 "You are too hasty, sir," she cried. "You forget that I have made no
3685 answer. Let me do it without further loss of time. Accept my thanks for
3686 the compliment you are paying me. I am very sensible of the honour of
3687 your proposals, but it is impossible for me to do otherwise than to
3688 decline them."
3689
3690 "I am not now to learn," replied Mr. Collins, with a formal wave of the
3691 hand, "that it is usual with young ladies to reject the addresses of the
3692 man whom they secretly mean to accept, when he first applies for their
3693 favour; and that sometimes the refusal is repeated a second, or even a
3694 third time. I am therefore by no means discouraged by what you have just
3695 said, and shall hope to lead you to the altar ere long."
3696
3697 "Upon my word, sir," cried Elizabeth, "your hope is a rather
3698 extraordinary one after my declaration. I do assure you that I am not
3699 one of those young ladies (if such young ladies there are) who are so
3700 daring as to risk their happiness on the chance of being asked a second
3701 time. I am perfectly serious in my refusal. You could not make _me_
3702 happy, and I am convinced that I am the last woman in the world who
3703 could make you so. Nay, were your friend Lady Catherine to know me, I
3704 am persuaded she would find me in every respect ill qualified for the
3705 situation."
3706
3707 "Were it certain that Lady Catherine would think so," said Mr. Collins
3708 very gravely--"but I cannot imagine that her ladyship would at all
3709 disapprove of you. And you may be certain when I have the honour of
3710 seeing her again, I shall speak in the very highest terms of your
3711 modesty, economy, and other amiable qualification."
3712
3713 "Indeed, Mr. Collins, all praise of me will be unnecessary. You
3714 must give me leave to judge for myself, and pay me the compliment
3715 of believing what I say. I wish you very happy and very rich, and by
3716 refusing your hand, do all in my power to prevent your being otherwise.
3717 In making me the offer, you must have satisfied the delicacy of your
3718 feelings with regard to my family, and may take possession of Longbourn
3719 estate whenever it falls, without any self-reproach. This matter may
3720 be considered, therefore, as finally settled." And rising as she
3721 thus spoke, she would have quitted the room, had Mr. Collins not thus
3722 addressed her:
3723
3724 "When I do myself the honour of speaking to you next on the subject, I
3725 shall hope to receive a more favourable answer than you have now given
3726 me; though I am far from accusing you of cruelty at present, because I
3727 know it to be the established custom of your sex to reject a man on
3728 the first application, and perhaps you have even now said as much to
3729 encourage my suit as would be consistent with the true delicacy of the
3730 female character."
3731
3732 "Really, Mr. Collins," cried Elizabeth with some warmth, "you puzzle me
3733 exceedingly. If what I have hitherto said can appear to you in the form
3734 of encouragement, I know not how to express my refusal in such a way as
3735 to convince you of its being one."
3736
3737 "You must give me leave to flatter myself, my dear cousin, that your
3738 refusal of my addresses is merely words of course. My reasons for
3739 believing it are briefly these: It does not appear to me that my hand is
3740 unworthy of your acceptance, or that the establishment I can offer would
3741 be any other than highly desirable. My situation in life, my connections
3742 with the family of de Bourgh, and my relationship to your own, are
3743 circumstances highly in my favour; and you should take it into further
3744 consideration, that in spite of your manifold attractions, it is by no
3745 means certain that another offer of marriage may ever be made you. Your
3746 portion is unhappily so small that it will in all likelihood undo
3747 the effects of your loveliness and amiable qualifications. As I must
3748 therefore conclude that you are not serious in your rejection of me,
3749 I shall choose to attribute it to your wish of increasing my love by
3750 suspense, according to the usual practice of elegant females."
3751
3752 "I do assure you, sir, that I have no pretensions whatever to that kind
3753 of elegance which consists in tormenting a respectable man. I would
3754 rather be paid the compliment of being believed sincere. I thank you
3755 again and again for the honour you have done me in your proposals, but
3756 to accept them is absolutely impossible. My feelings in every respect
3757 forbid it. Can I speak plainer? Do not consider me now as an elegant
3758 female, intending to plague you, but as a rational creature, speaking
3759 the truth from her heart."
3760
3761 "You are uniformly charming!" cried he, with an air of awkward
3762 gallantry; "and I am persuaded that when sanctioned by the express
3763 authority of both your excellent parents, my proposals will not fail of
3764 being acceptable."
3765
3766 To such perseverance in wilful self-deception Elizabeth would make
3767 no reply, and immediately and in silence withdrew; determined, if
3768 he persisted in considering her repeated refusals as flattering
3769 encouragement, to apply to her father, whose negative might be uttered
3770 in such a manner as to be decisive, and whose behaviour at least could
3771 not be mistaken for the affectation and coquetry of an elegant female.
3772
3773
3774
3775 Chapter 20
3776
3777
3778 Mr. Collins was not left long to the silent contemplation of his
3779 successful love; for Mrs. Bennet, having dawdled about in the vestibule
3780 to watch for the end of the conference, no sooner saw Elizabeth open
3781 the door and with quick step pass her towards the staircase, than she
3782 entered the breakfast-room, and congratulated both him and herself in
3783 warm terms on the happy prospect of their nearer connection. Mr. Collins
3784 received and returned these felicitations with equal pleasure, and then
3785 proceeded to relate the particulars of their interview, with the result
3786 of which he trusted he had every reason to be satisfied, since the
3787 refusal which his cousin had steadfastly given him would naturally flow
3788 from her bashful modesty and the genuine delicacy of her character.
3789
3790 This information, however, startled Mrs. Bennet; she would have been
3791 glad to be equally satisfied that her daughter had meant to encourage
3792 him by protesting against his proposals, but she dared not believe it,
3793 and could not help saying so.
3794
3795 "But, depend upon it, Mr. Collins," she added, "that Lizzy shall be
3796 brought to reason. I will speak to her about it directly. She is a very
3797 headstrong, foolish girl, and does not know her own interest but I will
3798 _make_ her know it."
3799
3800 "Pardon me for interrupting you, madam," cried Mr. Collins; "but if
3801 she is really headstrong and foolish, I know not whether she would
3802 altogether be a very desirable wife to a man in my situation, who
3803 naturally looks for happiness in the marriage state. If therefore she
3804 actually persists in rejecting my suit, perhaps it were better not
3805 to force her into accepting me, because if liable to such defects of
3806 temper, she could not contribute much to my felicity."
3807
3808 "Sir, you quite misunderstand me," said Mrs. Bennet, alarmed. "Lizzy is
3809 only headstrong in such matters as these. In everything else she is as
3810 good-natured a girl as ever lived. I will go directly to Mr. Bennet, and
3811 we shall very soon settle it with her, I am sure."
3812
3813 She would not give him time to reply, but hurrying instantly to her
3814 husband, called out as she entered the library, "Oh! Mr. Bennet, you
3815 are wanted immediately; we are all in an uproar. You must come and make
3816 Lizzy marry Mr. Collins, for she vows she will not have him, and if you
3817 do not make haste he will change his mind and not have _her_."
3818
3819 Mr. Bennet raised his eyes from his book as she entered, and fixed them
3820 on her face with a calm unconcern which was not in the least altered by
3821 her communication.
3822
3823 "I have not the pleasure of understanding you," said he, when she had
3824 finished her speech. "Of what are you talking?"
3825
3826 "Of Mr. Collins and Lizzy. Lizzy declares she will not have Mr. Collins,
3827 and Mr. Collins begins to say that he will not have Lizzy."
3828
3829 "And what am I to do on the occasion? It seems an hopeless business."
3830
3831 "Speak to Lizzy about it yourself. Tell her that you insist upon her
3832 marrying him."
3833
3834 "Let her be called down. She shall hear my opinion."
3835
3836 Mrs. Bennet rang the bell, and Miss Elizabeth was summoned to the
3837 library.
3838
3839 "Come here, child," cried her father as she appeared. "I have sent for
3840 you on an affair of importance. I understand that Mr. Collins has made
3841 you an offer of marriage. Is it true?" Elizabeth replied that it was.
3842 "Very well--and this offer of marriage you have refused?"
3843
3844 "I have, sir."
3845
3846 "Very well. We now come to the point. Your mother insists upon your
3847 accepting it. Is it not so, Mrs. Bennet?"
3848
3849 "Yes, or I will never see her again."
3850
3851 "An unhappy alternative is before you, Elizabeth. From this day you must
3852 be a stranger to one of your parents. Your mother will never see you
3853 again if you do _not_ marry Mr. Collins, and I will never see you again
3854 if you _do_."
3855
3856 Elizabeth could not but smile at such a conclusion of such a beginning,
3857 but Mrs. Bennet, who had persuaded herself that her husband regarded the
3858 affair as she wished, was excessively disappointed.
3859
3860 "What do you mean, Mr. Bennet, in talking this way? You promised me to
3861 _insist_ upon her marrying him."
3862
3863 "My dear," replied her husband, "I have two small favours to request.
3864 First, that you will allow me the free use of my understanding on the
3865 present occasion; and secondly, of my room. I shall be glad to have the
3866 library to myself as soon as may be."
3867
3868 Not yet, however, in spite of her disappointment in her husband, did
3869 Mrs. Bennet give up the point. She talked to Elizabeth again and again;
3870 coaxed and threatened her by turns. She endeavoured to secure Jane
3871 in her interest; but Jane, with all possible mildness, declined
3872 interfering; and Elizabeth, sometimes with real earnestness, and
3873 sometimes with playful gaiety, replied to her attacks. Though her manner
3874 varied, however, her determination never did.
3875
3876 Mr. Collins, meanwhile, was meditating in solitude on what had passed.
3877 He thought too well of himself to comprehend on what motives his cousin
3878 could refuse him; and though his pride was hurt, he suffered in no other
3879 way. His regard for her was quite imaginary; and the possibility of her
3880 deserving her mother's reproach prevented his feeling any regret.
3881
3882 While the family were in this confusion, Charlotte Lucas came to spend
3883 the day with them. She was met in the vestibule by Lydia, who, flying to
3884 her, cried in a half whisper, "I am glad you are come, for there is such
3885 fun here! What do you think has happened this morning? Mr. Collins has
3886 made an offer to Lizzy, and she will not have him."
3887
3888 Charlotte hardly had time to answer, before they were joined by Kitty,
3889 who came to tell the same news; and no sooner had they entered the
3890 breakfast-room, where Mrs. Bennet was alone, than she likewise began on
3891 the subject, calling on Miss Lucas for her compassion, and entreating
3892 her to persuade her friend Lizzy to comply with the wishes of all her
3893 family. "Pray do, my dear Miss Lucas," she added in a melancholy tone,
3894 "for nobody is on my side, nobody takes part with me. I am cruelly used,
3895 nobody feels for my poor nerves."
3896
3897 Charlotte's reply was spared by the entrance of Jane and Elizabeth.
3898
3899 "Aye, there she comes," continued Mrs. Bennet, "looking as unconcerned
3900 as may be, and caring no more for us than if we were at York, provided
3901 she can have her own way. But I tell you, Miss Lizzy--if you take it
3902 into your head to go on refusing every offer of marriage in this way,
3903 you will never get a husband at all--and I am sure I do not know who is
3904 to maintain you when your father is dead. I shall not be able to keep
3905 you--and so I warn you. I have done with you from this very day. I told
3906 you in the library, you know, that I should never speak to you again,
3907 and you will find me as good as my word. I have no pleasure in talking
3908 to undutiful children. Not that I have much pleasure, indeed, in talking
3909 to anybody. People who suffer as I do from nervous complaints can have
3910 no great inclination for talking. Nobody can tell what I suffer! But it
3911 is always so. Those who do not complain are never pitied."
3912
3913 Her daughters listened in silence to this effusion, sensible that
3914 any attempt to reason with her or soothe her would only increase the
3915 irritation. She talked on, therefore, without interruption from any of
3916 them, till they were joined by Mr. Collins, who entered the room with
3917 an air more stately than usual, and on perceiving whom, she said to
3918 the girls, "Now, I do insist upon it, that you, all of you, hold
3919 your tongues, and let me and Mr. Collins have a little conversation
3920 together."
3921
3922 Elizabeth passed quietly out of the room, Jane and Kitty followed, but
3923 Lydia stood her ground, determined to hear all she could; and Charlotte,
3924 detained first by the civility of Mr. Collins, whose inquiries after
3925 herself and all her family were very minute, and then by a little
3926 curiosity, satisfied herself with walking to the window and pretending
3927 not to hear. In a doleful voice Mrs. Bennet began the projected
3928 conversation: "Oh! Mr. Collins!"
3929
3930 "My dear madam," replied he, "let us be for ever silent on this point.
3931 Far be it from me," he presently continued, in a voice that marked his
3932 displeasure, "to resent the behaviour of your daughter. Resignation
3933 to inevitable evils is the duty of us all; the peculiar duty of a
3934 young man who has been so fortunate as I have been in early preferment;
3935 and I trust I am resigned. Perhaps not the less so from feeling a doubt
3936 of my positive happiness had my fair cousin honoured me with her hand;
3937 for I have often observed that resignation is never so perfect as
3938 when the blessing denied begins to lose somewhat of its value in our
3939 estimation. You will not, I hope, consider me as showing any disrespect
3940 to your family, my dear madam, by thus withdrawing my pretensions to
3941 your daughter's favour, without having paid yourself and Mr. Bennet the
3942 compliment of requesting you to interpose your authority in my
3943 behalf. My conduct may, I fear, be objectionable in having accepted my
3944 dismission from your daughter's lips instead of your own. But we are all
3945 liable to error. I have certainly meant well through the whole affair.
3946 My object has been to secure an amiable companion for myself, with due
3947 consideration for the advantage of all your family, and if my _manner_
3948 has been at all reprehensible, I here beg leave to apologise."
3949
3950
3951
3952 Chapter 21
3953
3954
3955 The discussion of Mr. Collins's offer was now nearly at an end, and
3956 Elizabeth had only to suffer from the uncomfortable feelings necessarily
3957 attending it, and occasionally from some peevish allusions of her
3958 mother. As for the gentleman himself, _his_ feelings were chiefly
3959 expressed, not by embarrassment or dejection, or by trying to avoid her,
3960 but by stiffness of manner and resentful silence. He scarcely ever spoke
3961 to her, and the assiduous attentions which he had been so sensible of
3962 himself were transferred for the rest of the day to Miss Lucas, whose
3963 civility in listening to him was a seasonable relief to them all, and
3964 especially to her friend.
3965
3966 The morrow produced no abatement of Mrs. Bennet's ill-humour or ill
3967 health. Mr. Collins was also in the same state of angry pride. Elizabeth
3968 had hoped that his resentment might shorten his visit, but his plan did
3969 not appear in the least affected by it. He was always to have gone on
3970 Saturday, and to Saturday he meant to stay.
3971
3972 After breakfast, the girls walked to Meryton to inquire if Mr. Wickham
3973 were returned, and to lament over his absence from the Netherfield ball.
3974 He joined them on their entering the town, and attended them to their
3975 aunt's where his regret and vexation, and the concern of everybody, was
3976 well talked over. To Elizabeth, however, he voluntarily acknowledged
3977 that the necessity of his absence _had_ been self-imposed.
3978
3979 "I found," said he, "as the time drew near that I had better not meet
3980 Mr. Darcy; that to be in the same room, the same party with him for so
3981 many hours together, might be more than I could bear, and that scenes
3982 might arise unpleasant to more than myself."
3983
3984 She highly approved his forbearance, and they had leisure for a full
3985 discussion of it, and for all the commendation which they civilly
3986 bestowed on each other, as Wickham and another officer walked back with
3987 them to Longbourn, and during the walk he particularly attended to
3988 her. His accompanying them was a double advantage; she felt all the
3989 compliment it offered to herself, and it was most acceptable as an
3990 occasion of introducing him to her father and mother.
3991
3992 Soon after their return, a letter was delivered to Miss Bennet; it came
3993 from Netherfield. The envelope contained a sheet of elegant, little,
3994 hot-pressed paper, well covered with a lady's fair, flowing hand; and
3995 Elizabeth saw her sister's countenance change as she read it, and saw
3996 her dwelling intently on some particular passages. Jane recollected
3997 herself soon, and putting the letter away, tried to join with her usual
3998 cheerfulness in the general conversation; but Elizabeth felt an anxiety
3999 on the subject which drew off her attention even from Wickham; and no
4000 sooner had he and his companion taken leave, than a glance from Jane
4001 invited her to follow her up stairs. When they had gained their own room,
4002 Jane, taking out the letter, said:
4003
4004 "This is from Caroline Bingley; what it contains has surprised me a good
4005 deal. The whole party have left Netherfield by this time, and are on
4006 their way to town--and without any intention of coming back again. You
4007 shall hear what she says."
4008
4009 She then read the first sentence aloud, which comprised the information
4010 of their having just resolved to follow their brother to town directly,
4011 and of their meaning to dine in Grosvenor Street, where Mr. Hurst had a
4012 house. The next was in these words: "I do not pretend to regret anything
4013 I shall leave in Hertfordshire, except your society, my dearest friend;
4014 but we will hope, at some future period, to enjoy many returns of that
4015 delightful intercourse we have known, and in the meanwhile may
4016 lessen the pain of separation by a very frequent and most unreserved
4017 correspondence. I depend on you for that." To these highflown
4018 expressions Elizabeth listened with all the insensibility of distrust;
4019 and though the suddenness of their removal surprised her, she saw
4020 nothing in it really to lament; it was not to be supposed that their
4021 absence from Netherfield would prevent Mr. Bingley's being there; and as
4022 to the loss of their society, she was persuaded that Jane must cease to
4023 regard it, in the enjoyment of his.
4024
4025 "It is unlucky," said she, after a short pause, "that you should not be
4026 able to see your friends before they leave the country. But may we not
4027 hope that the period of future happiness to which Miss Bingley looks
4028 forward may arrive earlier than she is aware, and that the delightful
4029 intercourse you have known as friends will be renewed with yet greater
4030 satisfaction as sisters? Mr. Bingley will not be detained in London by
4031 them."
4032
4033 "Caroline decidedly says that none of the party will return into
4034 Hertfordshire this winter. I will read it to you:"
4035
4036 "When my brother left us yesterday, he imagined that the business which
4037 took him to London might be concluded in three or four days; but as we
4038 are certain it cannot be so, and at the same time convinced that when
4039 Charles gets to town he will be in no hurry to leave it again, we have
4040 determined on following him thither, that he may not be obliged to spend
4041 his vacant hours in a comfortless hotel. Many of my acquaintances are
4042 already there for the winter; I wish that I could hear that you, my
4043 dearest friend, had any intention of making one of the crowd--but of
4044 that I despair. I sincerely hope your Christmas in Hertfordshire may
4045 abound in the gaieties which that season generally brings, and that your
4046 beaux will be so numerous as to prevent your feeling the loss of the
4047 three of whom we shall deprive you."
4048
4049 "It is evident by this," added Jane, "that he comes back no more this
4050 winter."
4051
4052 "It is only evident that Miss Bingley does not mean that he _should_."
4053
4054 "Why will you think so? It must be his own doing. He is his own
4055 master. But you do not know _all_. I _will_ read you the passage which
4056 particularly hurts me. I will have no reserves from _you_."
4057
4058 "Mr. Darcy is impatient to see his sister; and, to confess the truth,
4059 _we_ are scarcely less eager to meet her again. I really do not think
4060 Georgiana Darcy has her equal for beauty, elegance, and accomplishments;
4061 and the affection she inspires in Louisa and myself is heightened into
4062 something still more interesting, from the hope we dare entertain of
4063 her being hereafter our sister. I do not know whether I ever before
4064 mentioned to you my feelings on this subject; but I will not leave the
4065 country without confiding them, and I trust you will not esteem them
4066 unreasonable. My brother admires her greatly already; he will have
4067 frequent opportunity now of seeing her on the most intimate footing;
4068 her relations all wish the connection as much as his own; and a sister's
4069 partiality is not misleading me, I think, when I call Charles most
4070 capable of engaging any woman's heart. With all these circumstances to
4071 favour an attachment, and nothing to prevent it, am I wrong, my dearest
4072 Jane, in indulging the hope of an event which will secure the happiness
4073 of so many?"
4074
4075 "What do you think of _this_ sentence, my dear Lizzy?" said Jane as she
4076 finished it. "Is it not clear enough? Does it not expressly declare that
4077 Caroline neither expects nor wishes me to be her sister; that she is
4078 perfectly convinced of her brother's indifference; and that if she
4079 suspects the nature of my feelings for him, she means (most kindly!) to
4080 put me on my guard? Can there be any other opinion on the subject?"
4081
4082 "Yes, there can; for mine is totally different. Will you hear it?"
4083
4084 "Most willingly."
4085
4086 "You shall have it in a few words. Miss Bingley sees that her brother is
4087 in love with you, and wants him to marry Miss Darcy. She follows him
4088 to town in hope of keeping him there, and tries to persuade you that he
4089 does not care about you."
4090
4091 Jane shook her head.
4092
4093 "Indeed, Jane, you ought to believe me. No one who has ever seen you
4094 together can doubt his affection. Miss Bingley, I am sure, cannot. She
4095 is not such a simpleton. Could she have seen half as much love in Mr.
4096 Darcy for herself, she would have ordered her wedding clothes. But the
4097 case is this: We are not rich enough or grand enough for them; and she
4098 is the more anxious to get Miss Darcy for her brother, from the notion
4099 that when there has been _one_ intermarriage, she may have less trouble
4100 in achieving a second; in which there is certainly some ingenuity, and
4101 I dare say it would succeed, if Miss de Bourgh were out of the way. But,
4102 my dearest Jane, you cannot seriously imagine that because Miss Bingley
4103 tells you her brother greatly admires Miss Darcy, he is in the smallest
4104 degree less sensible of _your_ merit than when he took leave of you on
4105 Tuesday, or that it will be in her power to persuade him that, instead
4106 of being in love with you, he is very much in love with her friend."
4107
4108 "If we thought alike of Miss Bingley," replied Jane, "your
4109 representation of all this might make me quite easy. But I know the
4110 foundation is unjust. Caroline is incapable of wilfully deceiving
4111 anyone; and all that I can hope in this case is that she is deceiving
4112 herself."
4113
4114 "That is right. You could not have started a more happy idea, since you
4115 will not take comfort in mine. Believe her to be deceived, by all means.
4116 You have now done your duty by her, and must fret no longer."
4117
4118 "But, my dear sister, can I be happy, even supposing the best, in
4119 accepting a man whose sisters and friends are all wishing him to marry
4120 elsewhere?"
4121
4122 "You must decide for yourself," said Elizabeth; "and if, upon mature
4123 deliberation, you find that the misery of disobliging his two sisters is
4124 more than equivalent to the happiness of being his wife, I advise you by
4125 all means to refuse him."
4126
4127 "How can you talk so?" said Jane, faintly smiling. "You must know that
4128 though I should be exceedingly grieved at their disapprobation, I could
4129 not hesitate."
4130
4131 "I did not think you would; and that being the case, I cannot consider
4132 your situation with much compassion."
4133
4134 "But if he returns no more this winter, my choice will never be
4135 required. A thousand things may arise in six months!"
4136
4137 The idea of his returning no more Elizabeth treated with the utmost
4138 contempt. It appeared to her merely the suggestion of Caroline's
4139 interested wishes, and she could not for a moment suppose that those
4140 wishes, however openly or artfully spoken, could influence a young man
4141 so totally independent of everyone.
4142
4143 She represented to her sister as forcibly as possible what she felt
4144 on the subject, and had soon the pleasure of seeing its happy effect.
4145 Jane's temper was not desponding, and she was gradually led to hope,
4146 though the diffidence of affection sometimes overcame the hope, that
4147 Bingley would return to Netherfield and answer every wish of her heart.
4148
4149 They agreed that Mrs. Bennet should only hear of the departure of the
4150 family, without being alarmed on the score of the gentleman's conduct;
4151 but even this partial communication gave her a great deal of concern,
4152 and she bewailed it as exceedingly unlucky that the ladies should happen
4153 to go away just as they were all getting so intimate together. After
4154 lamenting it, however, at some length, she had the consolation that Mr.
4155 Bingley would be soon down again and soon dining at Longbourn, and the
4156 conclusion of all was the comfortable declaration, that though he had
4157 been invited only to a family dinner, she would take care to have two
4158 full courses.
4159
4160
4161
4162 Chapter 22
4163
4164
4165 The Bennets were engaged to dine with the Lucases and again during the
4166 chief of the day was Miss Lucas so kind as to listen to Mr. Collins.
4167 Elizabeth took an opportunity of thanking her. "It keeps him in good
4168 humour," said she, "and I am more obliged to you than I can express."
4169 Charlotte assured her friend of her satisfaction in being useful, and
4170 that it amply repaid her for the little sacrifice of her time. This was
4171 very amiable, but Charlotte's kindness extended farther than Elizabeth
4172 had any conception of; its object was nothing else than to secure her
4173 from any return of Mr. Collins's addresses, by engaging them towards
4174 herself. Such was Miss Lucas's scheme; and appearances were so
4175 favourable, that when they parted at night, she would have felt almost
4176 secure of success if he had not been to leave Hertfordshire so very
4177 soon. But here she did injustice to the fire and independence of his
4178 character, for it led him to escape out of Longbourn House the next
4179 morning with admirable slyness, and hasten to Lucas Lodge to throw
4180 himself at her feet. He was anxious to avoid the notice of his cousins,
4181 from a conviction that if they saw him depart, they could not fail to
4182 conjecture his design, and he was not willing to have the attempt known
4183 till its success might be known likewise; for though feeling almost
4184 secure, and with reason, for Charlotte had been tolerably encouraging,
4185 he was comparatively diffident since the adventure of Wednesday.
4186 His reception, however, was of the most flattering kind. Miss Lucas
4187 perceived him from an upper window as he walked towards the house, and
4188 instantly set out to meet him accidentally in the lane. But little had
4189 she dared to hope that so much love and eloquence awaited her there.
4190
4191 In as short a time as Mr. Collins's long speeches would allow,
4192 everything was settled between them to the satisfaction of both; and as
4193 they entered the house he earnestly entreated her to name the day that
4194 was to make him the happiest of men; and though such a solicitation must
4195 be waived for the present, the lady felt no inclination to trifle with
4196 his happiness. The stupidity with which he was favoured by nature must
4197 guard his courtship from any charm that could make a woman wish for its
4198 continuance; and Miss Lucas, who accepted him solely from the pure
4199 and disinterested desire of an establishment, cared not how soon that
4200 establishment were gained.
4201
4202 Sir William and Lady Lucas were speedily applied to for their consent;
4203 and it was bestowed with a most joyful alacrity. Mr. Collins's present
4204 circumstances made it a most eligible match for their daughter, to whom
4205 they could give little fortune; and his prospects of future wealth were
4206 exceedingly fair. Lady Lucas began directly to calculate, with more
4207 interest than the matter had ever excited before, how many years longer
4208 Mr. Bennet was likely to live; and Sir William gave it as his decided
4209 opinion, that whenever Mr. Collins should be in possession of the
4210 Longbourn estate, it would be highly expedient that both he and his wife
4211 should make their appearance at St. James's. The whole family, in short,
4212 were properly overjoyed on the occasion. The younger girls formed hopes
4213 of _coming out_ a year or two sooner than they might otherwise have
4214 done; and the boys were relieved from their apprehension of Charlotte's
4215 dying an old maid. Charlotte herself was tolerably composed. She had
4216 gained her point, and had time to consider of it. Her reflections were
4217 in general satisfactory. Mr. Collins, to be sure, was neither sensible
4218 nor agreeable; his society was irksome, and his attachment to her must
4219 be imaginary. But still he would be her husband. Without thinking highly
4220 either of men or matrimony, marriage had always been her object; it was
4221 the only provision for well-educated young women of small fortune,
4222 and however uncertain of giving happiness, must be their pleasantest
4223 preservative from want. This preservative she had now obtained; and at
4224 the age of twenty-seven, without having ever been handsome, she felt all
4225 the good luck of it. The least agreeable circumstance in the business
4226 was the surprise it must occasion to Elizabeth Bennet, whose friendship
4227 she valued beyond that of any other person. Elizabeth would wonder,
4228 and probably would blame her; and though her resolution was not to be
4229 shaken, her feelings must be hurt by such a disapprobation. She resolved
4230 to give her the information herself, and therefore charged Mr. Collins,
4231 when he returned to Longbourn to dinner, to drop no hint of what had
4232 passed before any of the family. A promise of secrecy was of course very
4233 dutifully given, but it could not be kept without difficulty; for the
4234 curiosity excited by his long absence burst forth in such very direct
4235 questions on his return as required some ingenuity to evade, and he was
4236 at the same time exercising great self-denial, for he was longing to
4237 publish his prosperous love.
4238
4239 As he was to begin his journey too early on the morrow to see any of the
4240 family, the ceremony of leave-taking was performed when the ladies moved
4241 for the night; and Mrs. Bennet, with great politeness and cordiality,
4242 said how happy they should be to see him at Longbourn again, whenever
4243 his engagements might allow him to visit them.
4244
4245 "My dear madam," he replied, "this invitation is particularly
4246 gratifying, because it is what I have been hoping to receive; and
4247 you may be very certain that I shall avail myself of it as soon as
4248 possible."
4249
4250 They were all astonished; and Mr. Bennet, who could by no means wish for
4251 so speedy a return, immediately said:
4252
4253 "But is there not danger of Lady Catherine's disapprobation here, my
4254 good sir? You had better neglect your relations than run the risk of
4255 offending your patroness."
4256
4257 "My dear sir," replied Mr. Collins, "I am particularly obliged to you
4258 for this friendly caution, and you may depend upon my not taking so
4259 material a step without her ladyship's concurrence."
4260
4261 "You cannot be too much upon your guard. Risk anything rather than her
4262 displeasure; and if you find it likely to be raised by your coming to us
4263 again, which I should think exceedingly probable, stay quietly at home,
4264 and be satisfied that _we_ shall take no offence."
4265
4266 "Believe me, my dear sir, my gratitude is warmly excited by such
4267 affectionate attention; and depend upon it, you will speedily receive
4268 from me a letter of thanks for this, and for every other mark of your
4269 regard during my stay in Hertfordshire. As for my fair cousins, though
4270 my absence may not be long enough to render it necessary, I shall now
4271 take the liberty of wishing them health and happiness, not excepting my
4272 cousin Elizabeth."
4273
4274 With proper civilities the ladies then withdrew; all of them equally
4275 surprised that he meditated a quick return. Mrs. Bennet wished to
4276 understand by it that he thought of paying his addresses to one of her
4277 younger girls, and Mary might have been prevailed on to accept him.
4278 She rated his abilities much higher than any of the others; there was
4279 a solidity in his reflections which often struck her, and though by no
4280 means so clever as herself, she thought that if encouraged to read
4281 and improve himself by such an example as hers, he might become a very
4282 agreeable companion. But on the following morning, every hope of this
4283 kind was done away. Miss Lucas called soon after breakfast, and in a
4284 private conference with Elizabeth related the event of the day before.
4285
4286 The possibility of Mr. Collins's fancying himself in love with her
4287 friend had once occurred to Elizabeth within the last day or two; but
4288 that Charlotte could encourage him seemed almost as far from
4289 possibility as she could encourage him herself, and her astonishment was
4290 consequently so great as to overcome at first the bounds of decorum, and
4291 she could not help crying out:
4292
4293 "Engaged to Mr. Collins! My dear Charlotte--impossible!"
4294
4295 The steady countenance which Miss Lucas had commanded in telling her
4296 story, gave way to a momentary confusion here on receiving so direct a
4297 reproach; though, as it was no more than she expected, she soon regained
4298 her composure, and calmly replied:
4299
4300 "Why should you be surprised, my dear Eliza? Do you think it incredible
4301 that Mr. Collins should be able to procure any woman's good opinion,
4302 because he was not so happy as to succeed with you?"
4303
4304 But Elizabeth had now recollected herself, and making a strong effort
4305 for it, was able to assure with tolerable firmness that the prospect of
4306 their relationship was highly grateful to her, and that she wished her
4307 all imaginable happiness.
4308
4309 "I see what you are feeling," replied Charlotte. "You must be surprised,
4310 very much surprised--so lately as Mr. Collins was wishing to marry
4311 you. But when you have had time to think it over, I hope you will be
4312 satisfied with what I have done. I am not romantic, you know; I never
4313 was. I ask only a comfortable home; and considering Mr. Collins's
4314 character, connection, and situation in life, I am convinced that my
4315 chance of happiness with him is as fair as most people can boast on
4316 entering the marriage state."
4317
4318 Elizabeth quietly answered "Undoubtedly;" and after an awkward pause,
4319 they returned to the rest of the family. Charlotte did not stay much
4320 longer, and Elizabeth was then left to reflect on what she had heard.
4321 It was a long time before she became at all reconciled to the idea of so
4322 unsuitable a match. The strangeness of Mr. Collins's making two offers
4323 of marriage within three days was nothing in comparison of his being now
4324 accepted. She had always felt that Charlotte's opinion of matrimony was
4325 not exactly like her own, but she had not supposed it to be possible
4326 that, when called into action, she would have sacrificed every better
4327 feeling to worldly advantage. Charlotte the wife of Mr. Collins was a
4328 most humiliating picture! And to the pang of a friend disgracing herself
4329 and sunk in her esteem, was added the distressing conviction that it
4330 was impossible for that friend to be tolerably happy in the lot she had
4331 chosen.
4332
4333
4334
4335 Chapter 23
4336
4337
4338 Elizabeth was sitting with her mother and sisters, reflecting on what
4339 she had heard, and doubting whether she was authorised to mention
4340 it, when Sir William Lucas himself appeared, sent by his daughter, to
4341 announce her engagement to the family. With many compliments to them,
4342 and much self-gratulation on the prospect of a connection between the
4343 houses, he unfolded the matter--to an audience not merely wondering, but
4344 incredulous; for Mrs. Bennet, with more perseverance than politeness,
4345 protested he must be entirely mistaken; and Lydia, always unguarded and
4346 often uncivil, boisterously exclaimed:
4347
4348 "Good Lord! Sir William, how can you tell such a story? Do not you know
4349 that Mr. Collins wants to marry Lizzy?"
4350
4351 Nothing less than the complaisance of a courtier could have borne
4352 without anger such treatment; but Sir William's good breeding carried
4353 him through it all; and though he begged leave to be positive as to the
4354 truth of his information, he listened to all their impertinence with the
4355 most forbearing courtesy.
4356
4357 Elizabeth, feeling it incumbent on her to relieve him from so unpleasant
4358 a situation, now put herself forward to confirm his account, by
4359 mentioning her prior knowledge of it from Charlotte herself; and
4360 endeavoured to put a stop to the exclamations of her mother and sisters
4361 by the earnestness of her congratulations to Sir William, in which she
4362 was readily joined by Jane, and by making a variety of remarks on the
4363 happiness that might be expected from the match, the excellent character
4364 of Mr. Collins, and the convenient distance of Hunsford from London.
4365
4366 Mrs. Bennet was in fact too much overpowered to say a great deal while
4367 Sir William remained; but no sooner had he left them than her feelings
4368 found a rapid vent. In the first place, she persisted in disbelieving
4369 the whole of the matter; secondly, she was very sure that Mr. Collins
4370 had been taken in; thirdly, she trusted that they would never be
4371 happy together; and fourthly, that the match might be broken off. Two
4372 inferences, however, were plainly deduced from the whole: one, that
4373 Elizabeth was the real cause of the mischief; and the other that she
4374 herself had been barbarously misused by them all; and on these two
4375 points she principally dwelt during the rest of the day. Nothing could
4376 console and nothing could appease her. Nor did that day wear out her
4377 resentment. A week elapsed before she could see Elizabeth without
4378 scolding her, a month passed away before she could speak to Sir William
4379 or Lady Lucas without being rude, and many months were gone before she
4380 could at all forgive their daughter.
4381
4382 Mr. Bennet's emotions were much more tranquil on the occasion, and such
4383 as he did experience he pronounced to be of a most agreeable sort; for
4384 it gratified him, he said, to discover that Charlotte Lucas, whom he had
4385 been used to think tolerably sensible, was as foolish as his wife, and
4386 more foolish than his daughter!
4387
4388 Jane confessed herself a little surprised at the match; but she said
4389 less of her astonishment than of her earnest desire for their happiness;
4390 nor could Elizabeth persuade her to consider it as improbable. Kitty
4391 and Lydia were far from envying Miss Lucas, for Mr. Collins was only a
4392 clergyman; and it affected them in no other way than as a piece of news
4393 to spread at Meryton.
4394
4395 Lady Lucas could not be insensible of triumph on being able to retort
4396 on Mrs. Bennet the comfort of having a daughter well married; and she
4397 called at Longbourn rather oftener than usual to say how happy she was,
4398 though Mrs. Bennet's sour looks and ill-natured remarks might have been
4399 enough to drive happiness away.
4400
4401 Between Elizabeth and Charlotte there was a restraint which kept them
4402 mutually silent on the subject; and Elizabeth felt persuaded that
4403 no real confidence could ever subsist between them again. Her
4404 disappointment in Charlotte made her turn with fonder regard to her
4405 sister, of whose rectitude and delicacy she was sure her opinion could
4406 never be shaken, and for whose happiness she grew daily more anxious,
4407 as Bingley had now been gone a week and nothing more was heard of his
4408 return.
4409
4410 Jane had sent Caroline an early answer to her letter, and was counting
4411 the days till she might reasonably hope to hear again. The promised
4412 letter of thanks from Mr. Collins arrived on Tuesday, addressed to
4413 their father, and written with all the solemnity of gratitude which a
4414 twelvemonth's abode in the family might have prompted. After discharging
4415 his conscience on that head, he proceeded to inform them, with many
4416 rapturous expressions, of his happiness in having obtained the affection
4417 of their amiable neighbour, Miss Lucas, and then explained that it was
4418 merely with the view of enjoying her society that he had been so ready
4419 to close with their kind wish of seeing him again at Longbourn, whither
4420 he hoped to be able to return on Monday fortnight; for Lady Catherine,
4421 he added, so heartily approved his marriage, that she wished it to take
4422 place as soon as possible, which he trusted would be an unanswerable
4423 argument with his amiable Charlotte to name an early day for making him
4424 the happiest of men.
4425
4426 Mr. Collins's return into Hertfordshire was no longer a matter of
4427 pleasure to Mrs. Bennet. On the contrary, she was as much disposed to
4428 complain of it as her husband. It was very strange that he should come
4429 to Longbourn instead of to Lucas Lodge; it was also very inconvenient
4430 and exceedingly troublesome. She hated having visitors in the house
4431 while her health was so indifferent, and lovers were of all people the
4432 most disagreeable. Such were the gentle murmurs of Mrs. Bennet, and
4433 they gave way only to the greater distress of Mr. Bingley's continued
4434 absence.
4435
4436 Neither Jane nor Elizabeth were comfortable on this subject. Day after
4437 day passed away without bringing any other tidings of him than the
4438 report which shortly prevailed in Meryton of his coming no more to
4439 Netherfield the whole winter; a report which highly incensed Mrs.
4440 Bennet, and which she never failed to contradict as a most scandalous
4441 falsehood.
4442
4443 Even Elizabeth began to fear--not that Bingley was indifferent--but that
4444 his sisters would be successful in keeping him away. Unwilling as
4445 she was to admit an idea so destructive of Jane's happiness, and so
4446 dishonorable to the stability of her lover, she could not prevent its
4447 frequently occurring. The united efforts of his two unfeeling sisters
4448 and of his overpowering friend, assisted by the attractions of Miss
4449 Darcy and the amusements of London might be too much, she feared, for
4450 the strength of his attachment.
4451
4452 As for Jane, _her_ anxiety under this suspense was, of course, more
4453 painful than Elizabeth's, but whatever she felt she was desirous of
4454 concealing, and between herself and Elizabeth, therefore, the subject
4455 was never alluded to. But as no such delicacy restrained her mother,
4456 an hour seldom passed in which she did not talk of Bingley, express her
4457 impatience for his arrival, or even require Jane to confess that if he
4458 did not come back she would think herself very ill used. It needed
4459 all Jane's steady mildness to bear these attacks with tolerable
4460 tranquillity.
4461
4462 Mr. Collins returned most punctually on Monday fortnight, but his
4463 reception at Longbourn was not quite so gracious as it had been on his
4464 first introduction. He was too happy, however, to need much attention;
4465 and luckily for the others, the business of love-making relieved them
4466 from a great deal of his company. The chief of every day was spent by
4467 him at Lucas Lodge, and he sometimes returned to Longbourn only in time
4468 to make an apology for his absence before the family went to bed.
4469
4470 Mrs. Bennet was really in a most pitiable state. The very mention of
4471 anything concerning the match threw her into an agony of ill-humour,
4472 and wherever she went she was sure of hearing it talked of. The sight
4473 of Miss Lucas was odious to her. As her successor in that house, she
4474 regarded her with jealous abhorrence. Whenever Charlotte came to see
4475 them, she concluded her to be anticipating the hour of possession; and
4476 whenever she spoke in a low voice to Mr. Collins, was convinced that
4477 they were talking of the Longbourn estate, and resolving to turn herself
4478 and her daughters out of the house, as soon as Mr. Bennet were dead. She
4479 complained bitterly of all this to her husband.
4480
4481 "Indeed, Mr. Bennet," said she, "it is very hard to think that Charlotte
4482 Lucas should ever be mistress of this house, that I should be forced to
4483 make way for _her_, and live to see her take her place in it!"
4484
4485 "My dear, do not give way to such gloomy thoughts. Let us hope for
4486 better things. Let us flatter ourselves that I may be the survivor."
4487
4488 This was not very consoling to Mrs. Bennet, and therefore, instead of
4489 making any answer, she went on as before.
4490
4491 "I cannot bear to think that they should have all this estate. If it was
4492 not for the entail, I should not mind it."
4493
4494 "What should not you mind?"
4495
4496 "I should not mind anything at all."
4497
4498 "Let us be thankful that you are preserved from a state of such
4499 insensibility."
4500
4501 "I never can be thankful, Mr. Bennet, for anything about the entail. How
4502 anyone could have the conscience to entail away an estate from one's own
4503 daughters, I cannot understand; and all for the sake of Mr. Collins too!
4504 Why should _he_ have it more than anybody else?"
4505
4506 "I leave it to yourself to determine," said Mr. Bennet.
4507
4508
4509
4510 Chapter 24
4511
4512
4513 Miss Bingley's letter arrived, and put an end to doubt. The very first
4514 sentence conveyed the assurance of their being all settled in London for
4515 the winter, and concluded with her brother's regret at not having had
4516 time to pay his respects to his friends in Hertfordshire before he left
4517 the country.
4518
4519 Hope was over, entirely over; and when Jane could attend to the rest
4520 of the letter, she found little, except the professed affection of the
4521 writer, that could give her any comfort. Miss Darcy's praise occupied
4522 the chief of it. Her many attractions were again dwelt on, and Caroline
4523 boasted joyfully of their increasing intimacy, and ventured to predict
4524 the accomplishment of the wishes which had been unfolded in her former
4525 letter. She wrote also with great pleasure of her brother's being an
4526 inmate of Mr. Darcy's house, and mentioned with raptures some plans of
4527 the latter with regard to new furniture.
4528
4529 Elizabeth, to whom Jane very soon communicated the chief of all this,
4530 heard it in silent indignation. Her heart was divided between concern
4531 for her sister, and resentment against all others. To Caroline's
4532 assertion of her brother's being partial to Miss Darcy she paid no
4533 credit. That he was really fond of Jane, she doubted no more than she
4534 had ever done; and much as she had always been disposed to like him, she
4535 could not think without anger, hardly without contempt, on that easiness
4536 of temper, that want of proper resolution, which now made him the slave
4537 of his designing friends, and led him to sacrifice of his own happiness
4538 to the caprice of their inclination. Had his own happiness, however,
4539 been the only sacrifice, he might have been allowed to sport with it in
4540 whatever manner he thought best, but her sister's was involved in it, as
4541 she thought he must be sensible himself. It was a subject, in short,
4542 on which reflection would be long indulged, and must be unavailing. She
4543 could think of nothing else; and yet whether Bingley's regard had really
4544 died away, or were suppressed by his friends' interference; whether
4545 he had been aware of Jane's attachment, or whether it had escaped his
4546 observation; whatever were the case, though her opinion of him must be
4547 materially affected by the difference, her sister's situation remained
4548 the same, her peace equally wounded.
4549
4550 A day or two passed before Jane had courage to speak of her feelings to
4551 Elizabeth; but at last, on Mrs. Bennet's leaving them together, after a
4552 longer irritation than usual about Netherfield and its master, she could
4553 not help saying:
4554
4555 "Oh, that my dear mother had more command over herself! She can have no
4556 idea of the pain she gives me by her continual reflections on him. But
4557 I will not repine. It cannot last long. He will be forgot, and we shall
4558 all be as we were before."
4559
4560 Elizabeth looked at her sister with incredulous solicitude, but said
4561 nothing.
4562
4563 "You doubt me," cried Jane, slightly colouring; "indeed, you have
4564 no reason. He may live in my memory as the most amiable man of my
4565 acquaintance, but that is all. I have nothing either to hope or fear,
4566 and nothing to reproach him with. Thank God! I have not _that_ pain. A
4567 little time, therefore--I shall certainly try to get the better."
4568
4569 With a stronger voice she soon added, "I have this comfort immediately,
4570 that it has not been more than an error of fancy on my side, and that it
4571 has done no harm to anyone but myself."
4572
4573 "My dear Jane!" exclaimed Elizabeth, "you are too good. Your sweetness
4574 and disinterestedness are really angelic; I do not know what to say
4575 to you. I feel as if I had never done you justice, or loved you as you
4576 deserve."
4577
4578 Miss Bennet eagerly disclaimed all extraordinary merit, and threw back
4579 the praise on her sister's warm affection.
4580
4581 "Nay," said Elizabeth, "this is not fair. _You_ wish to think all the
4582 world respectable, and are hurt if I speak ill of anybody. I only want
4583 to think _you_ perfect, and you set yourself against it. Do not
4584 be afraid of my running into any excess, of my encroaching on your
4585 privilege of universal good-will. You need not. There are few people
4586 whom I really love, and still fewer of whom I think well. The more I see
4587 of the world, the more am I dissatisfied with it; and every day confirms
4588 my belief of the inconsistency of all human characters, and of the
4589 little dependence that can be placed on the appearance of merit or
4590 sense. I have met with two instances lately, one I will not mention; the
4591 other is Charlotte's marriage. It is unaccountable! In every view it is
4592 unaccountable!"
4593
4594 "My dear Lizzy, do not give way to such feelings as these. They will
4595 ruin your happiness. You do not make allowance enough for difference
4596 of situation and temper. Consider Mr. Collins's respectability, and
4597 Charlotte's steady, prudent character. Remember that she is one of a
4598 large family; that as to fortune, it is a most eligible match; and be
4599 ready to believe, for everybody's sake, that she may feel something like
4600 regard and esteem for our cousin."
4601
4602 "To oblige you, I would try to believe almost anything, but no one else
4603 could be benefited by such a belief as this; for were I persuaded that
4604 Charlotte had any regard for him, I should only think worse of her
4605 understanding than I now do of her heart. My dear Jane, Mr. Collins is a
4606 conceited, pompous, narrow-minded, silly man; you know he is, as well as
4607 I do; and you must feel, as well as I do, that the woman who married him
4608 cannot have a proper way of thinking. You shall not defend her, though
4609 it is Charlotte Lucas. You shall not, for the sake of one individual,
4610 change the meaning of principle and integrity, nor endeavour to persuade
4611 yourself or me, that selfishness is prudence, and insensibility of
4612 danger security for happiness."
4613
4614 "I must think your language too strong in speaking of both," replied
4615 Jane; "and I hope you will be convinced of it by seeing them happy
4616 together. But enough of this. You alluded to something else. You
4617 mentioned _two_ instances. I cannot misunderstand you, but I entreat
4618 you, dear Lizzy, not to pain me by thinking _that person_ to blame, and
4619 saying your opinion of him is sunk. We must not be so ready to fancy
4620 ourselves intentionally injured. We must not expect a lively young man
4621 to be always so guarded and circumspect. It is very often nothing but
4622 our own vanity that deceives us. Women fancy admiration means more than
4623 it does."
4624
4625 "And men take care that they should."
4626
4627 "If it is designedly done, they cannot be justified; but I have no idea
4628 of there being so much design in the world as some persons imagine."
4629
4630 "I am far from attributing any part of Mr. Bingley's conduct to design,"
4631 said Elizabeth; "but without scheming to do wrong, or to make others
4632 unhappy, there may be error, and there may be misery. Thoughtlessness,
4633 want of attention to other people's feelings, and want of resolution,
4634 will do the business."
4635
4636 "And do you impute it to either of those?"
4637
4638 "Yes; to the last. But if I go on, I shall displease you by saying what
4639 I think of persons you esteem. Stop me whilst you can."
4640
4641 "You persist, then, in supposing his sisters influence him?"
4642
4643 "Yes, in conjunction with his friend."
4644
4645 "I cannot believe it. Why should they try to influence him? They can
4646 only wish his happiness; and if he is attached to me, no other woman can
4647 secure it."
4648
4649 "Your first position is false. They may wish many things besides his
4650 happiness; they may wish his increase of wealth and consequence; they
4651 may wish him to marry a girl who has all the importance of money, great
4652 connections, and pride."
4653
4654 "Beyond a doubt, they _do_ wish him to choose Miss Darcy," replied Jane;
4655 "but this may be from better feelings than you are supposing. They have
4656 known her much longer than they have known me; no wonder if they love
4657 her better. But, whatever may be their own wishes, it is very unlikely
4658 they should have opposed their brother's. What sister would think
4659 herself at liberty to do it, unless there were something very
4660 objectionable? If they believed him attached to me, they would not try
4661 to part us; if he were so, they could not succeed. By supposing such an
4662 affection, you make everybody acting unnaturally and wrong, and me most
4663 unhappy. Do not distress me by the idea. I am not ashamed of having been
4664 mistaken--or, at least, it is light, it is nothing in comparison of what
4665 I should feel in thinking ill of him or his sisters. Let me take it in
4666 the best light, in the light in which it may be understood."
4667
4668 Elizabeth could not oppose such a wish; and from this time Mr. Bingley's
4669 name was scarcely ever mentioned between them.
4670
4671 Mrs. Bennet still continued to wonder and repine at his returning no
4672 more, and though a day seldom passed in which Elizabeth did not account
4673 for it clearly, there was little chance of her ever considering it with
4674 less perplexity. Her daughter endeavoured to convince her of what she
4675 did not believe herself, that his attentions to Jane had been merely the
4676 effect of a common and transient liking, which ceased when he saw her
4677 no more; but though the probability of the statement was admitted at
4678 the time, she had the same story to repeat every day. Mrs. Bennet's best
4679 comfort was that Mr. Bingley must be down again in the summer.
4680
4681 Mr. Bennet treated the matter differently. "So, Lizzy," said he one day,
4682 "your sister is crossed in love, I find. I congratulate her. Next to
4683 being married, a girl likes to be crossed a little in love now and then.
4684 It is something to think of, and it gives her a sort of distinction
4685 among her companions. When is your turn to come? You will hardly bear to
4686 be long outdone by Jane. Now is your time. Here are officers enough in
4687 Meryton to disappoint all the young ladies in the country. Let Wickham
4688 be _your_ man. He is a pleasant fellow, and would jilt you creditably."
4689
4690 "Thank you, sir, but a less agreeable man would satisfy me. We must not
4691 all expect Jane's good fortune."
4692
4693 "True," said Mr. Bennet, "but it is a comfort to think that whatever of
4694 that kind may befall you, you have an affectionate mother who will make
4695 the most of it."
4696
4697 Mr. Wickham's society was of material service in dispelling the gloom
4698 which the late perverse occurrences had thrown on many of the Longbourn
4699 family. They saw him often, and to his other recommendations was now
4700 added that of general unreserve. The whole of what Elizabeth had already
4701 heard, his claims on Mr. Darcy, and all that he had suffered from him,
4702 was now openly acknowledged and publicly canvassed; and everybody was
4703 pleased to know how much they had always disliked Mr. Darcy before they
4704 had known anything of the matter.
4705
4706 Miss Bennet was the only creature who could suppose there might be
4707 any extenuating circumstances in the case, unknown to the society
4708 of Hertfordshire; her mild and steady candour always pleaded for
4709 allowances, and urged the possibility of mistakes--but by everybody else
4710 Mr. Darcy was condemned as the worst of men.
4711
4712
4713
4714 Chapter 25
4715
4716
4717 After a week spent in professions of love and schemes of felicity,
4718 Mr. Collins was called from his amiable Charlotte by the arrival of
4719 Saturday. The pain of separation, however, might be alleviated on his
4720 side, by preparations for the reception of his bride; as he had reason
4721 to hope, that shortly after his return into Hertfordshire, the day would
4722 be fixed that was to make him the happiest of men. He took leave of his
4723 relations at Longbourn with as much solemnity as before; wished his fair
4724 cousins health and happiness again, and promised their father another
4725 letter of thanks.
4726
4727 On the following Monday, Mrs. Bennet had the pleasure of receiving
4728 her brother and his wife, who came as usual to spend the Christmas
4729 at Longbourn. Mr. Gardiner was a sensible, gentlemanlike man, greatly
4730 superior to his sister, as well by nature as education. The Netherfield
4731 ladies would have had difficulty in believing that a man who lived
4732 by trade, and within view of his own warehouses, could have been so
4733 well-bred and agreeable. Mrs. Gardiner, who was several years younger
4734 than Mrs. Bennet and Mrs. Phillips, was an amiable, intelligent, elegant
4735 woman, and a great favourite with all her Longbourn nieces. Between the
4736 two eldest and herself especially, there subsisted a particular regard.
4737 They had frequently been staying with her in town.
4738
4739 The first part of Mrs. Gardiner's business on her arrival was to
4740 distribute her presents and describe the newest fashions. When this was
4741 done she had a less active part to play. It became her turn to listen.
4742 Mrs. Bennet had many grievances to relate, and much to complain of. They
4743 had all been very ill-used since she last saw her sister. Two of her
4744 girls had been upon the point of marriage, and after all there was
4745 nothing in it.
4746
4747 "I do not blame Jane," she continued, "for Jane would have got Mr.
4748 Bingley if she could. But Lizzy! Oh, sister! It is very hard to think
4749 that she might have been Mr. Collins's wife by this time, had it not
4750 been for her own perverseness. He made her an offer in this very room,
4751 and she refused him. The consequence of it is, that Lady Lucas will have
4752 a daughter married before I have, and that the Longbourn estate is just
4753 as much entailed as ever. The Lucases are very artful people indeed,
4754 sister. They are all for what they can get. I am sorry to say it of
4755 them, but so it is. It makes me very nervous and poorly, to be thwarted
4756 so in my own family, and to have neighbours who think of themselves
4757 before anybody else. However, your coming just at this time is the
4758 greatest of comforts, and I am very glad to hear what you tell us, of
4759 long sleeves."
4760
4761 Mrs. Gardiner, to whom the chief of this news had been given before,
4762 in the course of Jane and Elizabeth's correspondence with her, made her
4763 sister a slight answer, and, in compassion to her nieces, turned the
4764 conversation.
4765
4766 When alone with Elizabeth afterwards, she spoke more on the subject. "It
4767 seems likely to have been a desirable match for Jane," said she. "I am
4768 sorry it went off. But these things happen so often! A young man, such
4769 as you describe Mr. Bingley, so easily falls in love with a pretty girl
4770 for a few weeks, and when accident separates them, so easily forgets
4771 her, that these sort of inconsistencies are very frequent."
4772
4773 "An excellent consolation in its way," said Elizabeth, "but it will not
4774 do for _us_. We do not suffer by _accident_. It does not often
4775 happen that the interference of friends will persuade a young man of
4776 independent fortune to think no more of a girl whom he was violently in
4777 love with only a few days before."
4778
4779 "But that expression of 'violently in love' is so hackneyed, so
4780 doubtful, so indefinite, that it gives me very little idea. It is as
4781 often applied to feelings which arise from a half-hour's acquaintance,
4782 as to a real, strong attachment. Pray, how _violent was_ Mr. Bingley's
4783 love?"
4784
4785 "I never saw a more promising inclination; he was growing quite
4786 inattentive to other people, and wholly engrossed by her. Every time
4787 they met, it was more decided and remarkable. At his own ball he
4788 offended two or three young ladies, by not asking them to dance; and I
4789 spoke to him twice myself, without receiving an answer. Could there be
4790 finer symptoms? Is not general incivility the very essence of love?"
4791
4792 "Oh, yes!--of that kind of love which I suppose him to have felt. Poor
4793 Jane! I am sorry for her, because, with her disposition, she may not get
4794 over it immediately. It had better have happened to _you_, Lizzy; you
4795 would have laughed yourself out of it sooner. But do you think she
4796 would be prevailed upon to go back with us? Change of scene might be
4797 of service--and perhaps a little relief from home may be as useful as
4798 anything."
4799
4800 Elizabeth was exceedingly pleased with this proposal, and felt persuaded
4801 of her sister's ready acquiescence.
4802
4803 "I hope," added Mrs. Gardiner, "that no consideration with regard to
4804 this young man will influence her. We live in so different a part of
4805 town, all our connections are so different, and, as you well know, we go
4806 out so little, that it is very improbable that they should meet at all,
4807 unless he really comes to see her."
4808
4809 "And _that_ is quite impossible; for he is now in the custody of his
4810 friend, and Mr. Darcy would no more suffer him to call on Jane in such
4811 a part of London! My dear aunt, how could you think of it? Mr. Darcy may
4812 perhaps have _heard_ of such a place as Gracechurch Street, but he
4813 would hardly think a month's ablution enough to cleanse him from its
4814 impurities, were he once to enter it; and depend upon it, Mr. Bingley
4815 never stirs without him."
4816
4817 "So much the better. I hope they will not meet at all. But does not Jane
4818 correspond with his sister? _She_ will not be able to help calling."
4819
4820 "She will drop the acquaintance entirely."
4821
4822 But in spite of the certainty in which Elizabeth affected to place this
4823 point, as well as the still more interesting one of Bingley's being
4824 withheld from seeing Jane, she felt a solicitude on the subject which
4825 convinced her, on examination, that she did not consider it entirely
4826 hopeless. It was possible, and sometimes she thought it probable, that
4827 his affection might be reanimated, and the influence of his friends
4828 successfully combated by the more natural influence of Jane's
4829 attractions.
4830
4831 Miss Bennet accepted her aunt's invitation with pleasure; and the
4832 Bingleys were no otherwise in her thoughts at the same time, than as she
4833 hoped by Caroline's not living in the same house with her brother,
4834 she might occasionally spend a morning with her, without any danger of
4835 seeing him.
4836
4837 The Gardiners stayed a week at Longbourn; and what with the Phillipses,
4838 the Lucases, and the officers, there was not a day without its
4839 engagement. Mrs. Bennet had so carefully provided for the entertainment
4840 of her brother and sister, that they did not once sit down to a family
4841 dinner. When the engagement was for home, some of the officers always
4842 made part of it--of which officers Mr. Wickham was sure to be one; and
4843 on these occasions, Mrs. Gardiner, rendered suspicious by Elizabeth's
4844 warm commendation, narrowly observed them both. Without supposing them,
4845 from what she saw, to be very seriously in love, their preference
4846 of each other was plain enough to make her a little uneasy; and
4847 she resolved to speak to Elizabeth on the subject before she left
4848 Hertfordshire, and represent to her the imprudence of encouraging such
4849 an attachment.
4850
4851 To Mrs. Gardiner, Wickham had one means of affording pleasure,
4852 unconnected with his general powers. About ten or a dozen years ago,
4853 before her marriage, she had spent a considerable time in that very
4854 part of Derbyshire to which he belonged. They had, therefore, many
4855 acquaintances in common; and though Wickham had been little there since
4856 the death of Darcy's father, it was yet in his power to give her fresher
4857 intelligence of her former friends than she had been in the way of
4858 procuring.
4859
4860 Mrs. Gardiner had seen Pemberley, and known the late Mr. Darcy by
4861 character perfectly well. Here consequently was an inexhaustible subject
4862 of discourse. In comparing her recollection of Pemberley with the minute
4863 description which Wickham could give, and in bestowing her tribute of
4864 praise on the character of its late possessor, she was delighting both
4865 him and herself. On being made acquainted with the present Mr. Darcy's
4866 treatment of him, she tried to remember some of that gentleman's
4867 reputed disposition when quite a lad which might agree with it, and
4868 was confident at last that she recollected having heard Mr. Fitzwilliam
4869 Darcy formerly spoken of as a very proud, ill-natured boy.
4870
4871
4872
4873 Chapter 26
4874
4875
4876 Mrs. Gardiner's caution to Elizabeth was punctually and kindly given
4877 on the first favourable opportunity of speaking to her alone; after
4878 honestly telling her what she thought, she thus went on:
4879
4880 "You are too sensible a girl, Lizzy, to fall in love merely because
4881 you are warned against it; and, therefore, I am not afraid of speaking
4882 openly. Seriously, I would have you be on your guard. Do not involve
4883 yourself or endeavour to involve him in an affection which the want
4884 of fortune would make so very imprudent. I have nothing to say against
4885 _him_; he is a most interesting young man; and if he had the fortune he
4886 ought to have, I should think you could not do better. But as it is, you
4887 must not let your fancy run away with you. You have sense, and we all
4888 expect you to use it. Your father would depend on _your_ resolution and
4889 good conduct, I am sure. You must not disappoint your father."
4890
4891 "My dear aunt, this is being serious indeed."
4892
4893 "Yes, and I hope to engage you to be serious likewise."
4894
4895 "Well, then, you need not be under any alarm. I will take care of
4896 myself, and of Mr. Wickham too. He shall not be in love with me, if I
4897 can prevent it."
4898
4899 "Elizabeth, you are not serious now."
4900
4901 "I beg your pardon, I will try again. At present I am not in love with
4902 Mr. Wickham; no, I certainly am not. But he is, beyond all comparison,
4903 the most agreeable man I ever saw--and if he becomes really attached to
4904 me--I believe it will be better that he should not. I see the imprudence
4905 of it. Oh! _that_ abominable Mr. Darcy! My father's opinion of me does
4906 me the greatest honour, and I should be miserable to forfeit it. My
4907 father, however, is partial to Mr. Wickham. In short, my dear aunt, I
4908 should be very sorry to be the means of making any of you unhappy; but
4909 since we see every day that where there is affection, young people
4910 are seldom withheld by immediate want of fortune from entering into
4911 engagements with each other, how can I promise to be wiser than so many
4912 of my fellow-creatures if I am tempted, or how am I even to know that it
4913 would be wisdom to resist? All that I can promise you, therefore, is not
4914 to be in a hurry. I will not be in a hurry to believe myself his first
4915 object. When I am in company with him, I will not be wishing. In short,
4916 I will do my best."
4917
4918 "Perhaps it will be as well if you discourage his coming here so very
4919 often. At least, you should not _remind_ your mother of inviting him."
4920
4921 "As I did the other day," said Elizabeth with a conscious smile: "very
4922 true, it will be wise in me to refrain from _that_. But do not imagine
4923 that he is always here so often. It is on your account that he has been
4924 so frequently invited this week. You know my mother's ideas as to the
4925 necessity of constant company for her friends. But really, and upon my
4926 honour, I will try to do what I think to be the wisest; and now I hope
4927 you are satisfied."
4928
4929 Her aunt assured her that she was, and Elizabeth having thanked her for
4930 the kindness of her hints, they parted; a wonderful instance of advice
4931 being given on such a point, without being resented.
4932
4933 Mr. Collins returned into Hertfordshire soon after it had been quitted
4934 by the Gardiners and Jane; but as he took up his abode with the Lucases,
4935 his arrival was no great inconvenience to Mrs. Bennet. His marriage was
4936 now fast approaching, and she was at length so far resigned as to think
4937 it inevitable, and even repeatedly to say, in an ill-natured tone, that
4938 she "_wished_ they might be happy." Thursday was to be the wedding day,
4939 and on Wednesday Miss Lucas paid her farewell visit; and when she
4940 rose to take leave, Elizabeth, ashamed of her mother's ungracious and
4941 reluctant good wishes, and sincerely affected herself, accompanied her
4942 out of the room. As they went downstairs together, Charlotte said:
4943
4944 "I shall depend on hearing from you very often, Eliza."
4945
4946 "_That_ you certainly shall."
4947
4948 "And I have another favour to ask you. Will you come and see me?"
4949
4950 "We shall often meet, I hope, in Hertfordshire."
4951
4952 "I am not likely to leave Kent for some time. Promise me, therefore, to
4953 come to Hunsford."
4954
4955 Elizabeth could not refuse, though she foresaw little pleasure in the
4956 visit.
4957
4958 "My father and Maria are coming to me in March," added Charlotte, "and I
4959 hope you will consent to be of the party. Indeed, Eliza, you will be as
4960 welcome as either of them."
4961
4962 The wedding took place; the bride and bridegroom set off for Kent from
4963 the church door, and everybody had as much to say, or to hear, on
4964 the subject as usual. Elizabeth soon heard from her friend; and their
4965 correspondence was as regular and frequent as it had ever been; that
4966 it should be equally unreserved was impossible. Elizabeth could never
4967 address her without feeling that all the comfort of intimacy was over,
4968 and though determined not to slacken as a correspondent, it was for the
4969 sake of what had been, rather than what was. Charlotte's first letters
4970 were received with a good deal of eagerness; there could not but be
4971 curiosity to know how she would speak of her new home, how she would
4972 like Lady Catherine, and how happy she would dare pronounce herself to
4973 be; though, when the letters were read, Elizabeth felt that Charlotte
4974 expressed herself on every point exactly as she might have foreseen. She
4975 wrote cheerfully, seemed surrounded with comforts, and mentioned nothing
4976 which she could not praise. The house, furniture, neighbourhood, and
4977 roads, were all to her taste, and Lady Catherine's behaviour was most
4978 friendly and obliging. It was Mr. Collins's picture of Hunsford and
4979 Rosings rationally softened; and Elizabeth perceived that she must wait
4980 for her own visit there to know the rest.
4981
4982 Jane had already written a few lines to her sister to announce their
4983 safe arrival in London; and when she wrote again, Elizabeth hoped it
4984 would be in her power to say something of the Bingleys.
4985
4986 Her impatience for this second letter was as well rewarded as impatience
4987 generally is. Jane had been a week in town without either seeing or
4988 hearing from Caroline. She accounted for it, however, by supposing that
4989 her last letter to her friend from Longbourn had by some accident been
4990 lost.
4991
4992 "My aunt," she continued, "is going to-morrow into that part of the
4993 town, and I shall take the opportunity of calling in Grosvenor Street."
4994
4995 She wrote again when the visit was paid, and she had seen Miss Bingley.
4996 "I did not think Caroline in spirits," were her words, "but she was very
4997 glad to see me, and reproached me for giving her no notice of my coming
4998 to London. I was right, therefore, my last letter had never reached
4999 her. I inquired after their brother, of course. He was well, but so much
5000 engaged with Mr. Darcy that they scarcely ever saw him. I found that
5001 Miss Darcy was expected to dinner. I wish I could see her. My visit was
5002 not long, as Caroline and Mrs. Hurst were going out. I dare say I shall
5003 see them soon here."
5004
5005 Elizabeth shook her head over this letter. It convinced her that
5006 accident only could discover to Mr. Bingley her sister's being in town.
5007
5008 Four weeks passed away, and Jane saw nothing of him. She endeavoured to
5009 persuade herself that she did not regret it; but she could no longer be
5010 blind to Miss Bingley's inattention. After waiting at home every morning
5011 for a fortnight, and inventing every evening a fresh excuse for her, the
5012 visitor did at last appear; but the shortness of her stay, and yet more,
5013 the alteration of her manner would allow Jane to deceive herself no
5014 longer. The letter which she wrote on this occasion to her sister will
5015 prove what she felt.
5016
5017 "My dearest Lizzy will, I am sure, be incapable of triumphing in her
5018 better judgement, at my expense, when I confess myself to have been
5019 entirely deceived in Miss Bingley's regard for me. But, my dear sister,
5020 though the event has proved you right, do not think me obstinate if I
5021 still assert that, considering what her behaviour was, my confidence was
5022 as natural as your suspicion. I do not at all comprehend her reason for
5023 wishing to be intimate with me; but if the same circumstances were to
5024 happen again, I am sure I should be deceived again. Caroline did not
5025 return my visit till yesterday; and not a note, not a line, did I
5026 receive in the meantime. When she did come, it was very evident that
5027 she had no pleasure in it; she made a slight, formal apology, for not
5028 calling before, said not a word of wishing to see me again, and was
5029 in every respect so altered a creature, that when she went away I was
5030 perfectly resolved to continue the acquaintance no longer. I pity,
5031 though I cannot help blaming her. She was very wrong in singling me out
5032 as she did; I can safely say that every advance to intimacy began on
5033 her side. But I pity her, because she must feel that she has been acting
5034 wrong, and because I am very sure that anxiety for her brother is the
5035 cause of it. I need not explain myself farther; and though _we_ know
5036 this anxiety to be quite needless, yet if she feels it, it will easily
5037 account for her behaviour to me; and so deservedly dear as he is to
5038 his sister, whatever anxiety she must feel on his behalf is natural and
5039 amiable. I cannot but wonder, however, at her having any such fears now,
5040 because, if he had at all cared about me, we must have met, long ago.
5041 He knows of my being in town, I am certain, from something she said
5042 herself; and yet it would seem, by her manner of talking, as if she
5043 wanted to persuade herself that he is really partial to Miss Darcy. I
5044 cannot understand it. If I were not afraid of judging harshly, I should
5045 be almost tempted to say that there is a strong appearance of duplicity
5046 in all this. But I will endeavour to banish every painful thought,
5047 and think only of what will make me happy--your affection, and the
5048 invariable kindness of my dear uncle and aunt. Let me hear from you very
5049 soon. Miss Bingley said something of his never returning to Netherfield
5050 again, of giving up the house, but not with any certainty. We had better
5051 not mention it. I am extremely glad that you have such pleasant accounts
5052 from our friends at Hunsford. Pray go to see them, with Sir William and
5053 Maria. I am sure you will be very comfortable there.--Yours, etc."
5054
5055 This letter gave Elizabeth some pain; but her spirits returned as she
5056 considered that Jane would no longer be duped, by the sister at least.
5057 All expectation from the brother was now absolutely over. She would not
5058 even wish for a renewal of his attentions. His character sunk on
5059 every review of it; and as a punishment for him, as well as a possible
5060 advantage to Jane, she seriously hoped he might really soon marry Mr.
5061 Darcy's sister, as by Wickham's account, she would make him abundantly
5062 regret what he had thrown away.
5063
5064 Mrs. Gardiner about this time reminded Elizabeth of her promise
5065 concerning that gentleman, and required information; and Elizabeth
5066 had such to send as might rather give contentment to her aunt than to
5067 herself. His apparent partiality had subsided, his attentions were over,
5068 he was the admirer of some one else. Elizabeth was watchful enough to
5069 see it all, but she could see it and write of it without material pain.
5070 Her heart had been but slightly touched, and her vanity was satisfied
5071 with believing that _she_ would have been his only choice, had fortune
5072 permitted it. The sudden acquisition of ten thousand pounds was the most
5073 remarkable charm of the young lady to whom he was now rendering himself
5074 agreeable; but Elizabeth, less clear-sighted perhaps in this case than
5075 in Charlotte's, did not quarrel with him for his wish of independence.
5076 Nothing, on the contrary, could be more natural; and while able to
5077 suppose that it cost him a few struggles to relinquish her, she was
5078 ready to allow it a wise and desirable measure for both, and could very
5079 sincerely wish him happy.
5080
5081 All this was acknowledged to Mrs. Gardiner; and after relating the
5082 circumstances, she thus went on: "I am now convinced, my dear aunt, that
5083 I have never been much in love; for had I really experienced that pure
5084 and elevating passion, I should at present detest his very name, and
5085 wish him all manner of evil. But my feelings are not only cordial
5086 towards _him_; they are even impartial towards Miss King. I cannot find
5087 out that I hate her at all, or that I am in the least unwilling to
5088 think her a very good sort of girl. There can be no love in all this. My
5089 watchfulness has been effectual; and though I certainly should be a more
5090 interesting object to all my acquaintances were I distractedly in love
5091 with him, I cannot say that I regret my comparative insignificance.
5092 Importance may sometimes be purchased too dearly. Kitty and Lydia take
5093 his defection much more to heart than I do. They are young in the
5094 ways of the world, and not yet open to the mortifying conviction that
5095 handsome young men must have something to live on as well as the plain."
5096
5097
5098
5099 Chapter 27
5100
5101
5102 With no greater events than these in the Longbourn family, and otherwise
5103 diversified by little beyond the walks to Meryton, sometimes dirty and
5104 sometimes cold, did January and February pass away. March was to take
5105 Elizabeth to Hunsford. She had not at first thought very seriously of
5106 going thither; but Charlotte, she soon found, was depending on the plan
5107 and she gradually learned to consider it herself with greater pleasure
5108 as well as greater certainty. Absence had increased her desire of seeing
5109 Charlotte again, and weakened her disgust of Mr. Collins. There
5110 was novelty in the scheme, and as, with such a mother and such
5111 uncompanionable sisters, home could not be faultless, a little change
5112 was not unwelcome for its own sake. The journey would moreover give her
5113 a peep at Jane; and, in short, as the time drew near, she would have
5114 been very sorry for any delay. Everything, however, went on smoothly,
5115 and was finally settled according to Charlotte's first sketch. She was
5116 to accompany Sir William and his second daughter. The improvement
5117 of spending a night in London was added in time, and the plan became
5118 perfect as plan could be.
5119
5120 The only pain was in leaving her father, who would certainly miss her,
5121 and who, when it came to the point, so little liked her going, that he
5122 told her to write to him, and almost promised to answer her letter.
5123
5124 The farewell between herself and Mr. Wickham was perfectly friendly; on
5125 his side even more. His present pursuit could not make him forget that
5126 Elizabeth had been the first to excite and to deserve his attention, the
5127 first to listen and to pity, the first to be admired; and in his manner
5128 of bidding her adieu, wishing her every enjoyment, reminding her of
5129 what she was to expect in Lady Catherine de Bourgh, and trusting their
5130 opinion of her--their opinion of everybody--would always coincide, there
5131 was a solicitude, an interest which she felt must ever attach her to
5132 him with a most sincere regard; and she parted from him convinced that,
5133 whether married or single, he must always be her model of the amiable
5134 and pleasing.
5135
5136 Her fellow-travellers the next day were not of a kind to make her
5137 think him less agreeable. Sir William Lucas, and his daughter Maria, a
5138 good-humoured girl, but as empty-headed as himself, had nothing to say
5139 that could be worth hearing, and were listened to with about as much
5140 delight as the rattle of the chaise. Elizabeth loved absurdities, but
5141 she had known Sir William's too long. He could tell her nothing new of
5142 the wonders of his presentation and knighthood; and his civilities were
5143 worn out, like his information.
5144
5145 It was a journey of only twenty-four miles, and they began it so early
5146 as to be in Gracechurch Street by noon. As they drove to Mr. Gardiner's
5147 door, Jane was at a drawing-room window watching their arrival; when
5148 they entered the passage she was there to welcome them, and Elizabeth,
5149 looking earnestly in her face, was pleased to see it healthful and
5150 lovely as ever. On the stairs were a troop of little boys and girls,
5151 whose eagerness for their cousin's appearance would not allow them to
5152 wait in the drawing-room, and whose shyness, as they had not seen
5153 her for a twelvemonth, prevented their coming lower. All was joy and
5154 kindness. The day passed most pleasantly away; the morning in bustle and
5155 shopping, and the evening at one of the theatres.
5156
5157 Elizabeth then contrived to sit by her aunt. Their first object was her
5158 sister; and she was more grieved than astonished to hear, in reply to
5159 her minute inquiries, that though Jane always struggled to support her
5160 spirits, there were periods of dejection. It was reasonable, however,
5161 to hope that they would not continue long. Mrs. Gardiner gave her the
5162 particulars also of Miss Bingley's visit in Gracechurch Street, and
5163 repeated conversations occurring at different times between Jane and
5164 herself, which proved that the former had, from her heart, given up the
5165 acquaintance.
5166
5167 Mrs. Gardiner then rallied her niece on Wickham's desertion, and
5168 complimented her on bearing it so well.
5169
5170 "But my dear Elizabeth," she added, "what sort of girl is Miss King? I
5171 should be sorry to think our friend mercenary."
5172
5173 "Pray, my dear aunt, what is the difference in matrimonial affairs,
5174 between the mercenary and the prudent motive? Where does discretion end,
5175 and avarice begin? Last Christmas you were afraid of his marrying me,
5176 because it would be imprudent; and now, because he is trying to get
5177 a girl with only ten thousand pounds, you want to find out that he is
5178 mercenary."
5179
5180 "If you will only tell me what sort of girl Miss King is, I shall know
5181 what to think."
5182
5183 "She is a very good kind of girl, I believe. I know no harm of her."
5184
5185 "But he paid her not the smallest attention till her grandfather's death
5186 made her mistress of this fortune."
5187
5188 "No--why should he? If it were not allowable for him to gain _my_
5189 affections because I had no money, what occasion could there be for
5190 making love to a girl whom he did not care about, and who was equally
5191 poor?"
5192
5193 "But there seems an indelicacy in directing his attentions towards her
5194 so soon after this event."
5195
5196 "A man in distressed circumstances has not time for all those elegant
5197 decorums which other people may observe. If _she_ does not object to it,
5198 why should _we_?"
5199
5200 "_Her_ not objecting does not justify _him_. It only shows her being
5201 deficient in something herself--sense or feeling."
5202
5203 "Well," cried Elizabeth, "have it as you choose. _He_ shall be
5204 mercenary, and _she_ shall be foolish."
5205
5206 "No, Lizzy, that is what I do _not_ choose. I should be sorry, you know,
5207 to think ill of a young man who has lived so long in Derbyshire."
5208
5209 "Oh! if that is all, I have a very poor opinion of young men who live in
5210 Derbyshire; and their intimate friends who live in Hertfordshire are not
5211 much better. I am sick of them all. Thank Heaven! I am going to-morrow
5212 where I shall find a man who has not one agreeable quality, who has
5213 neither manner nor sense to recommend him. Stupid men are the only ones
5214 worth knowing, after all."
5215
5216 "Take care, Lizzy; that speech savours strongly of disappointment."
5217
5218 Before they were separated by the conclusion of the play, she had the
5219 unexpected happiness of an invitation to accompany her uncle and aunt in
5220 a tour of pleasure which they proposed taking in the summer.
5221
5222 "We have not determined how far it shall carry us," said Mrs. Gardiner,
5223 "but, perhaps, to the Lakes."
5224
5225 No scheme could have been more agreeable to Elizabeth, and her
5226 acceptance of the invitation was most ready and grateful. "Oh, my dear,
5227 dear aunt," she rapturously cried, "what delight! what felicity! You
5228 give me fresh life and vigour. Adieu to disappointment and spleen. What
5229 are young men to rocks and mountains? Oh! what hours of transport
5230 we shall spend! And when we _do_ return, it shall not be like other
5231 travellers, without being able to give one accurate idea of anything. We
5232 _will_ know where we have gone--we _will_ recollect what we have seen.
5233 Lakes, mountains, and rivers shall not be jumbled together in our
5234 imaginations; nor when we attempt to describe any particular scene,
5235 will we begin quarreling about its relative situation. Let _our_
5236 first effusions be less insupportable than those of the generality of
5237 travellers."
5238
5239
5240
5241 Chapter 28
5242
5243
5244 Every object in the next day's journey was new and interesting to
5245 Elizabeth; and her spirits were in a state of enjoyment; for she had
5246 seen her sister looking so well as to banish all fear for her health,
5247 and the prospect of her northern tour was a constant source of delight.
5248
5249 When they left the high road for the lane to Hunsford, every eye was in
5250 search of the Parsonage, and every turning expected to bring it in view.
5251 The palings of Rosings Park was their boundary on one side. Elizabeth
5252 smiled at the recollection of all that she had heard of its inhabitants.
5253
5254 At length the Parsonage was discernible. The garden sloping to the
5255 road, the house standing in it, the green pales, and the laurel hedge,
5256 everything declared they were arriving. Mr. Collins and Charlotte
5257 appeared at the door, and the carriage stopped at the small gate which
5258 led by a short gravel walk to the house, amidst the nods and smiles of
5259 the whole party. In a moment they were all out of the chaise, rejoicing
5260 at the sight of each other. Mrs. Collins welcomed her friend with the
5261 liveliest pleasure, and Elizabeth was more and more satisfied with
5262 coming when she found herself so affectionately received. She saw
5263 instantly that her cousin's manners were not altered by his marriage;
5264 his formal civility was just what it had been, and he detained her some
5265 minutes at the gate to hear and satisfy his inquiries after all her
5266 family. They were then, with no other delay than his pointing out the
5267 neatness of the entrance, taken into the house; and as soon as they
5268 were in the parlour, he welcomed them a second time, with ostentatious
5269 formality to his humble abode, and punctually repeated all his wife's
5270 offers of refreshment.
5271
5272 Elizabeth was prepared to see him in his glory; and she could not help
5273 in fancying that in displaying the good proportion of the room, its
5274 aspect and its furniture, he addressed himself particularly to her,
5275 as if wishing to make her feel what she had lost in refusing him. But
5276 though everything seemed neat and comfortable, she was not able to
5277 gratify him by any sigh of repentance, and rather looked with wonder at
5278 her friend that she could have so cheerful an air with such a companion.
5279 When Mr. Collins said anything of which his wife might reasonably be
5280 ashamed, which certainly was not unseldom, she involuntarily turned her
5281 eye on Charlotte. Once or twice she could discern a faint blush; but
5282 in general Charlotte wisely did not hear. After sitting long enough to
5283 admire every article of furniture in the room, from the sideboard to
5284 the fender, to give an account of their journey, and of all that had
5285 happened in London, Mr. Collins invited them to take a stroll in the
5286 garden, which was large and well laid out, and to the cultivation of
5287 which he attended himself. To work in this garden was one of his most
5288 respectable pleasures; and Elizabeth admired the command of countenance
5289 with which Charlotte talked of the healthfulness of the exercise, and
5290 owned she encouraged it as much as possible. Here, leading the way
5291 through every walk and cross walk, and scarcely allowing them an
5292 interval to utter the praises he asked for, every view was pointed out
5293 with a minuteness which left beauty entirely behind. He could number the
5294 fields in every direction, and could tell how many trees there were in
5295 the most distant clump. But of all the views which his garden, or which
5296 the country or kingdom could boast, none were to be compared with the
5297 prospect of Rosings, afforded by an opening in the trees that bordered
5298 the park nearly opposite the front of his house. It was a handsome
5299 modern building, well situated on rising ground.
5300
5301 From his garden, Mr. Collins would have led them round his two meadows;
5302 but the ladies, not having shoes to encounter the remains of a white
5303 frost, turned back; and while Sir William accompanied him, Charlotte
5304 took her sister and friend over the house, extremely well pleased,
5305 probably, to have the opportunity of showing it without her husband's
5306 help. It was rather small, but well built and convenient; and everything
5307 was fitted up and arranged with a neatness and consistency of which
5308 Elizabeth gave Charlotte all the credit. When Mr. Collins could be
5309 forgotten, there was really an air of great comfort throughout, and by
5310 Charlotte's evident enjoyment of it, Elizabeth supposed he must be often
5311 forgotten.
5312
5313 She had already learnt that Lady Catherine was still in the country. It
5314 was spoken of again while they were at dinner, when Mr. Collins joining
5315 in, observed:
5316
5317 "Yes, Miss Elizabeth, you will have the honour of seeing Lady Catherine
5318 de Bourgh on the ensuing Sunday at church, and I need not say you will
5319 be delighted with her. She is all affability and condescension, and I
5320 doubt not but you will be honoured with some portion of her notice
5321 when service is over. I have scarcely any hesitation in saying she
5322 will include you and my sister Maria in every invitation with which she
5323 honours us during your stay here. Her behaviour to my dear Charlotte is
5324 charming. We dine at Rosings twice every week, and are never allowed
5325 to walk home. Her ladyship's carriage is regularly ordered for us. I
5326 _should_ say, one of her ladyship's carriages, for she has several."
5327
5328 "Lady Catherine is a very respectable, sensible woman indeed," added
5329 Charlotte, "and a most attentive neighbour."
5330
5331 "Very true, my dear, that is exactly what I say. She is the sort of
5332 woman whom one cannot regard with too much deference."
5333
5334 The evening was spent chiefly in talking over Hertfordshire news,
5335 and telling again what had already been written; and when it closed,
5336 Elizabeth, in the solitude of her chamber, had to meditate upon
5337 Charlotte's degree of contentment, to understand her address in guiding,
5338 and composure in bearing with, her husband, and to acknowledge that it
5339 was all done very well. She had also to anticipate how her visit
5340 would pass, the quiet tenor of their usual employments, the vexatious
5341 interruptions of Mr. Collins, and the gaieties of their intercourse with
5342 Rosings. A lively imagination soon settled it all.
5343
5344 About the middle of the next day, as she was in her room getting ready
5345 for a walk, a sudden noise below seemed to speak the whole house in
5346 confusion; and, after listening a moment, she heard somebody running
5347 up stairs in a violent hurry, and calling loudly after her. She opened
5348 the door and met Maria in the landing place, who, breathless with
5349 agitation, cried out--
5350
5351 "Oh, my dear Eliza! pray make haste and come into the dining-room, for
5352 there is such a sight to be seen! I will not tell you what it is. Make
5353 haste, and come down this moment."
5354
5355 Elizabeth asked questions in vain; Maria would tell her nothing more,
5356 and down they ran into the dining-room, which fronted the lane, in
5357 quest of this wonder; It was two ladies stopping in a low phaeton at the
5358 garden gate.
5359
5360 "And is this all?" cried Elizabeth. "I expected at least that the pigs
5361 were got into the garden, and here is nothing but Lady Catherine and her
5362 daughter."
5363
5364 "La! my dear," said Maria, quite shocked at the mistake, "it is not
5365 Lady Catherine. The old lady is Mrs. Jenkinson, who lives with them;
5366 the other is Miss de Bourgh. Only look at her. She is quite a little
5367 creature. Who would have thought that she could be so thin and small?"
5368
5369 "She is abominably rude to keep Charlotte out of doors in all this wind.
5370 Why does she not come in?"
5371
5372 "Oh, Charlotte says she hardly ever does. It is the greatest of favours
5373 when Miss de Bourgh comes in."
5374
5375 "I like her appearance," said Elizabeth, struck with other ideas. "She
5376 looks sickly and cross. Yes, she will do for him very well. She will
5377 make him a very proper wife."
5378
5379 Mr. Collins and Charlotte were both standing at the gate in conversation
5380 with the ladies; and Sir William, to Elizabeth's high diversion, was
5381 stationed in the doorway, in earnest contemplation of the greatness
5382 before him, and constantly bowing whenever Miss de Bourgh looked that
5383 way.
5384
5385 At length there was nothing more to be said; the ladies drove on, and
5386 the others returned into the house. Mr. Collins no sooner saw the two
5387 girls than he began to congratulate them on their good fortune, which
5388 Charlotte explained by letting them know that the whole party was asked
5389 to dine at Rosings the next day.
5390
5391
5392
5393 Chapter 29
5394
5395
5396 Mr. Collins's triumph, in consequence of this invitation, was complete.
5397 The power of displaying the grandeur of his patroness to his wondering
5398 visitors, and of letting them see her civility towards himself and his
5399 wife, was exactly what he had wished for; and that an opportunity
5400 of doing it should be given so soon, was such an instance of Lady
5401 Catherine's condescension, as he knew not how to admire enough.
5402
5403 "I confess," said he, "that I should not have been at all surprised by
5404 her ladyship's asking us on Sunday to drink tea and spend the evening at
5405 Rosings. I rather expected, from my knowledge of her affability, that it
5406 would happen. But who could have foreseen such an attention as this? Who
5407 could have imagined that we should receive an invitation to dine there
5408 (an invitation, moreover, including the whole party) so immediately
5409 after your arrival!"
5410
5411 "I am the less surprised at what has happened," replied Sir William,
5412 "from that knowledge of what the manners of the great really are, which
5413 my situation in life has allowed me to acquire. About the court, such
5414 instances of elegant breeding are not uncommon."
5415
5416 Scarcely anything was talked of the whole day or next morning but their
5417 visit to Rosings. Mr. Collins was carefully instructing them in what
5418 they were to expect, that the sight of such rooms, so many servants, and
5419 so splendid a dinner, might not wholly overpower them.
5420
5421 When the ladies were separating for the toilette, he said to Elizabeth--
5422
5423 "Do not make yourself uneasy, my dear cousin, about your apparel. Lady
5424 Catherine is far from requiring that elegance of dress in us which
5425 becomes herself and her daughter. I would advise you merely to put on
5426 whatever of your clothes is superior to the rest--there is no occasion
5427 for anything more. Lady Catherine will not think the worse of you
5428 for being simply dressed. She likes to have the distinction of rank
5429 preserved."
5430
5431 While they were dressing, he came two or three times to their different
5432 doors, to recommend their being quick, as Lady Catherine very much
5433 objected to be kept waiting for her dinner. Such formidable accounts of
5434 her ladyship, and her manner of living, quite frightened Maria Lucas
5435 who had been little used to company, and she looked forward to her
5436 introduction at Rosings with as much apprehension as her father had done
5437 to his presentation at St. James's.
5438
5439 As the weather was fine, they had a pleasant walk of about half a
5440 mile across the park. Every park has its beauty and its prospects; and
5441 Elizabeth saw much to be pleased with, though she could not be in such
5442 raptures as Mr. Collins expected the scene to inspire, and was but
5443 slightly affected by his enumeration of the windows in front of the
5444 house, and his relation of what the glazing altogether had originally
5445 cost Sir Lewis de Bourgh.
5446
5447 When they ascended the steps to the hall, Maria's alarm was every
5448 moment increasing, and even Sir William did not look perfectly calm.
5449 Elizabeth's courage did not fail her. She had heard nothing of Lady
5450 Catherine that spoke her awful from any extraordinary talents or
5451 miraculous virtue, and the mere stateliness of money or rank she thought
5452 she could witness without trepidation.
5453
5454 From the entrance-hall, of which Mr. Collins pointed out, with a
5455 rapturous air, the fine proportion and the finished ornaments, they
5456 followed the servants through an ante-chamber, to the room where Lady
5457 Catherine, her daughter, and Mrs. Jenkinson were sitting. Her ladyship,
5458 with great condescension, arose to receive them; and as Mrs. Collins had
5459 settled it with her husband that the office of introduction should
5460 be hers, it was performed in a proper manner, without any of those
5461 apologies and thanks which he would have thought necessary.
5462
5463 In spite of having been at St. James's, Sir William was so completely
5464 awed by the grandeur surrounding him, that he had but just courage
5465 enough to make a very low bow, and take his seat without saying a word;
5466 and his daughter, frightened almost out of her senses, sat on the edge
5467 of her chair, not knowing which way to look. Elizabeth found herself
5468 quite equal to the scene, and could observe the three ladies before her
5469 composedly. Lady Catherine was a tall, large woman, with strongly-marked
5470 features, which might once have been handsome. Her air was not
5471 conciliating, nor was her manner of receiving them such as to make her
5472 visitors forget their inferior rank. She was not rendered formidable by
5473 silence; but whatever she said was spoken in so authoritative a tone,
5474 as marked her self-importance, and brought Mr. Wickham immediately to
5475 Elizabeth's mind; and from the observation of the day altogether, she
5476 believed Lady Catherine to be exactly what he represented.
5477
5478 When, after examining the mother, in whose countenance and deportment
5479 she soon found some resemblance of Mr. Darcy, she turned her eyes on the
5480 daughter, she could almost have joined in Maria's astonishment at her
5481 being so thin and so small. There was neither in figure nor face any
5482 likeness between the ladies. Miss de Bourgh was pale and sickly; her
5483 features, though not plain, were insignificant; and she spoke very
5484 little, except in a low voice, to Mrs. Jenkinson, in whose appearance
5485 there was nothing remarkable, and who was entirely engaged in listening
5486 to what she said, and placing a screen in the proper direction before
5487 her eyes.
5488
5489 After sitting a few minutes, they were all sent to one of the windows to
5490 admire the view, Mr. Collins attending them to point out its beauties,
5491 and Lady Catherine kindly informing them that it was much better worth
5492 looking at in the summer.
5493
5494 The dinner was exceedingly handsome, and there were all the servants and
5495 all the articles of plate which Mr. Collins had promised; and, as he had
5496 likewise foretold, he took his seat at the bottom of the table, by her
5497 ladyship's desire, and looked as if he felt that life could furnish
5498 nothing greater. He carved, and ate, and praised with delighted
5499 alacrity; and every dish was commended, first by him and then by Sir
5500 William, who was now enough recovered to echo whatever his son-in-law
5501 said, in a manner which Elizabeth wondered Lady Catherine could bear.
5502 But Lady Catherine seemed gratified by their excessive admiration, and
5503 gave most gracious smiles, especially when any dish on the table proved
5504 a novelty to them. The party did not supply much conversation. Elizabeth
5505 was ready to speak whenever there was an opening, but she was seated
5506 between Charlotte and Miss de Bourgh--the former of whom was engaged in
5507 listening to Lady Catherine, and the latter said not a word to her all
5508 dinner-time. Mrs. Jenkinson was chiefly employed in watching how little
5509 Miss de Bourgh ate, pressing her to try some other dish, and fearing
5510 she was indisposed. Maria thought speaking out of the question, and the
5511 gentlemen did nothing but eat and admire.
5512
5513 When the ladies returned to the drawing-room, there was little to
5514 be done but to hear Lady Catherine talk, which she did without any
5515 intermission till coffee came in, delivering her opinion on every
5516 subject in so decisive a manner, as proved that she was not used to
5517 have her judgement controverted. She inquired into Charlotte's domestic
5518 concerns familiarly and minutely, gave her a great deal of advice as
5519 to the management of them all; told her how everything ought to be
5520 regulated in so small a family as hers, and instructed her as to the
5521 care of her cows and her poultry. Elizabeth found that nothing was
5522 beneath this great lady's attention, which could furnish her with an
5523 occasion of dictating to others. In the intervals of her discourse
5524 with Mrs. Collins, she addressed a variety of questions to Maria and
5525 Elizabeth, but especially to the latter, of whose connections she knew
5526 the least, and who she observed to Mrs. Collins was a very genteel,
5527 pretty kind of girl. She asked her, at different times, how many sisters
5528 she had, whether they were older or younger than herself, whether any of
5529 them were likely to be married, whether they were handsome, where they
5530 had been educated, what carriage her father kept, and what had been
5531 her mother's maiden name? Elizabeth felt all the impertinence of
5532 her questions but answered them very composedly. Lady Catherine then
5533 observed,
5534
5535 "Your father's estate is entailed on Mr. Collins, I think. For your
5536 sake," turning to Charlotte, "I am glad of it; but otherwise I see no
5537 occasion for entailing estates from the female line. It was not thought
5538 necessary in Sir Lewis de Bourgh's family. Do you play and sing, Miss
5539 Bennet?"
5540
5541 "A little."
5542
5543 "Oh! then--some time or other we shall be happy to hear you. Our
5544 instrument is a capital one, probably superior to----You shall try it
5545 some day. Do your sisters play and sing?"
5546
5547 "One of them does."
5548
5549 "Why did not you all learn? You ought all to have learned. The Miss
5550 Webbs all play, and their father has not so good an income as yours. Do
5551 you draw?"
5552
5553 "No, not at all."
5554
5555 "What, none of you?"
5556
5557 "Not one."
5558
5559 "That is very strange. But I suppose you had no opportunity. Your mother
5560 should have taken you to town every spring for the benefit of masters."
5561
5562 "My mother would have had no objection, but my father hates London."
5563
5564 "Has your governess left you?"
5565
5566 "We never had any governess."
5567
5568 "No governess! How was that possible? Five daughters brought up at home
5569 without a governess! I never heard of such a thing. Your mother must
5570 have been quite a slave to your education."
5571
5572 Elizabeth could hardly help smiling as she assured her that had not been
5573 the case.
5574
5575 "Then, who taught you? who attended to you? Without a governess, you
5576 must have been neglected."
5577
5578 "Compared with some families, I believe we were; but such of us as
5579 wished to learn never wanted the means. We were always encouraged to
5580 read, and had all the masters that were necessary. Those who chose to be
5581 idle, certainly might."
5582
5583 "Aye, no doubt; but that is what a governess will prevent, and if I had
5584 known your mother, I should have advised her most strenuously to engage
5585 one. I always say that nothing is to be done in education without steady
5586 and regular instruction, and nobody but a governess can give it. It is
5587 wonderful how many families I have been the means of supplying in that
5588 way. I am always glad to get a young person well placed out. Four nieces
5589 of Mrs. Jenkinson are most delightfully situated through my means; and
5590 it was but the other day that I recommended another young person,
5591 who was merely accidentally mentioned to me, and the family are quite
5592 delighted with her. Mrs. Collins, did I tell you of Lady Metcalf's
5593 calling yesterday to thank me? She finds Miss Pope a treasure. 'Lady
5594 Catherine,' said she, 'you have given me a treasure.' Are any of your
5595 younger sisters out, Miss Bennet?"
5596
5597 "Yes, ma'am, all."
5598
5599 "All! What, all five out at once? Very odd! And you only the second. The
5600 younger ones out before the elder ones are married! Your younger sisters
5601 must be very young?"
5602
5603 "Yes, my youngest is not sixteen. Perhaps _she_ is full young to be
5604 much in company. But really, ma'am, I think it would be very hard upon
5605 younger sisters, that they should not have their share of society and
5606 amusement, because the elder may not have the means or inclination to
5607 marry early. The last-born has as good a right to the pleasures of youth
5608 as the first. And to be kept back on _such_ a motive! I think it would
5609 not be very likely to promote sisterly affection or delicacy of mind."
5610
5611 "Upon my word," said her ladyship, "you give your opinion very decidedly
5612 for so young a person. Pray, what is your age?"
5613
5614 "With three younger sisters grown up," replied Elizabeth, smiling, "your
5615 ladyship can hardly expect me to own it."
5616
5617 Lady Catherine seemed quite astonished at not receiving a direct answer;
5618 and Elizabeth suspected herself to be the first creature who had ever
5619 dared to trifle with so much dignified impertinence.
5620
5621 "You cannot be more than twenty, I am sure, therefore you need not
5622 conceal your age."
5623
5624 "I am not one-and-twenty."
5625
5626 When the gentlemen had joined them, and tea was over, the card-tables
5627 were placed. Lady Catherine, Sir William, and Mr. and Mrs. Collins sat
5628 down to quadrille; and as Miss de Bourgh chose to play at cassino, the
5629 two girls had the honour of assisting Mrs. Jenkinson to make up her
5630 party. Their table was superlatively stupid. Scarcely a syllable was
5631 uttered that did not relate to the game, except when Mrs. Jenkinson
5632 expressed her fears of Miss de Bourgh's being too hot or too cold, or
5633 having too much or too little light. A great deal more passed at the
5634 other table. Lady Catherine was generally speaking--stating the mistakes
5635 of the three others, or relating some anecdote of herself. Mr. Collins
5636 was employed in agreeing to everything her ladyship said, thanking her
5637 for every fish he won, and apologising if he thought he won too many.
5638 Sir William did not say much. He was storing his memory with anecdotes
5639 and noble names.
5640
5641 When Lady Catherine and her daughter had played as long as they chose,
5642 the tables were broken up, the carriage was offered to Mrs. Collins,
5643 gratefully accepted and immediately ordered. The party then gathered
5644 round the fire to hear Lady Catherine determine what weather they were
5645 to have on the morrow. From these instructions they were summoned by
5646 the arrival of the coach; and with many speeches of thankfulness on Mr.
5647 Collins's side and as many bows on Sir William's they departed. As soon
5648 as they had driven from the door, Elizabeth was called on by her cousin
5649 to give her opinion of all that she had seen at Rosings, which, for
5650 Charlotte's sake, she made more favourable than it really was. But her
5651 commendation, though costing her some trouble, could by no means satisfy
5652 Mr. Collins, and he was very soon obliged to take her ladyship's praise
5653 into his own hands.
5654
5655
5656
5657 Chapter 30
5658
5659
5660 Sir William stayed only a week at Hunsford, but his visit was long
5661 enough to convince him of his daughter's being most comfortably settled,
5662 and of her possessing such a husband and such a neighbour as were not
5663 often met with. While Sir William was with them, Mr. Collins devoted his
5664 morning to driving him out in his gig, and showing him the country; but
5665 when he went away, the whole family returned to their usual employments,
5666 and Elizabeth was thankful to find that they did not see more of her
5667 cousin by the alteration, for the chief of the time between breakfast
5668 and dinner was now passed by him either at work in the garden or in
5669 reading and writing, and looking out of the window in his own book-room,
5670 which fronted the road. The room in which the ladies sat was backwards.
5671 Elizabeth had at first rather wondered that Charlotte should not prefer
5672 the dining-parlour for common use; it was a better sized room, and had a
5673 more pleasant aspect; but she soon saw that her friend had an excellent
5674 reason for what she did, for Mr. Collins would undoubtedly have been
5675 much less in his own apartment, had they sat in one equally lively; and
5676 she gave Charlotte credit for the arrangement.
5677
5678 From the drawing-room they could distinguish nothing in the lane, and
5679 were indebted to Mr. Collins for the knowledge of what carriages went
5680 along, and how often especially Miss de Bourgh drove by in her phaeton,
5681 which he never failed coming to inform them of, though it happened
5682 almost every day. She not unfrequently stopped at the Parsonage, and
5683 had a few minutes' conversation with Charlotte, but was scarcely ever
5684 prevailed upon to get out.
5685
5686 Very few days passed in which Mr. Collins did not walk to Rosings, and
5687 not many in which his wife did not think it necessary to go likewise;
5688 and till Elizabeth recollected that there might be other family livings
5689 to be disposed of, she could not understand the sacrifice of so many
5690 hours. Now and then they were honoured with a call from her ladyship,
5691 and nothing escaped her observation that was passing in the room during
5692 these visits. She examined into their employments, looked at their work,
5693 and advised them to do it differently; found fault with the arrangement
5694 of the furniture; or detected the housemaid in negligence; and if she
5695 accepted any refreshment, seemed to do it only for the sake of finding
5696 out that Mrs. Collins's joints of meat were too large for her family.
5697
5698 Elizabeth soon perceived, that though this great lady was not in
5699 commission of the peace of the county, she was a most active magistrate
5700 in her own parish, the minutest concerns of which were carried to her
5701 by Mr. Collins; and whenever any of the cottagers were disposed to
5702 be quarrelsome, discontented, or too poor, she sallied forth into the
5703 village to settle their differences, silence their complaints, and scold
5704 them into harmony and plenty.
5705
5706 The entertainment of dining at Rosings was repeated about twice a week;
5707 and, allowing for the loss of Sir William, and there being only one
5708 card-table in the evening, every such entertainment was the counterpart
5709 of the first. Their other engagements were few, as the style of living
5710 in the neighbourhood in general was beyond Mr. Collins's reach. This,
5711 however, was no evil to Elizabeth, and upon the whole she spent her time
5712 comfortably enough; there were half-hours of pleasant conversation with
5713 Charlotte, and the weather was so fine for the time of year that she had
5714 often great enjoyment out of doors. Her favourite walk, and where she
5715 frequently went while the others were calling on Lady Catherine, was
5716 along the open grove which edged that side of the park, where there was
5717 a nice sheltered path, which no one seemed to value but herself, and
5718 where she felt beyond the reach of Lady Catherine's curiosity.
5719
5720 In this quiet way, the first fortnight of her visit soon passed away.
5721 Easter was approaching, and the week preceding it was to bring an
5722 addition to the family at Rosings, which in so small a circle must be
5723 important. Elizabeth had heard soon after her arrival that Mr. Darcy was
5724 expected there in the course of a few weeks, and though there were not
5725 many of her acquaintances whom she did not prefer, his coming would
5726 furnish one comparatively new to look at in their Rosings parties, and
5727 she might be amused in seeing how hopeless Miss Bingley's designs on him
5728 were, by his behaviour to his cousin, for whom he was evidently
5729 destined by Lady Catherine, who talked of his coming with the greatest
5730 satisfaction, spoke of him in terms of the highest admiration, and
5731 seemed almost angry to find that he had already been frequently seen by
5732 Miss Lucas and herself.
5733
5734 His arrival was soon known at the Parsonage; for Mr. Collins was walking
5735 the whole morning within view of the lodges opening into Hunsford Lane,
5736 in order to have the earliest assurance of it, and after making his
5737 bow as the carriage turned into the Park, hurried home with the great
5738 intelligence. On the following morning he hastened to Rosings to pay his
5739 respects. There were two nephews of Lady Catherine to require them, for
5740 Mr. Darcy had brought with him a Colonel Fitzwilliam, the younger son of
5741 his uncle Lord ----, and, to the great surprise of all the party, when
5742 Mr. Collins returned, the gentlemen accompanied him. Charlotte had seen
5743 them from her husband's room, crossing the road, and immediately running
5744 into the other, told the girls what an honour they might expect, adding:
5745
5746 "I may thank you, Eliza, for this piece of civility. Mr. Darcy would
5747 never have come so soon to wait upon me."
5748
5749 Elizabeth had scarcely time to disclaim all right to the compliment,
5750 before their approach was announced by the door-bell, and shortly
5751 afterwards the three gentlemen entered the room. Colonel Fitzwilliam,
5752 who led the way, was about thirty, not handsome, but in person and
5753 address most truly the gentleman. Mr. Darcy looked just as he had been
5754 used to look in Hertfordshire--paid his compliments, with his usual
5755 reserve, to Mrs. Collins, and whatever might be his feelings toward her
5756 friend, met her with every appearance of composure. Elizabeth merely
5757 curtseyed to him without saying a word.
5758
5759 Colonel Fitzwilliam entered into conversation directly with the
5760 readiness and ease of a well-bred man, and talked very pleasantly; but
5761 his cousin, after having addressed a slight observation on the house and
5762 garden to Mrs. Collins, sat for some time without speaking to anybody.
5763 At length, however, his civility was so far awakened as to inquire of
5764 Elizabeth after the health of her family. She answered him in the usual
5765 way, and after a moment's pause, added:
5766
5767 "My eldest sister has been in town these three months. Have you never
5768 happened to see her there?"
5769
5770 She was perfectly sensible that he never had; but she wished to see
5771 whether he would betray any consciousness of what had passed between
5772 the Bingleys and Jane, and she thought he looked a little confused as he
5773 answered that he had never been so fortunate as to meet Miss Bennet. The
5774 subject was pursued no farther, and the gentlemen soon afterwards went
5775 away.
5776
5777
5778
5779 Chapter 31
5780
5781
5782 Colonel Fitzwilliam's manners were very much admired at the Parsonage,
5783 and the ladies all felt that he must add considerably to the pleasures
5784 of their engagements at Rosings. It was some days, however, before they
5785 received any invitation thither--for while there were visitors in the
5786 house, they could not be necessary; and it was not till Easter-day,
5787 almost a week after the gentlemen's arrival, that they were honoured by
5788 such an attention, and then they were merely asked on leaving church to
5789 come there in the evening. For the last week they had seen very little
5790 of Lady Catherine or her daughter. Colonel Fitzwilliam had called at the
5791 Parsonage more than once during the time, but Mr. Darcy they had seen
5792 only at church.
5793
5794 The invitation was accepted of course, and at a proper hour they joined
5795 the party in Lady Catherine's drawing-room. Her ladyship received
5796 them civilly, but it was plain that their company was by no means so
5797 acceptable as when she could get nobody else; and she was, in fact,
5798 almost engrossed by her nephews, speaking to them, especially to Darcy,
5799 much more than to any other person in the room.
5800
5801 Colonel Fitzwilliam seemed really glad to see them; anything was a
5802 welcome relief to him at Rosings; and Mrs. Collins's pretty friend had
5803 moreover caught his fancy very much. He now seated himself by her, and
5804 talked so agreeably of Kent and Hertfordshire, of travelling and staying
5805 at home, of new books and music, that Elizabeth had never been half so
5806 well entertained in that room before; and they conversed with so much
5807 spirit and flow, as to draw the attention of Lady Catherine herself,
5808 as well as of Mr. Darcy. _His_ eyes had been soon and repeatedly turned
5809 towards them with a look of curiosity; and that her ladyship, after a
5810 while, shared the feeling, was more openly acknowledged, for she did not
5811 scruple to call out:
5812
5813 "What is that you are saying, Fitzwilliam? What is it you are talking
5814 of? What are you telling Miss Bennet? Let me hear what it is."
5815
5816 "We are speaking of music, madam," said he, when no longer able to avoid
5817 a reply.
5818
5819 "Of music! Then pray speak aloud. It is of all subjects my delight. I
5820 must have my share in the conversation if you are speaking of music.
5821 There are few people in England, I suppose, who have more true enjoyment
5822 of music than myself, or a better natural taste. If I had ever learnt,
5823 I should have been a great proficient. And so would Anne, if her health
5824 had allowed her to apply. I am confident that she would have performed
5825 delightfully. How does Georgiana get on, Darcy?"
5826
5827 Mr. Darcy spoke with affectionate praise of his sister's proficiency.
5828
5829 "I am very glad to hear such a good account of her," said Lady
5830 Catherine; "and pray tell her from me, that she cannot expect to excel
5831 if she does not practice a good deal."
5832
5833 "I assure you, madam," he replied, "that she does not need such advice.
5834 She practises very constantly."
5835
5836 "So much the better. It cannot be done too much; and when I next write
5837 to her, I shall charge her not to neglect it on any account. I often
5838 tell young ladies that no excellence in music is to be acquired without
5839 constant practice. I have told Miss Bennet several times, that she
5840 will never play really well unless she practises more; and though Mrs.
5841 Collins has no instrument, she is very welcome, as I have often told
5842 her, to come to Rosings every day, and play on the pianoforte in Mrs.
5843 Jenkinson's room. She would be in nobody's way, you know, in that part
5844 of the house."
5845
5846 Mr. Darcy looked a little ashamed of his aunt's ill-breeding, and made
5847 no answer.
5848
5849 When coffee was over, Colonel Fitzwilliam reminded Elizabeth of having
5850 promised to play to him; and she sat down directly to the instrument. He
5851 drew a chair near her. Lady Catherine listened to half a song, and then
5852 talked, as before, to her other nephew; till the latter walked away
5853 from her, and making with his usual deliberation towards the pianoforte
5854 stationed himself so as to command a full view of the fair performer's
5855 countenance. Elizabeth saw what he was doing, and at the first
5856 convenient pause, turned to him with an arch smile, and said:
5857
5858 "You mean to frighten me, Mr. Darcy, by coming in all this state to hear
5859 me? I will not be alarmed though your sister _does_ play so well. There
5860 is a stubbornness about me that never can bear to be frightened at the
5861 will of others. My courage always rises at every attempt to intimidate
5862 me."
5863
5864 "I shall not say you are mistaken," he replied, "because you could not
5865 really believe me to entertain any design of alarming you; and I have
5866 had the pleasure of your acquaintance long enough to know that you find
5867 great enjoyment in occasionally professing opinions which in fact are
5868 not your own."
5869
5870 Elizabeth laughed heartily at this picture of herself, and said to
5871 Colonel Fitzwilliam, "Your cousin will give you a very pretty notion of
5872 me, and teach you not to believe a word I say. I am particularly unlucky
5873 in meeting with a person so able to expose my real character, in a part
5874 of the world where I had hoped to pass myself off with some degree of
5875 credit. Indeed, Mr. Darcy, it is very ungenerous in you to mention all
5876 that you knew to my disadvantage in Hertfordshire--and, give me leave to
5877 say, very impolitic too--for it is provoking me to retaliate, and such
5878 things may come out as will shock your relations to hear."
5879
5880 "I am not afraid of you," said he, smilingly.
5881
5882 "Pray let me hear what you have to accuse him of," cried Colonel
5883 Fitzwilliam. "I should like to know how he behaves among strangers."
5884
5885 "You shall hear then--but prepare yourself for something very dreadful.
5886 The first time of my ever seeing him in Hertfordshire, you must know,
5887 was at a ball--and at this ball, what do you think he did? He danced
5888 only four dances, though gentlemen were scarce; and, to my certain
5889 knowledge, more than one young lady was sitting down in want of a
5890 partner. Mr. Darcy, you cannot deny the fact."
5891
5892 "I had not at that time the honour of knowing any lady in the assembly
5893 beyond my own party."
5894
5895 "True; and nobody can ever be introduced in a ball-room. Well, Colonel
5896 Fitzwilliam, what do I play next? My fingers wait your orders."
5897
5898 "Perhaps," said Darcy, "I should have judged better, had I sought an
5899 introduction; but I am ill-qualified to recommend myself to strangers."
5900
5901 "Shall we ask your cousin the reason of this?" said Elizabeth, still
5902 addressing Colonel Fitzwilliam. "Shall we ask him why a man of sense and
5903 education, and who has lived in the world, is ill qualified to recommend
5904 himself to strangers?"
5905
5906 "I can answer your question," said Fitzwilliam, "without applying to
5907 him. It is because he will not give himself the trouble."
5908
5909 "I certainly have not the talent which some people possess," said Darcy,
5910 "of conversing easily with those I have never seen before. I cannot
5911 catch their tone of conversation, or appear interested in their
5912 concerns, as I often see done."
5913
5914 "My fingers," said Elizabeth, "do not move over this instrument in the
5915 masterly manner which I see so many women's do. They have not the same
5916 force or rapidity, and do not produce the same expression. But then I
5917 have always supposed it to be my own fault--because I will not take the
5918 trouble of practising. It is not that I do not believe _my_ fingers as
5919 capable as any other woman's of superior execution."
5920
5921 Darcy smiled and said, "You are perfectly right. You have employed your
5922 time much better. No one admitted to the privilege of hearing you can
5923 think anything wanting. We neither of us perform to strangers."
5924
5925 Here they were interrupted by Lady Catherine, who called out to know
5926 what they were talking of. Elizabeth immediately began playing again.
5927 Lady Catherine approached, and, after listening for a few minutes, said
5928 to Darcy:
5929
5930 "Miss Bennet would not play at all amiss if she practised more, and
5931 could have the advantage of a London master. She has a very good notion
5932 of fingering, though her taste is not equal to Anne's. Anne would have
5933 been a delightful performer, had her health allowed her to learn."
5934
5935 Elizabeth looked at Darcy to see how cordially he assented to his
5936 cousin's praise; but neither at that moment nor at any other could she
5937 discern any symptom of love; and from the whole of his behaviour to Miss
5938 de Bourgh she derived this comfort for Miss Bingley, that he might have
5939 been just as likely to marry _her_, had she been his relation.
5940
5941 Lady Catherine continued her remarks on Elizabeth's performance, mixing
5942 with them many instructions on execution and taste. Elizabeth received
5943 them with all the forbearance of civility, and, at the request of the
5944 gentlemen, remained at the instrument till her ladyship's carriage was
5945 ready to take them all home.
5946
5947
5948
5949 Chapter 32
5950
5951
5952 Elizabeth was sitting by herself the next morning, and writing to Jane
5953 while Mrs. Collins and Maria were gone on business into the village,
5954 when she was startled by a ring at the door, the certain signal of a
5955 visitor. As she had heard no carriage, she thought it not unlikely to
5956 be Lady Catherine, and under that apprehension was putting away her
5957 half-finished letter that she might escape all impertinent questions,
5958 when the door opened, and, to her very great surprise, Mr. Darcy, and
5959 Mr. Darcy only, entered the room.
5960
5961 He seemed astonished too on finding her alone, and apologised for his
5962 intrusion by letting her know that he had understood all the ladies were
5963 to be within.
5964
5965 They then sat down, and when her inquiries after Rosings were made,
5966 seemed in danger of sinking into total silence. It was absolutely
5967 necessary, therefore, to think of something, and in this emergence
5968 recollecting _when_ she had seen him last in Hertfordshire, and
5969 feeling curious to know what he would say on the subject of their hasty
5970 departure, she observed:
5971
5972 "How very suddenly you all quitted Netherfield last November, Mr. Darcy!
5973 It must have been a most agreeable surprise to Mr. Bingley to see you
5974 all after him so soon; for, if I recollect right, he went but the day
5975 before. He and his sisters were well, I hope, when you left London?"
5976
5977 "Perfectly so, I thank you."
5978
5979 She found that she was to receive no other answer, and, after a short
5980 pause added:
5981
5982 "I think I have understood that Mr. Bingley has not much idea of ever
5983 returning to Netherfield again?"
5984
5985 "I have never heard him say so; but it is probable that he may spend
5986 very little of his time there in the future. He has many friends, and
5987 is at a time of life when friends and engagements are continually
5988 increasing."
5989
5990 "If he means to be but little at Netherfield, it would be better for
5991 the neighbourhood that he should give up the place entirely, for then we
5992 might possibly get a settled family there. But, perhaps, Mr. Bingley did
5993 not take the house so much for the convenience of the neighbourhood as
5994 for his own, and we must expect him to keep it or quit it on the same
5995 principle."
5996
5997 "I should not be surprised," said Darcy, "if he were to give it up as
5998 soon as any eligible purchase offers."
5999
6000 Elizabeth made no answer. She was afraid of talking longer of his
6001 friend; and, having nothing else to say, was now determined to leave the
6002 trouble of finding a subject to him.
6003
6004 He took the hint, and soon began with, "This seems a very comfortable
6005 house. Lady Catherine, I believe, did a great deal to it when Mr.
6006 Collins first came to Hunsford."
6007
6008 "I believe she did--and I am sure she could not have bestowed her
6009 kindness on a more grateful object."
6010
6011 "Mr. Collins appears to be very fortunate in his choice of a wife."
6012
6013 "Yes, indeed, his friends may well rejoice in his having met with one
6014 of the very few sensible women who would have accepted him, or have made
6015 him happy if they had. My friend has an excellent understanding--though
6016 I am not certain that I consider her marrying Mr. Collins as the
6017 wisest thing she ever did. She seems perfectly happy, however, and in a
6018 prudential light it is certainly a very good match for her."
6019
6020 "It must be very agreeable for her to be settled within so easy a
6021 distance of her own family and friends."
6022
6023 "An easy distance, do you call it? It is nearly fifty miles."
6024
6025 "And what is fifty miles of good road? Little more than half a day's
6026 journey. Yes, I call it a _very_ easy distance."
6027
6028 "I should never have considered the distance as one of the _advantages_
6029 of the match," cried Elizabeth. "I should never have said Mrs. Collins
6030 was settled _near_ her family."
6031
6032 "It is a proof of your own attachment to Hertfordshire. Anything beyond
6033 the very neighbourhood of Longbourn, I suppose, would appear far."
6034
6035 As he spoke there was a sort of smile which Elizabeth fancied she
6036 understood; he must be supposing her to be thinking of Jane and
6037 Netherfield, and she blushed as she answered:
6038
6039 "I do not mean to say that a woman may not be settled too near her
6040 family. The far and the near must be relative, and depend on many
6041 varying circumstances. Where there is fortune to make the expenses of
6042 travelling unimportant, distance becomes no evil. But that is not the
6043 case _here_. Mr. and Mrs. Collins have a comfortable income, but not
6044 such a one as will allow of frequent journeys--and I am persuaded my
6045 friend would not call herself _near_ her family under less than _half_
6046 the present distance."
6047
6048 Mr. Darcy drew his chair a little towards her, and said, "_You_ cannot
6049 have a right to such very strong local attachment. _You_ cannot have
6050 been always at Longbourn."
6051
6052 Elizabeth looked surprised. The gentleman experienced some change of
6053 feeling; he drew back his chair, took a newspaper from the table, and
6054 glancing over it, said, in a colder voice:
6055
6056 "Are you pleased with Kent?"
6057
6058 A short dialogue on the subject of the country ensued, on either side
6059 calm and concise--and soon put an end to by the entrance of Charlotte
6060 and her sister, just returned from her walk. The tete-a-tete surprised
6061 them. Mr. Darcy related the mistake which had occasioned his intruding
6062 on Miss Bennet, and after sitting a few minutes longer without saying
6063 much to anybody, went away.
6064
6065 "What can be the meaning of this?" said Charlotte, as soon as he was
6066 gone. "My dear, Eliza, he must be in love with you, or he would never
6067 have called us in this familiar way."
6068
6069 But when Elizabeth told of his silence, it did not seem very likely,
6070 even to Charlotte's wishes, to be the case; and after various
6071 conjectures, they could at last only suppose his visit to proceed from
6072 the difficulty of finding anything to do, which was the more probable
6073 from the time of year. All field sports were over. Within doors there
6074 was Lady Catherine, books, and a billiard-table, but gentlemen cannot
6075 always be within doors; and in the nearness of the Parsonage, or the
6076 pleasantness of the walk to it, or of the people who lived in it, the
6077 two cousins found a temptation from this period of walking thither
6078 almost every day. They called at various times of the morning, sometimes
6079 separately, sometimes together, and now and then accompanied by their
6080 aunt. It was plain to them all that Colonel Fitzwilliam came because he
6081 had pleasure in their society, a persuasion which of course recommended
6082 him still more; and Elizabeth was reminded by her own satisfaction in
6083 being with him, as well as by his evident admiration of her, of her
6084 former favourite George Wickham; and though, in comparing them, she saw
6085 there was less captivating softness in Colonel Fitzwilliam's manners,
6086 she believed he might have the best informed mind.
6087
6088 But why Mr. Darcy came so often to the Parsonage, it was more difficult
6089 to understand. It could not be for society, as he frequently sat there
6090 ten minutes together without opening his lips; and when he did speak,
6091 it seemed the effect of necessity rather than of choice--a sacrifice
6092 to propriety, not a pleasure to himself. He seldom appeared really
6093 animated. Mrs. Collins knew not what to make of him. Colonel
6094 Fitzwilliam's occasionally laughing at his stupidity, proved that he was
6095 generally different, which her own knowledge of him could not have told
6096 her; and as she would liked to have believed this change the effect
6097 of love, and the object of that love her friend Eliza, she set herself
6098 seriously to work to find it out. She watched him whenever they were at
6099 Rosings, and whenever he came to Hunsford; but without much success. He
6100 certainly looked at her friend a great deal, but the expression of that
6101 look was disputable. It was an earnest, steadfast gaze, but she often
6102 doubted whether there were much admiration in it, and sometimes it
6103 seemed nothing but absence of mind.
6104
6105 She had once or twice suggested to Elizabeth the possibility of his
6106 being partial to her, but Elizabeth always laughed at the idea; and Mrs.
6107 Collins did not think it right to press the subject, from the danger of
6108 raising expectations which might only end in disappointment; for in her
6109 opinion it admitted not of a doubt, that all her friend's dislike would
6110 vanish, if she could suppose him to be in her power.
6111
6112
6113 In her kind schemes for Elizabeth, she sometimes planned her marrying
6114 Colonel Fitzwilliam. He was beyond comparison the most pleasant man; he
6115 certainly admired her, and his situation in life was most eligible; but,
6116 to counterbalance these advantages, Mr. Darcy had considerable patronage
6117 in the church, and his cousin could have none at all.
6118
6119
6120
6121 Chapter 33
6122
6123
6124 More than once did Elizabeth, in her ramble within the park,
6125 unexpectedly meet Mr. Darcy. She felt all the perverseness of the
6126 mischance that should bring him where no one else was brought, and, to
6127 prevent its ever happening again, took care to inform him at first that
6128 it was a favourite haunt of hers. How it could occur a second time,
6129 therefore, was very odd! Yet it did, and even a third. It seemed like
6130 wilful ill-nature, or a voluntary penance, for on these occasions it was
6131 not merely a few formal inquiries and an awkward pause and then away,
6132 but he actually thought it necessary to turn back and walk with her. He
6133 never said a great deal, nor did she give herself the trouble of talking
6134 or of listening much; but it struck her in the course of their third
6135 rencontre that he was asking some odd unconnected questions--about
6136 her pleasure in being at Hunsford, her love of solitary walks, and her
6137 opinion of Mr. and Mrs. Collins's happiness; and that in speaking of
6138 Rosings and her not perfectly understanding the house, he seemed to
6139 expect that whenever she came into Kent again she would be staying
6140 _there_ too. His words seemed to imply it. Could he have Colonel
6141 Fitzwilliam in his thoughts? She supposed, if he meant anything, he must
6142 mean an allusion to what might arise in that quarter. It distressed
6143 her a little, and she was quite glad to find herself at the gate in the
6144 pales opposite the Parsonage.
6145
6146 She was engaged one day as she walked, in perusing Jane's last letter,
6147 and dwelling on some passages which proved that Jane had not written in
6148 spirits, when, instead of being again surprised by Mr. Darcy, she saw
6149 on looking up that Colonel Fitzwilliam was meeting her. Putting away the
6150 letter immediately and forcing a smile, she said:
6151
6152 "I did not know before that you ever walked this way."
6153
6154 "I have been making the tour of the park," he replied, "as I generally
6155 do every year, and intend to close it with a call at the Parsonage. Are
6156 you going much farther?"
6157
6158 "No, I should have turned in a moment."
6159
6160 And accordingly she did turn, and they walked towards the Parsonage
6161 together.
6162
6163 "Do you certainly leave Kent on Saturday?" said she.
6164
6165 "Yes--if Darcy does not put it off again. But I am at his disposal. He
6166 arranges the business just as he pleases."
6167
6168 "And if not able to please himself in the arrangement, he has at least
6169 pleasure in the great power of choice. I do not know anybody who seems
6170 more to enjoy the power of doing what he likes than Mr. Darcy."
6171
6172 "He likes to have his own way very well," replied Colonel Fitzwilliam.
6173 "But so we all do. It is only that he has better means of having it
6174 than many others, because he is rich, and many others are poor. I speak
6175 feelingly. A younger son, you know, must be inured to self-denial and
6176 dependence."
6177
6178 "In my opinion, the younger son of an earl can know very little of
6179 either. Now seriously, what have you ever known of self-denial and
6180 dependence? When have you been prevented by want of money from going
6181 wherever you chose, or procuring anything you had a fancy for?"
6182
6183 "These are home questions--and perhaps I cannot say that I have
6184 experienced many hardships of that nature. But in matters of greater
6185 weight, I may suffer from want of money. Younger sons cannot marry where
6186 they like."
6187
6188 "Unless where they like women of fortune, which I think they very often
6189 do."
6190
6191 "Our habits of expense make us too dependent, and there are not many
6192 in my rank of life who can afford to marry without some attention to
6193 money."
6194
6195 "Is this," thought Elizabeth, "meant for me?" and she coloured at the
6196 idea; but, recovering herself, said in a lively tone, "And pray, what
6197 is the usual price of an earl's younger son? Unless the elder brother is
6198 very sickly, I suppose you would not ask above fifty thousand pounds."
6199
6200 He answered her in the same style, and the subject dropped. To interrupt
6201 a silence which might make him fancy her affected with what had passed,
6202 she soon afterwards said:
6203
6204 "I imagine your cousin brought you down with him chiefly for the sake of
6205 having someone at his disposal. I wonder he does not marry, to secure a
6206 lasting convenience of that kind. But, perhaps, his sister does as well
6207 for the present, and, as she is under his sole care, he may do what he
6208 likes with her."
6209
6210 "No," said Colonel Fitzwilliam, "that is an advantage which he must
6211 divide with me. I am joined with him in the guardianship of Miss Darcy."
6212
6213 "Are you indeed? And pray what sort of guardians do you make? Does your
6214 charge give you much trouble? Young ladies of her age are sometimes a
6215 little difficult to manage, and if she has the true Darcy spirit, she
6216 may like to have her own way."
6217
6218 As she spoke she observed him looking at her earnestly; and the manner
6219 in which he immediately asked her why she supposed Miss Darcy likely to
6220 give them any uneasiness, convinced her that she had somehow or other
6221 got pretty near the truth. She directly replied:
6222
6223 "You need not be frightened. I never heard any harm of her; and I dare
6224 say she is one of the most tractable creatures in the world. She is a
6225 very great favourite with some ladies of my acquaintance, Mrs. Hurst and
6226 Miss Bingley. I think I have heard you say that you know them."
6227
6228 "I know them a little. Their brother is a pleasant gentlemanlike man--he
6229 is a great friend of Darcy's."
6230
6231 "Oh! yes," said Elizabeth drily; "Mr. Darcy is uncommonly kind to Mr.
6232 Bingley, and takes a prodigious deal of care of him."
6233
6234 "Care of him! Yes, I really believe Darcy _does_ take care of him in
6235 those points where he most wants care. From something that he told me in
6236 our journey hither, I have reason to think Bingley very much indebted to
6237 him. But I ought to beg his pardon, for I have no right to suppose that
6238 Bingley was the person meant. It was all conjecture."
6239
6240 "What is it you mean?"
6241
6242 "It is a circumstance which Darcy could not wish to be generally known,
6243 because if it were to get round to the lady's family, it would be an
6244 unpleasant thing."
6245
6246 "You may depend upon my not mentioning it."
6247
6248 "And remember that I have not much reason for supposing it to be
6249 Bingley. What he told me was merely this: that he congratulated himself
6250 on having lately saved a friend from the inconveniences of a most
6251 imprudent marriage, but without mentioning names or any other
6252 particulars, and I only suspected it to be Bingley from believing
6253 him the kind of young man to get into a scrape of that sort, and from
6254 knowing them to have been together the whole of last summer."
6255
6256 "Did Mr. Darcy give you reasons for this interference?"
6257
6258 "I understood that there were some very strong objections against the
6259 lady."
6260
6261 "And what arts did he use to separate them?"
6262
6263 "He did not talk to me of his own arts," said Fitzwilliam, smiling. "He
6264 only told me what I have now told you."
6265
6266 Elizabeth made no answer, and walked on, her heart swelling with
6267 indignation. After watching her a little, Fitzwilliam asked her why she
6268 was so thoughtful.
6269
6270 "I am thinking of what you have been telling me," said she. "Your
6271 cousin's conduct does not suit my feelings. Why was he to be the judge?"
6272
6273 "You are rather disposed to call his interference officious?"
6274
6275 "I do not see what right Mr. Darcy had to decide on the propriety of his
6276 friend's inclination, or why, upon his own judgement alone, he was to
6277 determine and direct in what manner his friend was to be happy.
6278 But," she continued, recollecting herself, "as we know none of the
6279 particulars, it is not fair to condemn him. It is not to be supposed
6280 that there was much affection in the case."
6281
6282 "That is not an unnatural surmise," said Fitzwilliam, "but it is a
6283 lessening of the honour of my cousin's triumph very sadly."
6284
6285 This was spoken jestingly; but it appeared to her so just a picture
6286 of Mr. Darcy, that she would not trust herself with an answer, and
6287 therefore, abruptly changing the conversation talked on indifferent
6288 matters until they reached the Parsonage. There, shut into her own room,
6289 as soon as their visitor left them, she could think without interruption
6290 of all that she had heard. It was not to be supposed that any other
6291 people could be meant than those with whom she was connected. There
6292 could not exist in the world _two_ men over whom Mr. Darcy could have
6293 such boundless influence. That he had been concerned in the measures
6294 taken to separate Bingley and Jane she had never doubted; but she had
6295 always attributed to Miss Bingley the principal design and arrangement
6296 of them. If his own vanity, however, did not mislead him, _he_ was
6297 the cause, his pride and caprice were the cause, of all that Jane had
6298 suffered, and still continued to suffer. He had ruined for a while
6299 every hope of happiness for the most affectionate, generous heart in the
6300 world; and no one could say how lasting an evil he might have inflicted.
6301
6302 "There were some very strong objections against the lady," were Colonel
6303 Fitzwilliam's words; and those strong objections probably were, her
6304 having one uncle who was a country attorney, and another who was in
6305 business in London.
6306
6307 "To Jane herself," she exclaimed, "there could be no possibility of
6308 objection; all loveliness and goodness as she is!--her understanding
6309 excellent, her mind improved, and her manners captivating. Neither
6310 could anything be urged against my father, who, though with some
6311 peculiarities, has abilities Mr. Darcy himself need not disdain, and
6312 respectability which he will probably never reach." When she thought of
6313 her mother, her confidence gave way a little; but she would not allow
6314 that any objections _there_ had material weight with Mr. Darcy, whose
6315 pride, she was convinced, would receive a deeper wound from the want of
6316 importance in his friend's connections, than from their want of sense;
6317 and she was quite decided, at last, that he had been partly governed
6318 by this worst kind of pride, and partly by the wish of retaining Mr.
6319 Bingley for his sister.
6320
6321 The agitation and tears which the subject occasioned, brought on a
6322 headache; and it grew so much worse towards the evening, that, added to
6323 her unwillingness to see Mr. Darcy, it determined her not to attend her
6324 cousins to Rosings, where they were engaged to drink tea. Mrs. Collins,
6325 seeing that she was really unwell, did not press her to go and as much
6326 as possible prevented her husband from pressing her; but Mr. Collins
6327 could not conceal his apprehension of Lady Catherine's being rather
6328 displeased by her staying at home.
6329
6330
6331
6332 Chapter 34
6333
6334
6335 When they were gone, Elizabeth, as if intending to exasperate herself
6336 as much as possible against Mr. Darcy, chose for her employment the
6337 examination of all the letters which Jane had written to her since her
6338 being in Kent. They contained no actual complaint, nor was there any
6339 revival of past occurrences, or any communication of present suffering.
6340 But in all, and in almost every line of each, there was a want of that
6341 cheerfulness which had been used to characterise her style, and which,
6342 proceeding from the serenity of a mind at ease with itself and kindly
6343 disposed towards everyone, had been scarcely ever clouded. Elizabeth
6344 noticed every sentence conveying the idea of uneasiness, with an
6345 attention which it had hardly received on the first perusal. Mr. Darcy's
6346 shameful boast of what misery he had been able to inflict, gave her
6347 a keener sense of her sister's sufferings. It was some consolation
6348 to think that his visit to Rosings was to end on the day after the
6349 next--and, a still greater, that in less than a fortnight she should
6350 herself be with Jane again, and enabled to contribute to the recovery of
6351 her spirits, by all that affection could do.
6352
6353 She could not think of Darcy's leaving Kent without remembering that
6354 his cousin was to go with him; but Colonel Fitzwilliam had made it clear
6355 that he had no intentions at all, and agreeable as he was, she did not
6356 mean to be unhappy about him.
6357
6358 While settling this point, she was suddenly roused by the sound of the
6359 door-bell, and her spirits were a little fluttered by the idea of its
6360 being Colonel Fitzwilliam himself, who had once before called late in
6361 the evening, and might now come to inquire particularly after her.
6362 But this idea was soon banished, and her spirits were very differently
6363 affected, when, to her utter amazement, she saw Mr. Darcy walk into the
6364 room. In an hurried manner he immediately began an inquiry after her
6365 health, imputing his visit to a wish of hearing that she were better.
6366 She answered him with cold civility. He sat down for a few moments, and
6367 then getting up, walked about the room. Elizabeth was surprised, but
6368 said not a word. After a silence of several minutes, he came towards her
6369 in an agitated manner, and thus began:
6370
6371 "In vain I have struggled. It will not do. My feelings will not be
6372 repressed. You must allow me to tell you how ardently I admire and love
6373 you."
6374
6375 Elizabeth's astonishment was beyond expression. She stared, coloured,
6376 doubted, and was silent. This he considered sufficient encouragement;
6377 and the avowal of all that he felt, and had long felt for her,
6378 immediately followed. He spoke well; but there were feelings besides
6379 those of the heart to be detailed; and he was not more eloquent on the
6380 subject of tenderness than of pride. His sense of her inferiority--of
6381 its being a degradation--of the family obstacles which had always
6382 opposed to inclination, were dwelt on with a warmth which seemed due to
6383 the consequence he was wounding, but was very unlikely to recommend his
6384 suit.
6385
6386 In spite of her deeply-rooted dislike, she could not be insensible to
6387 the compliment of such a man's affection, and though her intentions did
6388 not vary for an instant, she was at first sorry for the pain he was to
6389 receive; till, roused to resentment by his subsequent language, she
6390 lost all compassion in anger. She tried, however, to compose herself to
6391 answer him with patience, when he should have done. He concluded with
6392 representing to her the strength of that attachment which, in spite
6393 of all his endeavours, he had found impossible to conquer; and with
6394 expressing his hope that it would now be rewarded by her acceptance of
6395 his hand. As he said this, she could easily see that he had no doubt
6396 of a favourable answer. He _spoke_ of apprehension and anxiety, but
6397 his countenance expressed real security. Such a circumstance could
6398 only exasperate farther, and, when he ceased, the colour rose into her
6399 cheeks, and she said:
6400
6401 "In such cases as this, it is, I believe, the established mode to
6402 express a sense of obligation for the sentiments avowed, however
6403 unequally they may be returned. It is natural that obligation should
6404 be felt, and if I could _feel_ gratitude, I would now thank you. But I
6405 cannot--I have never desired your good opinion, and you have certainly
6406 bestowed it most unwillingly. I am sorry to have occasioned pain to
6407 anyone. It has been most unconsciously done, however, and I hope will be
6408 of short duration. The feelings which, you tell me, have long prevented
6409 the acknowledgment of your regard, can have little difficulty in
6410 overcoming it after this explanation."
6411
6412 Mr. Darcy, who was leaning against the mantelpiece with his eyes fixed
6413 on her face, seemed to catch her words with no less resentment than
6414 surprise. His complexion became pale with anger, and the disturbance
6415 of his mind was visible in every feature. He was struggling for the
6416 appearance of composure, and would not open his lips till he believed
6417 himself to have attained it. The pause was to Elizabeth's feelings
6418 dreadful. At length, with a voice of forced calmness, he said:
6419
6420 "And this is all the reply which I am to have the honour of expecting!
6421 I might, perhaps, wish to be informed why, with so little _endeavour_ at
6422 civility, I am thus rejected. But it is of small importance."
6423
6424 "I might as well inquire," replied she, "why with so evident a desire
6425 of offending and insulting me, you chose to tell me that you liked me
6426 against your will, against your reason, and even against your character?
6427 Was not this some excuse for incivility, if I _was_ uncivil? But I have
6428 other provocations. You know I have. Had not my feelings decided against
6429 you--had they been indifferent, or had they even been favourable, do you
6430 think that any consideration would tempt me to accept the man who has
6431 been the means of ruining, perhaps for ever, the happiness of a most
6432 beloved sister?"
6433
6434 As she pronounced these words, Mr. Darcy changed colour; but the emotion
6435 was short, and he listened without attempting to interrupt her while she
6436 continued:
6437
6438 "I have every reason in the world to think ill of you. No motive can
6439 excuse the unjust and ungenerous part you acted _there_. You dare not,
6440 you cannot deny, that you have been the principal, if not the only means
6441 of dividing them from each other--of exposing one to the censure of the
6442 world for caprice and instability, and the other to its derision for
6443 disappointed hopes, and involving them both in misery of the acutest
6444 kind."
6445
6446 She paused, and saw with no slight indignation that he was listening
6447 with an air which proved him wholly unmoved by any feeling of remorse.
6448 He even looked at her with a smile of affected incredulity.
6449
6450 "Can you deny that you have done it?" she repeated.
6451
6452 With assumed tranquillity he then replied: "I have no wish of denying
6453 that I did everything in my power to separate my friend from your
6454 sister, or that I rejoice in my success. Towards _him_ I have been
6455 kinder than towards myself."
6456
6457 Elizabeth disdained the appearance of noticing this civil reflection,
6458 but its meaning did not escape, nor was it likely to conciliate her.
6459
6460 "But it is not merely this affair," she continued, "on which my dislike
6461 is founded. Long before it had taken place my opinion of you was
6462 decided. Your character was unfolded in the recital which I received
6463 many months ago from Mr. Wickham. On this subject, what can you have to
6464 say? In what imaginary act of friendship can you here defend yourself?
6465 or under what misrepresentation can you here impose upon others?"
6466
6467 "You take an eager interest in that gentleman's concerns," said Darcy,
6468 in a less tranquil tone, and with a heightened colour.
6469
6470 "Who that knows what his misfortunes have been, can help feeling an
6471 interest in him?"
6472
6473 "His misfortunes!" repeated Darcy contemptuously; "yes, his misfortunes
6474 have been great indeed."
6475
6476 "And of your infliction," cried Elizabeth with energy. "You have reduced
6477 him to his present state of poverty--comparative poverty. You have
6478 withheld the advantages which you must know to have been designed for
6479 him. You have deprived the best years of his life of that independence
6480 which was no less his due than his desert. You have done all this!
6481 and yet you can treat the mention of his misfortune with contempt and
6482 ridicule."
6483
6484 "And this," cried Darcy, as he walked with quick steps across the room,
6485 "is your opinion of me! This is the estimation in which you hold me!
6486 I thank you for explaining it so fully. My faults, according to this
6487 calculation, are heavy indeed! But perhaps," added he, stopping in
6488 his walk, and turning towards her, "these offenses might have been
6489 overlooked, had not your pride been hurt by my honest confession of the
6490 scruples that had long prevented my forming any serious design. These
6491 bitter accusations might have been suppressed, had I, with greater
6492 policy, concealed my struggles, and flattered you into the belief of
6493 my being impelled by unqualified, unalloyed inclination; by reason, by
6494 reflection, by everything. But disguise of every sort is my abhorrence.
6495 Nor am I ashamed of the feelings I related. They were natural and
6496 just. Could you expect me to rejoice in the inferiority of your
6497 connections?--to congratulate myself on the hope of relations, whose
6498 condition in life is so decidedly beneath my own?"
6499
6500 Elizabeth felt herself growing more angry every moment; yet she tried to
6501 the utmost to speak with composure when she said:
6502
6503 "You are mistaken, Mr. Darcy, if you suppose that the mode of your
6504 declaration affected me in any other way, than as it spared me the concern
6505 which I might have felt in refusing you, had you behaved in a more
6506 gentlemanlike manner."
6507
6508 She saw him start at this, but he said nothing, and she continued:
6509
6510 "You could not have made the offer of your hand in any possible way that
6511 would have tempted me to accept it."
6512
6513 Again his astonishment was obvious; and he looked at her with an
6514 expression of mingled incredulity and mortification. She went on:
6515
6516 "From the very beginning--from the first moment, I may almost say--of
6517 my acquaintance with you, your manners, impressing me with the fullest
6518 belief of your arrogance, your conceit, and your selfish disdain of
6519 the feelings of others, were such as to form the groundwork of
6520 disapprobation on which succeeding events have built so immovable a
6521 dislike; and I had not known you a month before I felt that you were the
6522 last man in the world whom I could ever be prevailed on to marry."
6523
6524 "You have said quite enough, madam. I perfectly comprehend your
6525 feelings, and have now only to be ashamed of what my own have been.
6526 Forgive me for having taken up so much of your time, and accept my best
6527 wishes for your health and happiness."
6528
6529 And with these words he hastily left the room, and Elizabeth heard him
6530 the next moment open the front door and quit the house.
6531
6532 The tumult of her mind, was now painfully great. She knew not how
6533 to support herself, and from actual weakness sat down and cried for
6534 half-an-hour. Her astonishment, as she reflected on what had passed,
6535 was increased by every review of it. That she should receive an offer of
6536 marriage from Mr. Darcy! That he should have been in love with her for
6537 so many months! So much in love as to wish to marry her in spite of
6538 all the objections which had made him prevent his friend's marrying
6539 her sister, and which must appear at least with equal force in his
6540 own case--was almost incredible! It was gratifying to have inspired
6541 unconsciously so strong an affection. But his pride, his abominable
6542 pride--his shameless avowal of what he had done with respect to
6543 Jane--his unpardonable assurance in acknowledging, though he could
6544 not justify it, and the unfeeling manner in which he had mentioned Mr.
6545 Wickham, his cruelty towards whom he had not attempted to deny, soon
6546 overcame the pity which the consideration of his attachment had for
6547 a moment excited. She continued in very agitated reflections till the
6548 sound of Lady Catherine's carriage made her feel how unequal she was to
6549 encounter Charlotte's observation, and hurried her away to her room.
6550
6551
6552
6553 Chapter 35
6554
6555
6556 Elizabeth awoke the next morning to the same thoughts and meditations
6557 which had at length closed her eyes. She could not yet recover from the
6558 surprise of what had happened; it was impossible to think of anything
6559 else; and, totally indisposed for employment, she resolved, soon after
6560 breakfast, to indulge herself in air and exercise. She was proceeding
6561 directly to her favourite walk, when the recollection of Mr. Darcy's
6562 sometimes coming there stopped her, and instead of entering the park,
6563 she turned up the lane, which led farther from the turnpike-road. The
6564 park paling was still the boundary on one side, and she soon passed one
6565 of the gates into the ground.
6566
6567 After walking two or three times along that part of the lane, she was
6568 tempted, by the pleasantness of the morning, to stop at the gates and
6569 look into the park. The five weeks which she had now passed in Kent had
6570 made a great difference in the country, and every day was adding to the
6571 verdure of the early trees. She was on the point of continuing her walk,
6572 when she caught a glimpse of a gentleman within the sort of grove which
6573 edged the park; he was moving that way; and, fearful of its being Mr.
6574 Darcy, she was directly retreating. But the person who advanced was now
6575 near enough to see her, and stepping forward with eagerness, pronounced
6576 her name. She had turned away; but on hearing herself called, though
6577 in a voice which proved it to be Mr. Darcy, she moved again towards the
6578 gate. He had by that time reached it also, and, holding out a letter,
6579 which she instinctively took, said, with a look of haughty composure,
6580 "I have been walking in the grove some time in the hope of meeting you.
6581 Will you do me the honour of reading that letter?" And then, with a
6582 slight bow, turned again into the plantation, and was soon out of sight.
6583
6584 With no expectation of pleasure, but with the strongest curiosity,
6585 Elizabeth opened the letter, and, to her still increasing wonder,
6586 perceived an envelope containing two sheets of letter-paper, written
6587 quite through, in a very close hand. The envelope itself was likewise
6588 full. Pursuing her way along the lane, she then began it. It was dated
6589 from Rosings, at eight o'clock in the morning, and was as follows:--
6590
6591 "Be not alarmed, madam, on receiving this letter, by the apprehension
6592 of its containing any repetition of those sentiments or renewal of those
6593 offers which were last night so disgusting to you. I write without any
6594 intention of paining you, or humbling myself, by dwelling on wishes
6595 which, for the happiness of both, cannot be too soon forgotten; and the
6596 effort which the formation and the perusal of this letter must occasion,
6597 should have been spared, had not my character required it to be written
6598 and read. You must, therefore, pardon the freedom with which I demand
6599 your attention; your feelings, I know, will bestow it unwillingly, but I
6600 demand it of your justice.
6601
6602 "Two offenses of a very different nature, and by no means of equal
6603 magnitude, you last night laid to my charge. The first mentioned was,
6604 that, regardless of the sentiments of either, I had detached Mr. Bingley
6605 from your sister, and the other, that I had, in defiance of various
6606 claims, in defiance of honour and humanity, ruined the immediate
6607 prosperity and blasted the prospects of Mr. Wickham. Wilfully and
6608 wantonly to have thrown off the companion of my youth, the acknowledged
6609 favourite of my father, a young man who had scarcely any other
6610 dependence than on our patronage, and who had been brought up to expect
6611 its exertion, would be a depravity, to which the separation of two young
6612 persons, whose affection could be the growth of only a few weeks, could
6613 bear no comparison. But from the severity of that blame which was last
6614 night so liberally bestowed, respecting each circumstance, I shall hope
6615 to be in the future secured, when the following account of my actions
6616 and their motives has been read. If, in the explanation of them, which
6617 is due to myself, I am under the necessity of relating feelings which
6618 may be offensive to yours, I can only say that I am sorry. The necessity
6619 must be obeyed, and further apology would be absurd.
6620
6621 "I had not been long in Hertfordshire, before I saw, in common with
6622 others, that Bingley preferred your elder sister to any other young
6623 woman in the country. But it was not till the evening of the dance
6624 at Netherfield that I had any apprehension of his feeling a serious
6625 attachment. I had often seen him in love before. At that ball, while I
6626 had the honour of dancing with you, I was first made acquainted, by Sir
6627 William Lucas's accidental information, that Bingley's attentions to
6628 your sister had given rise to a general expectation of their marriage.
6629 He spoke of it as a certain event, of which the time alone could
6630 be undecided. From that moment I observed my friend's behaviour
6631 attentively; and I could then perceive that his partiality for Miss
6632 Bennet was beyond what I had ever witnessed in him. Your sister I also
6633 watched. Her look and manners were open, cheerful, and engaging as ever,
6634 but without any symptom of peculiar regard, and I remained convinced
6635 from the evening's scrutiny, that though she received his attentions
6636 with pleasure, she did not invite them by any participation of
6637 sentiment. If _you_ have not been mistaken here, _I_ must have been
6638 in error. Your superior knowledge of your sister must make the latter
6639 probable. If it be so, if I have been misled by such error to inflict
6640 pain on her, your resentment has not been unreasonable. But I shall not
6641 scruple to assert, that the serenity of your sister's countenance and
6642 air was such as might have given the most acute observer a conviction
6643 that, however amiable her temper, her heart was not likely to be
6644 easily touched. That I was desirous of believing her indifferent is
6645 certain--but I will venture to say that my investigation and decisions
6646 are not usually influenced by my hopes or fears. I did not believe
6647 her to be indifferent because I wished it; I believed it on impartial
6648 conviction, as truly as I wished it in reason. My objections to the
6649 marriage were not merely those which I last night acknowledged to have
6650 the utmost force of passion to put aside, in my own case; the want of
6651 connection could not be so great an evil to my friend as to me. But
6652 there were other causes of repugnance; causes which, though still
6653 existing, and existing to an equal degree in both instances, I had
6654 myself endeavoured to forget, because they were not immediately before
6655 me. These causes must be stated, though briefly. The situation of your
6656 mother's family, though objectionable, was nothing in comparison to that
6657 total want of propriety so frequently, so almost uniformly betrayed by
6658 herself, by your three younger sisters, and occasionally even by your
6659 father. Pardon me. It pains me to offend you. But amidst your concern
6660 for the defects of your nearest relations, and your displeasure at this
6661 representation of them, let it give you consolation to consider that, to
6662 have conducted yourselves so as to avoid any share of the like censure,
6663 is praise no less generally bestowed on you and your elder sister, than
6664 it is honourable to the sense and disposition of both. I will only say
6665 farther that from what passed that evening, my opinion of all parties
6666 was confirmed, and every inducement heightened which could have led
6667 me before, to preserve my friend from what I esteemed a most unhappy
6668 connection. He left Netherfield for London, on the day following, as
6669 you, I am certain, remember, with the design of soon returning.
6670
6671 "The part which I acted is now to be explained. His sisters' uneasiness
6672 had been equally excited with my own; our coincidence of feeling was
6673 soon discovered, and, alike sensible that no time was to be lost in
6674 detaching their brother, we shortly resolved on joining him directly in
6675 London. We accordingly went--and there I readily engaged in the office
6676 of pointing out to my friend the certain evils of such a choice. I
6677 described, and enforced them earnestly. But, however this remonstrance
6678 might have staggered or delayed his determination, I do not suppose
6679 that it would ultimately have prevented the marriage, had it not been
6680 seconded by the assurance that I hesitated not in giving, of your
6681 sister's indifference. He had before believed her to return his
6682 affection with sincere, if not with equal regard. But Bingley has great
6683 natural modesty, with a stronger dependence on my judgement than on his
6684 own. To convince him, therefore, that he had deceived himself, was
6685 no very difficult point. To persuade him against returning into
6686 Hertfordshire, when that conviction had been given, was scarcely the
6687 work of a moment. I cannot blame myself for having done thus much. There
6688 is but one part of my conduct in the whole affair on which I do not
6689 reflect with satisfaction; it is that I condescended to adopt the
6690 measures of art so far as to conceal from him your sister's being in
6691 town. I knew it myself, as it was known to Miss Bingley; but her
6692 brother is even yet ignorant of it. That they might have met without
6693 ill consequence is perhaps probable; but his regard did not appear to me
6694 enough extinguished for him to see her without some danger. Perhaps this
6695 concealment, this disguise was beneath me; it is done, however, and it
6696 was done for the best. On this subject I have nothing more to say, no
6697 other apology to offer. If I have wounded your sister's feelings, it
6698 was unknowingly done and though the motives which governed me may to
6699 you very naturally appear insufficient, I have not yet learnt to condemn
6700 them.
6701
6702 "With respect to that other, more weighty accusation, of having injured
6703 Mr. Wickham, I can only refute it by laying before you the whole of his
6704 connection with my family. Of what he has _particularly_ accused me I
6705 am ignorant; but of the truth of what I shall relate, I can summon more
6706 than one witness of undoubted veracity.
6707
6708 "Mr. Wickham is the son of a very respectable man, who had for many
6709 years the management of all the Pemberley estates, and whose good
6710 conduct in the discharge of his trust naturally inclined my father to
6711 be of service to him; and on George Wickham, who was his godson, his
6712 kindness was therefore liberally bestowed. My father supported him at
6713 school, and afterwards at Cambridge--most important assistance, as his
6714 own father, always poor from the extravagance of his wife, would have
6715 been unable to give him a gentleman's education. My father was not only
6716 fond of this young man's society, whose manners were always engaging; he
6717 had also the highest opinion of him, and hoping the church would be
6718 his profession, intended to provide for him in it. As for myself, it is
6719 many, many years since I first began to think of him in a very different
6720 manner. The vicious propensities--the want of principle, which he was
6721 careful to guard from the knowledge of his best friend, could not escape
6722 the observation of a young man of nearly the same age with himself,
6723 and who had opportunities of seeing him in unguarded moments, which Mr.
6724 Darcy could not have. Here again I shall give you pain--to what degree
6725 you only can tell. But whatever may be the sentiments which Mr. Wickham
6726 has created, a suspicion of their nature shall not prevent me from
6727 unfolding his real character--it adds even another motive.
6728
6729 "My excellent father died about five years ago; and his attachment to
6730 Mr. Wickham was to the last so steady, that in his will he particularly
6731 recommended it to me, to promote his advancement in the best manner
6732 that his profession might allow--and if he took orders, desired that a
6733 valuable family living might be his as soon as it became vacant. There
6734 was also a legacy of one thousand pounds. His own father did not long
6735 survive mine, and within half a year from these events, Mr. Wickham
6736 wrote to inform me that, having finally resolved against taking orders,
6737 he hoped I should not think it unreasonable for him to expect some more
6738 immediate pecuniary advantage, in lieu of the preferment, by which he
6739 could not be benefited. He had some intention, he added, of studying
6740 law, and I must be aware that the interest of one thousand pounds would
6741 be a very insufficient support therein. I rather wished, than believed
6742 him to be sincere; but, at any rate, was perfectly ready to accede to
6743 his proposal. I knew that Mr. Wickham ought not to be a clergyman; the
6744 business was therefore soon settled--he resigned all claim to assistance
6745 in the church, were it possible that he could ever be in a situation to
6746 receive it, and accepted in return three thousand pounds. All connection
6747 between us seemed now dissolved. I thought too ill of him to invite him
6748 to Pemberley, or admit his society in town. In town I believe he chiefly
6749 lived, but his studying the law was a mere pretence, and being now free
6750 from all restraint, his life was a life of idleness and dissipation.
6751 For about three years I heard little of him; but on the decease of the
6752 incumbent of the living which had been designed for him, he applied to
6753 me again by letter for the presentation. His circumstances, he assured
6754 me, and I had no difficulty in believing it, were exceedingly bad. He
6755 had found the law a most unprofitable study, and was now absolutely
6756 resolved on being ordained, if I would present him to the living in
6757 question--of which he trusted there could be little doubt, as he was
6758 well assured that I had no other person to provide for, and I could not
6759 have forgotten my revered father's intentions. You will hardly blame
6760 me for refusing to comply with this entreaty, or for resisting every
6761 repetition to it. His resentment was in proportion to the distress of
6762 his circumstances--and he was doubtless as violent in his abuse of me
6763 to others as in his reproaches to myself. After this period every
6764 appearance of acquaintance was dropped. How he lived I know not. But
6765 last summer he was again most painfully obtruded on my notice.
6766
6767 "I must now mention a circumstance which I would wish to forget myself,
6768 and which no obligation less than the present should induce me to unfold
6769 to any human being. Having said thus much, I feel no doubt of your
6770 secrecy. My sister, who is more than ten years my junior, was left to
6771 the guardianship of my mother's nephew, Colonel Fitzwilliam, and myself.
6772 About a year ago, she was taken from school, and an establishment formed
6773 for her in London; and last summer she went with the lady who presided
6774 over it, to Ramsgate; and thither also went Mr. Wickham, undoubtedly by
6775 design; for there proved to have been a prior acquaintance between him
6776 and Mrs. Younge, in whose character we were most unhappily deceived; and
6777 by her connivance and aid, he so far recommended himself to Georgiana,
6778 whose affectionate heart retained a strong impression of his kindness to
6779 her as a child, that she was persuaded to believe herself in love, and
6780 to consent to an elopement. She was then but fifteen, which must be her
6781 excuse; and after stating her imprudence, I am happy to add, that I owed
6782 the knowledge of it to herself. I joined them unexpectedly a day or two
6783 before the intended elopement, and then Georgiana, unable to support the
6784 idea of grieving and offending a brother whom she almost looked up to as
6785 a father, acknowledged the whole to me. You may imagine what I felt and
6786 how I acted. Regard for my sister's credit and feelings prevented
6787 any public exposure; but I wrote to Mr. Wickham, who left the place
6788 immediately, and Mrs. Younge was of course removed from her charge. Mr.
6789 Wickham's chief object was unquestionably my sister's fortune, which
6790 is thirty thousand pounds; but I cannot help supposing that the hope of
6791 revenging himself on me was a strong inducement. His revenge would have
6792 been complete indeed.
6793
6794 "This, madam, is a faithful narrative of every event in which we have
6795 been concerned together; and if you do not absolutely reject it as
6796 false, you will, I hope, acquit me henceforth of cruelty towards Mr.
6797 Wickham. I know not in what manner, under what form of falsehood he
6798 had imposed on you; but his success is not perhaps to be wondered
6799 at. Ignorant as you previously were of everything concerning either,
6800 detection could not be in your power, and suspicion certainly not in
6801 your inclination.
6802
6803 "You may possibly wonder why all this was not told you last night; but
6804 I was not then master enough of myself to know what could or ought to
6805 be revealed. For the truth of everything here related, I can appeal more
6806 particularly to the testimony of Colonel Fitzwilliam, who, from our
6807 near relationship and constant intimacy, and, still more, as one of
6808 the executors of my father's will, has been unavoidably acquainted
6809 with every particular of these transactions. If your abhorrence of _me_
6810 should make _my_ assertions valueless, you cannot be prevented by
6811 the same cause from confiding in my cousin; and that there may be
6812 the possibility of consulting him, I shall endeavour to find some
6813 opportunity of putting this letter in your hands in the course of the
6814 morning. I will only add, God bless you.
6815
6816 "FITZWILLIAM DARCY"
6817
6818
6819
6820 Chapter 36
6821
6822
6823 If Elizabeth, when Mr. Darcy gave her the letter, did not expect it to
6824 contain a renewal of his offers, she had formed no expectation at all of
6825 its contents. But such as they were, it may well be supposed how eagerly
6826 she went through them, and what a contrariety of emotion they excited.
6827 Her feelings as she read were scarcely to be defined. With amazement did
6828 she first understand that he believed any apology to be in his power;
6829 and steadfastly was she persuaded, that he could have no explanation
6830 to give, which a just sense of shame would not conceal. With a strong
6831 prejudice against everything he might say, she began his account of what
6832 had happened at Netherfield. She read with an eagerness which hardly
6833 left her power of comprehension, and from impatience of knowing what the
6834 next sentence might bring, was incapable of attending to the sense of
6835 the one before her eyes. His belief of her sister's insensibility she
6836 instantly resolved to be false; and his account of the real, the worst
6837 objections to the match, made her too angry to have any wish of doing
6838 him justice. He expressed no regret for what he had done which satisfied
6839 her; his style was not penitent, but haughty. It was all pride and
6840 insolence.
6841
6842 But when this subject was succeeded by his account of Mr. Wickham--when
6843 she read with somewhat clearer attention a relation of events which,
6844 if true, must overthrow every cherished opinion of his worth, and which
6845 bore so alarming an affinity to his own history of himself--her
6846 feelings were yet more acutely painful and more difficult of definition.
6847 Astonishment, apprehension, and even horror, oppressed her. She wished
6848 to discredit it entirely, repeatedly exclaiming, "This must be false!
6849 This cannot be! This must be the grossest falsehood!"--and when she had
6850 gone through the whole letter, though scarcely knowing anything of the
6851 last page or two, put it hastily away, protesting that she would not
6852 regard it, that she would never look in it again.
6853
6854 In this perturbed state of mind, with thoughts that could rest on
6855 nothing, she walked on; but it would not do; in half a minute the letter
6856 was unfolded again, and collecting herself as well as she could, she
6857 again began the mortifying perusal of all that related to Wickham, and
6858 commanded herself so far as to examine the meaning of every sentence.
6859 The account of his connection with the Pemberley family was exactly what
6860 he had related himself; and the kindness of the late Mr. Darcy, though
6861 she had not before known its extent, agreed equally well with his own
6862 words. So far each recital confirmed the other; but when she came to the
6863 will, the difference was great. What Wickham had said of the living
6864 was fresh in her memory, and as she recalled his very words, it was
6865 impossible not to feel that there was gross duplicity on one side or the
6866 other; and, for a few moments, she flattered herself that her wishes did
6867 not err. But when she read and re-read with the closest attention, the
6868 particulars immediately following of Wickham's resigning all pretensions
6869 to the living, of his receiving in lieu so considerable a sum as three
6870 thousand pounds, again was she forced to hesitate. She put down
6871 the letter, weighed every circumstance with what she meant to be
6872 impartiality--deliberated on the probability of each statement--but with
6873 little success. On both sides it was only assertion. Again she read
6874 on; but every line proved more clearly that the affair, which she had
6875 believed it impossible that any contrivance could so represent as to
6876 render Mr. Darcy's conduct in it less than infamous, was capable of a
6877 turn which must make him entirely blameless throughout the whole.
6878
6879 The extravagance and general profligacy which he scrupled not to lay at
6880 Mr. Wickham's charge, exceedingly shocked her; the more so, as she could
6881 bring no proof of its injustice. She had never heard of him before his
6882 entrance into the ----shire Militia, in which he had engaged at the
6883 persuasion of the young man who, on meeting him accidentally in town,
6884 had there renewed a slight acquaintance. Of his former way of life
6885 nothing had been known in Hertfordshire but what he told himself. As
6886 to his real character, had information been in her power, she had
6887 never felt a wish of inquiring. His countenance, voice, and manner had
6888 established him at once in the possession of every virtue. She tried
6889 to recollect some instance of goodness, some distinguished trait of
6890 integrity or benevolence, that might rescue him from the attacks of
6891 Mr. Darcy; or at least, by the predominance of virtue, atone for those
6892 casual errors under which she would endeavour to class what Mr. Darcy
6893 had described as the idleness and vice of many years' continuance. But
6894 no such recollection befriended her. She could see him instantly before
6895 her, in every charm of air and address; but she could remember no more
6896 substantial good than the general approbation of the neighbourhood, and
6897 the regard which his social powers had gained him in the mess. After
6898 pausing on this point a considerable while, she once more continued to
6899 read. But, alas! the story which followed, of his designs on Miss
6900 Darcy, received some confirmation from what had passed between Colonel
6901 Fitzwilliam and herself only the morning before; and at last she was
6902 referred for the truth of every particular to Colonel Fitzwilliam
6903 himself--from whom she had previously received the information of his
6904 near concern in all his cousin's affairs, and whose character she had no
6905 reason to question. At one time she had almost resolved on applying to
6906 him, but the idea was checked by the awkwardness of the application, and
6907 at length wholly banished by the conviction that Mr. Darcy would never
6908 have hazarded such a proposal, if he had not been well assured of his
6909 cousin's corroboration.
6910
6911 She perfectly remembered everything that had passed in conversation
6912 between Wickham and herself, in their first evening at Mr. Phillips's.
6913 Many of his expressions were still fresh in her memory. She was _now_
6914 struck with the impropriety of such communications to a stranger, and
6915 wondered it had escaped her before. She saw the indelicacy of putting
6916 himself forward as he had done, and the inconsistency of his professions
6917 with his conduct. She remembered that he had boasted of having no fear
6918 of seeing Mr. Darcy--that Mr. Darcy might leave the country, but that
6919 _he_ should stand his ground; yet he had avoided the Netherfield ball
6920 the very next week. She remembered also that, till the Netherfield
6921 family had quitted the country, he had told his story to no one but
6922 herself; but that after their removal it had been everywhere discussed;
6923 that he had then no reserves, no scruples in sinking Mr. Darcy's
6924 character, though he had assured her that respect for the father would
6925 always prevent his exposing the son.
6926
6927 How differently did everything now appear in which he was concerned!
6928 His attentions to Miss King were now the consequence of views solely and
6929 hatefully mercenary; and the mediocrity of her fortune proved no longer
6930 the moderation of his wishes, but his eagerness to grasp at anything.
6931 His behaviour to herself could now have had no tolerable motive; he had
6932 either been deceived with regard to her fortune, or had been gratifying
6933 his vanity by encouraging the preference which she believed she had most
6934 incautiously shown. Every lingering struggle in his favour grew fainter
6935 and fainter; and in farther justification of Mr. Darcy, she could not
6936 but allow that Mr. Bingley, when questioned by Jane, had long ago
6937 asserted his blamelessness in the affair; that proud and repulsive as
6938 were his manners, she had never, in the whole course of their
6939 acquaintance--an acquaintance which had latterly brought them much
6940 together, and given her a sort of intimacy with his ways--seen anything
6941 that betrayed him to be unprincipled or unjust--anything that spoke him
6942 of irreligious or immoral habits; that among his own connections he was
6943 esteemed and valued--that even Wickham had allowed him merit as a
6944 brother, and that she had often heard him speak so affectionately of his
6945 sister as to prove him capable of _some_ amiable feeling; that had his
6946 actions been what Mr. Wickham represented them, so gross a violation of
6947 everything right could hardly have been concealed from the world; and
6948 that friendship between a person capable of it, and such an amiable man
6949 as Mr. Bingley, was incomprehensible.
6950
6951 She grew absolutely ashamed of herself. Of neither Darcy nor Wickham
6952 could she think without feeling she had been blind, partial, prejudiced,
6953 absurd.
6954
6955 "How despicably I have acted!" she cried; "I, who have prided myself
6956 on my discernment! I, who have valued myself on my abilities! who have
6957 often disdained the generous candour of my sister, and gratified
6958 my vanity in useless or blameable mistrust! How humiliating is this
6959 discovery! Yet, how just a humiliation! Had I been in love, I could
6960 not have been more wretchedly blind! But vanity, not love, has been my
6961 folly. Pleased with the preference of one, and offended by the neglect
6962 of the other, on the very beginning of our acquaintance, I have courted
6963 prepossession and ignorance, and driven reason away, where either were
6964 concerned. Till this moment I never knew myself."
6965
6966 From herself to Jane--from Jane to Bingley, her thoughts were in a line
6967 which soon brought to her recollection that Mr. Darcy's explanation
6968 _there_ had appeared very insufficient, and she read it again. Widely
6969 different was the effect of a second perusal. How could she deny that
6970 credit to his assertions in one instance, which she had been obliged to
6971 give in the other? He declared himself to be totally unsuspicious of her
6972 sister's attachment; and she could not help remembering what Charlotte's
6973 opinion had always been. Neither could she deny the justice of his
6974 description of Jane. She felt that Jane's feelings, though fervent, were
6975 little displayed, and that there was a constant complacency in her air
6976 and manner not often united with great sensibility.
6977
6978 When she came to that part of the letter in which her family were
6979 mentioned in terms of such mortifying, yet merited reproach, her sense
6980 of shame was severe. The justice of the charge struck her too forcibly
6981 for denial, and the circumstances to which he particularly alluded as
6982 having passed at the Netherfield ball, and as confirming all his first
6983 disapprobation, could not have made a stronger impression on his mind
6984 than on hers.
6985
6986 The compliment to herself and her sister was not unfelt. It soothed,
6987 but it could not console her for the contempt which had thus been
6988 self-attracted by the rest of her family; and as she considered
6989 that Jane's disappointment had in fact been the work of her nearest
6990 relations, and reflected how materially the credit of both must be hurt
6991 by such impropriety of conduct, she felt depressed beyond anything she
6992 had ever known before.
6993
6994 After wandering along the lane for two hours, giving way to every
6995 variety of thought--re-considering events, determining probabilities,
6996 and reconciling herself, as well as she could, to a change so sudden and
6997 so important, fatigue, and a recollection of her long absence, made
6998 her at length return home; and she entered the house with the wish
6999 of appearing cheerful as usual, and the resolution of repressing such
7000 reflections as must make her unfit for conversation.
7001
7002 She was immediately told that the two gentlemen from Rosings had each
7003 called during her absence; Mr. Darcy, only for a few minutes, to take
7004 leave--but that Colonel Fitzwilliam had been sitting with them at least
7005 an hour, hoping for her return, and almost resolving to walk after her
7006 till she could be found. Elizabeth could but just _affect_ concern
7007 in missing him; she really rejoiced at it. Colonel Fitzwilliam was no
7008 longer an object; she could think only of her letter.
7009
7010
7011
7012 Chapter 37
7013
7014
7015 The two gentlemen left Rosings the next morning, and Mr. Collins having
7016 been in waiting near the lodges, to make them his parting obeisance, was
7017 able to bring home the pleasing intelligence, of their appearing in very
7018 good health, and in as tolerable spirits as could be expected, after the
7019 melancholy scene so lately gone through at Rosings. To Rosings he then
7020 hastened, to console Lady Catherine and her daughter; and on his return
7021 brought back, with great satisfaction, a message from her ladyship,
7022 importing that she felt herself so dull as to make her very desirous of
7023 having them all to dine with her.
7024
7025 Elizabeth could not see Lady Catherine without recollecting that, had
7026 she chosen it, she might by this time have been presented to her as
7027 her future niece; nor could she think, without a smile, of what her
7028 ladyship's indignation would have been. "What would she have said? how
7029 would she have behaved?" were questions with which she amused herself.
7030
7031 Their first subject was the diminution of the Rosings party. "I assure
7032 you, I feel it exceedingly," said Lady Catherine; "I believe no one
7033 feels the loss of friends so much as I do. But I am particularly
7034 attached to these young men, and know them to be so much attached to
7035 me! They were excessively sorry to go! But so they always are. The
7036 dear Colonel rallied his spirits tolerably till just at last; but Darcy
7037 seemed to feel it most acutely, more, I think, than last year. His
7038 attachment to Rosings certainly increases."
7039
7040 Mr. Collins had a compliment, and an allusion to throw in here, which
7041 were kindly smiled on by the mother and daughter.
7042
7043 Lady Catherine observed, after dinner, that Miss Bennet seemed out of
7044 spirits, and immediately accounting for it by herself, by supposing that
7045 she did not like to go home again so soon, she added:
7046
7047 "But if that is the case, you must write to your mother and beg that
7048 you may stay a little longer. Mrs. Collins will be very glad of your
7049 company, I am sure."
7050
7051 "I am much obliged to your ladyship for your kind invitation," replied
7052 Elizabeth, "but it is not in my power to accept it. I must be in town
7053 next Saturday."
7054
7055 "Why, at that rate, you will have been here only six weeks. I expected
7056 you to stay two months. I told Mrs. Collins so before you came. There
7057 can be no occasion for your going so soon. Mrs. Bennet could certainly
7058 spare you for another fortnight."
7059
7060 "But my father cannot. He wrote last week to hurry my return."
7061
7062 "Oh! your father of course may spare you, if your mother can. Daughters
7063 are never of so much consequence to a father. And if you will stay
7064 another _month_ complete, it will be in my power to take one of you as
7065 far as London, for I am going there early in June, for a week; and as
7066 Dawson does not object to the barouche-box, there will be very good room
7067 for one of you--and indeed, if the weather should happen to be cool, I
7068 should not object to taking you both, as you are neither of you large."
7069
7070 "You are all kindness, madam; but I believe we must abide by our
7071 original plan."
7072
7073 Lady Catherine seemed resigned. "Mrs. Collins, you must send a servant
7074 with them. You know I always speak my mind, and I cannot bear the idea
7075 of two young women travelling post by themselves. It is highly improper.
7076 You must contrive to send somebody. I have the greatest dislike in
7077 the world to that sort of thing. Young women should always be properly
7078 guarded and attended, according to their situation in life. When my
7079 niece Georgiana went to Ramsgate last summer, I made a point of her
7080 having two men-servants go with her. Miss Darcy, the daughter of
7081 Mr. Darcy, of Pemberley, and Lady Anne, could not have appeared with
7082 propriety in a different manner. I am excessively attentive to all those
7083 things. You must send John with the young ladies, Mrs. Collins. I
7084 am glad it occurred to me to mention it; for it would really be
7085 discreditable to _you_ to let them go alone."
7086
7087 "My uncle is to send a servant for us."
7088
7089 "Oh! Your uncle! He keeps a man-servant, does he? I am very glad you
7090 have somebody who thinks of these things. Where shall you change horses?
7091 Oh! Bromley, of course. If you mention my name at the Bell, you will be
7092 attended to."
7093
7094 Lady Catherine had many other questions to ask respecting their journey,
7095 and as she did not answer them all herself, attention was necessary,
7096 which Elizabeth believed to be lucky for her; or, with a mind so
7097 occupied, she might have forgotten where she was. Reflection must be
7098 reserved for solitary hours; whenever she was alone, she gave way to it
7099 as the greatest relief; and not a day went by without a solitary
7100 walk, in which she might indulge in all the delight of unpleasant
7101 recollections.
7102
7103 Mr. Darcy's letter she was in a fair way of soon knowing by heart. She
7104 studied every sentence; and her feelings towards its writer were at
7105 times widely different. When she remembered the style of his address,
7106 she was still full of indignation; but when she considered how unjustly
7107 she had condemned and upbraided him, her anger was turned against
7108 herself; and his disappointed feelings became the object of compassion.
7109 His attachment excited gratitude, his general character respect; but she
7110 could not approve him; nor could she for a moment repent her refusal,
7111 or feel the slightest inclination ever to see him again. In her own past
7112 behaviour, there was a constant source of vexation and regret; and in
7113 the unhappy defects of her family, a subject of yet heavier chagrin.
7114 They were hopeless of remedy. Her father, contented with laughing at
7115 them, would never exert himself to restrain the wild giddiness of his
7116 youngest daughters; and her mother, with manners so far from right
7117 herself, was entirely insensible of the evil. Elizabeth had frequently
7118 united with Jane in an endeavour to check the imprudence of Catherine
7119 and Lydia; but while they were supported by their mother's indulgence,
7120 what chance could there be of improvement? Catherine, weak-spirited,
7121 irritable, and completely under Lydia's guidance, had been always
7122 affronted by their advice; and Lydia, self-willed and careless, would
7123 scarcely give them a hearing. They were ignorant, idle, and vain. While
7124 there was an officer in Meryton, they would flirt with him; and while
7125 Meryton was within a walk of Longbourn, they would be going there
7126 forever.
7127
7128 Anxiety on Jane's behalf was another prevailing concern; and Mr. Darcy's
7129 explanation, by restoring Bingley to all her former good opinion,
7130 heightened the sense of what Jane had lost. His affection was proved
7131 to have been sincere, and his conduct cleared of all blame, unless any
7132 could attach to the implicitness of his confidence in his friend. How
7133 grievous then was the thought that, of a situation so desirable in every
7134 respect, so replete with advantage, so promising for happiness, Jane had
7135 been deprived, by the folly and indecorum of her own family!
7136
7137 When to these recollections was added the development of Wickham's
7138 character, it may be easily believed that the happy spirits which had
7139 seldom been depressed before, were now so much affected as to make it
7140 almost impossible for her to appear tolerably cheerful.
7141
7142 Their engagements at Rosings were as frequent during the last week of
7143 her stay as they had been at first. The very last evening was spent
7144 there; and her ladyship again inquired minutely into the particulars of
7145 their journey, gave them directions as to the best method of packing,
7146 and was so urgent on the necessity of placing gowns in the only right
7147 way, that Maria thought herself obliged, on her return, to undo all the
7148 work of the morning, and pack her trunk afresh.
7149
7150 When they parted, Lady Catherine, with great condescension, wished them
7151 a good journey, and invited them to come to Hunsford again next year;
7152 and Miss de Bourgh exerted herself so far as to curtsey and hold out her
7153 hand to both.
7154
7155
7156
7157 Chapter 38
7158
7159
7160 On Saturday morning Elizabeth and Mr. Collins met for breakfast a few
7161 minutes before the others appeared; and he took the opportunity of
7162 paying the parting civilities which he deemed indispensably necessary.
7163
7164 "I know not, Miss Elizabeth," said he, "whether Mrs. Collins has yet
7165 expressed her sense of your kindness in coming to us; but I am very
7166 certain you will not leave the house without receiving her thanks for
7167 it. The favour of your company has been much felt, I assure you. We
7168 know how little there is to tempt anyone to our humble abode. Our plain
7169 manner of living, our small rooms and few domestics, and the little we
7170 see of the world, must make Hunsford extremely dull to a young lady like
7171 yourself; but I hope you will believe us grateful for the condescension,
7172 and that we have done everything in our power to prevent your spending
7173 your time unpleasantly."
7174
7175 Elizabeth was eager with her thanks and assurances of happiness. She
7176 had spent six weeks with great enjoyment; and the pleasure of being with
7177 Charlotte, and the kind attentions she had received, must make _her_
7178 feel the obliged. Mr. Collins was gratified, and with a more smiling
7179 solemnity replied:
7180
7181 "It gives me great pleasure to hear that you have passed your time not
7182 disagreeably. We have certainly done our best; and most fortunately
7183 having it in our power to introduce you to very superior society, and,
7184 from our connection with Rosings, the frequent means of varying the
7185 humble home scene, I think we may flatter ourselves that your Hunsford
7186 visit cannot have been entirely irksome. Our situation with regard to
7187 Lady Catherine's family is indeed the sort of extraordinary advantage
7188 and blessing which few can boast. You see on what a footing we are. You
7189 see how continually we are engaged there. In truth I must acknowledge
7190 that, with all the disadvantages of this humble parsonage, I should
7191 not think anyone abiding in it an object of compassion, while they are
7192 sharers of our intimacy at Rosings."
7193
7194 Words were insufficient for the elevation of his feelings; and he was
7195 obliged to walk about the room, while Elizabeth tried to unite civility
7196 and truth in a few short sentences.
7197
7198 "You may, in fact, carry a very favourable report of us into
7199 Hertfordshire, my dear cousin. I flatter myself at least that you will
7200 be able to do so. Lady Catherine's great attentions to Mrs. Collins you
7201 have been a daily witness of; and altogether I trust it does not appear
7202 that your friend has drawn an unfortunate--but on this point it will be
7203 as well to be silent. Only let me assure you, my dear Miss Elizabeth,
7204 that I can from my heart most cordially wish you equal felicity in
7205 marriage. My dear Charlotte and I have but one mind and one way of
7206 thinking. There is in everything a most remarkable resemblance of
7207 character and ideas between us. We seem to have been designed for each
7208 other."
7209
7210 Elizabeth could safely say that it was a great happiness where that was
7211 the case, and with equal sincerity could add, that she firmly believed
7212 and rejoiced in his domestic comforts. She was not sorry, however, to
7213 have the recital of them interrupted by the lady from whom they sprang.
7214 Poor Charlotte! it was melancholy to leave her to such society! But she
7215 had chosen it with her eyes open; and though evidently regretting that
7216 her visitors were to go, she did not seem to ask for compassion. Her
7217 home and her housekeeping, her parish and her poultry, and all their
7218 dependent concerns, had not yet lost their charms.
7219
7220 At length the chaise arrived, the trunks were fastened on, the parcels
7221 placed within, and it was pronounced to be ready. After an affectionate
7222 parting between the friends, Elizabeth was attended to the carriage by
7223 Mr. Collins, and as they walked down the garden he was commissioning her
7224 with his best respects to all her family, not forgetting his thanks
7225 for the kindness he had received at Longbourn in the winter, and his
7226 compliments to Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner, though unknown. He then handed her
7227 in, Maria followed, and the door was on the point of being closed,
7228 when he suddenly reminded them, with some consternation, that they had
7229 hitherto forgotten to leave any message for the ladies at Rosings.
7230
7231 "But," he added, "you will of course wish to have your humble respects
7232 delivered to them, with your grateful thanks for their kindness to you
7233 while you have been here."
7234
7235 Elizabeth made no objection; the door was then allowed to be shut, and
7236 the carriage drove off.
7237
7238 "Good gracious!" cried Maria, after a few minutes' silence, "it seems
7239 but a day or two since we first came! and yet how many things have
7240 happened!"
7241
7242 "A great many indeed," said her companion with a sigh.
7243
7244 "We have dined nine times at Rosings, besides drinking tea there twice!
7245 How much I shall have to tell!"
7246
7247 Elizabeth added privately, "And how much I shall have to conceal!"
7248
7249 Their journey was performed without much conversation, or any alarm; and
7250 within four hours of their leaving Hunsford they reached Mr. Gardiner's
7251 house, where they were to remain a few days.
7252
7253 Jane looked well, and Elizabeth had little opportunity of studying her
7254 spirits, amidst the various engagements which the kindness of her
7255 aunt had reserved for them. But Jane was to go home with her, and at
7256 Longbourn there would be leisure enough for observation.
7257
7258 It was not without an effort, meanwhile, that she could wait even for
7259 Longbourn, before she told her sister of Mr. Darcy's proposals. To know
7260 that she had the power of revealing what would so exceedingly astonish
7261 Jane, and must, at the same time, so highly gratify whatever of her own
7262 vanity she had not yet been able to reason away, was such a temptation
7263 to openness as nothing could have conquered but the state of indecision
7264 in which she remained as to the extent of what she should communicate;
7265 and her fear, if she once entered on the subject, of being hurried
7266 into repeating something of Bingley which might only grieve her sister
7267 further.
7268
7269
7270
7271 Chapter 39
7272
7273
7274 It was the second week in May, in which the three young ladies set out
7275 together from Gracechurch Street for the town of ----, in Hertfordshire;
7276 and, as they drew near the appointed inn where Mr. Bennet's carriage
7277 was to meet them, they quickly perceived, in token of the coachman's
7278 punctuality, both Kitty and Lydia looking out of a dining-room up stairs.
7279 These two girls had been above an hour in the place, happily employed
7280 in visiting an opposite milliner, watching the sentinel on guard, and
7281 dressing a salad and cucumber.
7282
7283 After welcoming their sisters, they triumphantly displayed a table set
7284 out with such cold meat as an inn larder usually affords, exclaiming,
7285 "Is not this nice? Is not this an agreeable surprise?"
7286
7287 "And we mean to treat you all," added Lydia, "but you must lend us the
7288 money, for we have just spent ours at the shop out there." Then, showing
7289 her purchases--"Look here, I have bought this bonnet. I do not think
7290 it is very pretty; but I thought I might as well buy it as not. I shall
7291 pull it to pieces as soon as I get home, and see if I can make it up any
7292 better."
7293
7294 And when her sisters abused it as ugly, she added, with perfect
7295 unconcern, "Oh! but there were two or three much uglier in the shop; and
7296 when I have bought some prettier-coloured satin to trim it with fresh, I
7297 think it will be very tolerable. Besides, it will not much signify what
7298 one wears this summer, after the ----shire have left Meryton, and they
7299 are going in a fortnight."
7300
7301 "Are they indeed!" cried Elizabeth, with the greatest satisfaction.
7302
7303 "They are going to be encamped near Brighton; and I do so want papa to
7304 take us all there for the summer! It would be such a delicious scheme;
7305 and I dare say would hardly cost anything at all. Mamma would like to
7306 go too of all things! Only think what a miserable summer else we shall
7307 have!"
7308
7309 "Yes," thought Elizabeth, "_that_ would be a delightful scheme indeed,
7310 and completely do for us at once. Good Heaven! Brighton, and a whole
7311 campful of soldiers, to us, who have been overset already by one poor
7312 regiment of militia, and the monthly balls of Meryton!"
7313
7314 "Now I have got some news for you," said Lydia, as they sat down at
7315 table. "What do you think? It is excellent news--capital news--and about
7316 a certain person we all like!"
7317
7318 Jane and Elizabeth looked at each other, and the waiter was told he need
7319 not stay. Lydia laughed, and said:
7320
7321 "Aye, that is just like your formality and discretion. You thought the
7322 waiter must not hear, as if he cared! I dare say he often hears worse
7323 things said than I am going to say. But he is an ugly fellow! I am glad
7324 he is gone. I never saw such a long chin in my life. Well, but now for
7325 my news; it is about dear Wickham; too good for the waiter, is it not?
7326 There is no danger of Wickham's marrying Mary King. There's for you! She
7327 is gone down to her uncle at Liverpool: gone to stay. Wickham is safe."
7328
7329 "And Mary King is safe!" added Elizabeth; "safe from a connection
7330 imprudent as to fortune."
7331
7332 "She is a great fool for going away, if she liked him."
7333
7334 "But I hope there is no strong attachment on either side," said Jane.
7335
7336 "I am sure there is not on _his_. I will answer for it, he never cared
7337 three straws about her--who could about such a nasty little freckled
7338 thing?"
7339
7340 Elizabeth was shocked to think that, however incapable of such
7341 coarseness of _expression_ herself, the coarseness of the _sentiment_
7342 was little other than her own breast had harboured and fancied liberal!
7343
7344 As soon as all had ate, and the elder ones paid, the carriage was
7345 ordered; and after some contrivance, the whole party, with all their
7346 boxes, work-bags, and parcels, and the unwelcome addition of Kitty's and
7347 Lydia's purchases, were seated in it.
7348
7349 "How nicely we are all crammed in," cried Lydia. "I am glad I bought my
7350 bonnet, if it is only for the fun of having another bandbox! Well, now
7351 let us be quite comfortable and snug, and talk and laugh all the way
7352 home. And in the first place, let us hear what has happened to you all
7353 since you went away. Have you seen any pleasant men? Have you had any
7354 flirting? I was in great hopes that one of you would have got a husband
7355 before you came back. Jane will be quite an old maid soon, I declare.
7356 She is almost three-and-twenty! Lord, how ashamed I should be of not
7357 being married before three-and-twenty! My aunt Phillips wants you so to
7358 get husbands, you can't think. She says Lizzy had better have taken Mr.
7359 Collins; but _I_ do not think there would have been any fun in it. Lord!
7360 how I should like to be married before any of you; and then I would
7361 chaperon you about to all the balls. Dear me! we had such a good piece
7362 of fun the other day at Colonel Forster's. Kitty and me were to spend
7363 the day there, and Mrs. Forster promised to have a little dance in the
7364 evening; (by the bye, Mrs. Forster and me are _such_ friends!) and so
7365 she asked the two Harringtons to come, but Harriet was ill, and so Pen
7366 was forced to come by herself; and then, what do you think we did? We
7367 dressed up Chamberlayne in woman's clothes on purpose to pass for a
7368 lady, only think what fun! Not a soul knew of it, but Colonel and Mrs.
7369 Forster, and Kitty and me, except my aunt, for we were forced to borrow
7370 one of her gowns; and you cannot imagine how well he looked! When Denny,
7371 and Wickham, and Pratt, and two or three more of the men came in, they
7372 did not know him in the least. Lord! how I laughed! and so did Mrs.
7373 Forster. I thought I should have died. And _that_ made the men suspect
7374 something, and then they soon found out what was the matter."
7375
7376 With such kinds of histories of their parties and good jokes, did
7377 Lydia, assisted by Kitty's hints and additions, endeavour to amuse her
7378 companions all the way to Longbourn. Elizabeth listened as little as she
7379 could, but there was no escaping the frequent mention of Wickham's name.
7380
7381 Their reception at home was most kind. Mrs. Bennet rejoiced to see Jane
7382 in undiminished beauty; and more than once during dinner did Mr. Bennet
7383 say voluntarily to Elizabeth:
7384
7385 "I am glad you are come back, Lizzy."
7386
7387 Their party in the dining-room was large, for almost all the Lucases
7388 came to meet Maria and hear the news; and various were the subjects that
7389 occupied them: Lady Lucas was inquiring of Maria, after the welfare and
7390 poultry of her eldest daughter; Mrs. Bennet was doubly engaged, on one
7391 hand collecting an account of the present fashions from Jane, who sat
7392 some way below her, and, on the other, retailing them all to the younger
7393 Lucases; and Lydia, in a voice rather louder than any other person's,
7394 was enumerating the various pleasures of the morning to anybody who
7395 would hear her.
7396
7397 "Oh! Mary," said she, "I wish you had gone with us, for we had such fun!
7398 As we went along, Kitty and I drew up the blinds, and pretended there
7399 was nobody in the coach; and I should have gone so all the way, if Kitty
7400 had not been sick; and when we got to the George, I do think we behaved
7401 very handsomely, for we treated the other three with the nicest cold
7402 luncheon in the world, and if you would have gone, we would have treated
7403 you too. And then when we came away it was such fun! I thought we never
7404 should have got into the coach. I was ready to die of laughter. And then
7405 we were so merry all the way home! we talked and laughed so loud, that
7406 anybody might have heard us ten miles off!"
7407
7408 To this Mary very gravely replied, "Far be it from me, my dear sister,
7409 to depreciate such pleasures! They would doubtless be congenial with the
7410 generality of female minds. But I confess they would have no charms for
7411 _me_--I should infinitely prefer a book."
7412
7413 But of this answer Lydia heard not a word. She seldom listened to
7414 anybody for more than half a minute, and never attended to Mary at all.
7415
7416 In the afternoon Lydia was urgent with the rest of the girls to walk
7417 to Meryton, and to see how everybody went on; but Elizabeth steadily
7418 opposed the scheme. It should not be said that the Miss Bennets could
7419 not be at home half a day before they were in pursuit of the officers.
7420 There was another reason too for her opposition. She dreaded seeing Mr.
7421 Wickham again, and was resolved to avoid it as long as possible. The
7422 comfort to _her_ of the regiment's approaching removal was indeed beyond
7423 expression. In a fortnight they were to go--and once gone, she hoped
7424 there could be nothing more to plague her on his account.
7425
7426 She had not been many hours at home before she found that the Brighton
7427 scheme, of which Lydia had given them a hint at the inn, was under
7428 frequent discussion between her parents. Elizabeth saw directly that her
7429 father had not the smallest intention of yielding; but his answers were
7430 at the same time so vague and equivocal, that her mother, though often
7431 disheartened, had never yet despaired of succeeding at last.
7432
7433
7434
7435 Chapter 40
7436
7437
7438 Elizabeth's impatience to acquaint Jane with what had happened could
7439 no longer be overcome; and at length, resolving to suppress every
7440 particular in which her sister was concerned, and preparing her to be
7441 surprised, she related to her the next morning the chief of the scene
7442 between Mr. Darcy and herself.
7443
7444 Miss Bennet's astonishment was soon lessened by the strong sisterly
7445 partiality which made any admiration of Elizabeth appear perfectly
7446 natural; and all surprise was shortly lost in other feelings. She was
7447 sorry that Mr. Darcy should have delivered his sentiments in a manner so
7448 little suited to recommend them; but still more was she grieved for the
7449 unhappiness which her sister's refusal must have given him.
7450
7451 "His being so sure of succeeding was wrong," said she, "and certainly
7452 ought not to have appeared; but consider how much it must increase his
7453 disappointment!"
7454
7455 "Indeed," replied Elizabeth, "I am heartily sorry for him; but he has
7456 other feelings, which will probably soon drive away his regard for me.
7457 You do not blame me, however, for refusing him?"
7458
7459 "Blame you! Oh, no."
7460
7461 "But you blame me for having spoken so warmly of Wickham?"
7462
7463 "No--I do not know that you were wrong in saying what you did."
7464
7465 "But you _will_ know it, when I tell you what happened the very next
7466 day."
7467
7468 She then spoke of the letter, repeating the whole of its contents as far
7469 as they concerned George Wickham. What a stroke was this for poor Jane!
7470 who would willingly have gone through the world without believing that
7471 so much wickedness existed in the whole race of mankind, as was here
7472 collected in one individual. Nor was Darcy's vindication, though
7473 grateful to her feelings, capable of consoling her for such discovery.
7474 Most earnestly did she labour to prove the probability of error, and
7475 seek to clear the one without involving the other.
7476
7477 "This will not do," said Elizabeth; "you never will be able to make both
7478 of them good for anything. Take your choice, but you must be satisfied
7479 with only one. There is but such a quantity of merit between them; just
7480 enough to make one good sort of man; and of late it has been shifting
7481 about pretty much. For my part, I am inclined to believe it all Darcy's;
7482 but you shall do as you choose."
7483
7484 It was some time, however, before a smile could be extorted from Jane.
7485
7486 "I do not know when I have been more shocked," said she. "Wickham so
7487 very bad! It is almost past belief. And poor Mr. Darcy! Dear Lizzy, only
7488 consider what he must have suffered. Such a disappointment! and with the
7489 knowledge of your ill opinion, too! and having to relate such a thing
7490 of his sister! It is really too distressing. I am sure you must feel it
7491 so."
7492
7493 "Oh! no, my regret and compassion are all done away by seeing you so
7494 full of both. I know you will do him such ample justice, that I am
7495 growing every moment more unconcerned and indifferent. Your profusion
7496 makes me saving; and if you lament over him much longer, my heart will
7497 be as light as a feather."
7498
7499 "Poor Wickham! there is such an expression of goodness in his
7500 countenance! such an openness and gentleness in his manner!"
7501
7502 "There certainly was some great mismanagement in the education of those
7503 two young men. One has got all the goodness, and the other all the
7504 appearance of it."
7505
7506 "I never thought Mr. Darcy so deficient in the _appearance_ of it as you
7507 used to do."
7508
7509 "And yet I meant to be uncommonly clever in taking so decided a dislike
7510 to him, without any reason. It is such a spur to one's genius, such an
7511 opening for wit, to have a dislike of that kind. One may be continually
7512 abusive without saying anything just; but one cannot always be laughing
7513 at a man without now and then stumbling on something witty."
7514
7515 "Lizzy, when you first read that letter, I am sure you could not treat
7516 the matter as you do now."
7517
7518 "Indeed, I could not. I was uncomfortable enough, I may say unhappy. And
7519 with no one to speak to about what I felt, no Jane to comfort me and say
7520 that I had not been so very weak and vain and nonsensical as I knew I
7521 had! Oh! how I wanted you!"
7522
7523 "How unfortunate that you should have used such very strong expressions
7524 in speaking of Wickham to Mr. Darcy, for now they _do_ appear wholly
7525 undeserved."
7526
7527 "Certainly. But the misfortune of speaking with bitterness is a most
7528 natural consequence of the prejudices I had been encouraging. There
7529 is one point on which I want your advice. I want to be told whether I
7530 ought, or ought not, to make our acquaintances in general understand
7531 Wickham's character."
7532
7533 Miss Bennet paused a little, and then replied, "Surely there can be no
7534 occasion for exposing him so dreadfully. What is your opinion?"
7535
7536 "That it ought not to be attempted. Mr. Darcy has not authorised me
7537 to make his communication public. On the contrary, every particular
7538 relative to his sister was meant to be kept as much as possible to
7539 myself; and if I endeavour to undeceive people as to the rest of his
7540 conduct, who will believe me? The general prejudice against Mr. Darcy
7541 is so violent, that it would be the death of half the good people in
7542 Meryton to attempt to place him in an amiable light. I am not equal
7543 to it. Wickham will soon be gone; and therefore it will not signify to
7544 anyone here what he really is. Some time hence it will be all found out,
7545 and then we may laugh at their stupidity in not knowing it before. At
7546 present I will say nothing about it."
7547
7548 "You are quite right. To have his errors made public might ruin him for
7549 ever. He is now, perhaps, sorry for what he has done, and anxious to
7550 re-establish a character. We must not make him desperate."
7551
7552 The tumult of Elizabeth's mind was allayed by this conversation. She had
7553 got rid of two of the secrets which had weighed on her for a fortnight,
7554 and was certain of a willing listener in Jane, whenever she might wish
7555 to talk again of either. But there was still something lurking behind,
7556 of which prudence forbade the disclosure. She dared not relate the other
7557 half of Mr. Darcy's letter, nor explain to her sister how sincerely she
7558 had been valued by her friend. Here was knowledge in which no one
7559 could partake; and she was sensible that nothing less than a perfect
7560 understanding between the parties could justify her in throwing off
7561 this last encumbrance of mystery. "And then," said she, "if that very
7562 improbable event should ever take place, I shall merely be able to
7563 tell what Bingley may tell in a much more agreeable manner himself. The
7564 liberty of communication cannot be mine till it has lost all its value!"
7565
7566 She was now, on being settled at home, at leisure to observe the real
7567 state of her sister's spirits. Jane was not happy. She still cherished a
7568 very tender affection for Bingley. Having never even fancied herself
7569 in love before, her regard had all the warmth of first attachment,
7570 and, from her age and disposition, greater steadiness than most first
7571 attachments often boast; and so fervently did she value his remembrance,
7572 and prefer him to every other man, that all her good sense, and all her
7573 attention to the feelings of her friends, were requisite to check the
7574 indulgence of those regrets which must have been injurious to her own
7575 health and their tranquillity.
7576
7577 "Well, Lizzy," said Mrs. Bennet one day, "what is your opinion _now_ of
7578 this sad business of Jane's? For my part, I am determined never to speak
7579 of it again to anybody. I told my sister Phillips so the other day. But
7580 I cannot find out that Jane saw anything of him in London. Well, he is
7581 a very undeserving young man--and I do not suppose there's the least
7582 chance in the world of her ever getting him now. There is no talk of
7583 his coming to Netherfield again in the summer; and I have inquired of
7584 everybody, too, who is likely to know."
7585
7586 "I do not believe he will ever live at Netherfield any more."
7587
7588 "Oh well! it is just as he chooses. Nobody wants him to come. Though I
7589 shall always say he used my daughter extremely ill; and if I was her, I
7590 would not have put up with it. Well, my comfort is, I am sure Jane will
7591 die of a broken heart; and then he will be sorry for what he has done."
7592
7593 But as Elizabeth could not receive comfort from any such expectation,
7594 she made no answer.
7595
7596 "Well, Lizzy," continued her mother, soon afterwards, "and so the
7597 Collinses live very comfortable, do they? Well, well, I only hope
7598 it will last. And what sort of table do they keep? Charlotte is an
7599 excellent manager, I dare say. If she is half as sharp as her
7600 mother, she is saving enough. There is nothing extravagant in _their_
7601 housekeeping, I dare say."
7602
7603 "No, nothing at all."
7604
7605 "A great deal of good management, depend upon it. Yes, yes, _they_ will
7606 take care not to outrun their income. _They_ will never be distressed
7607 for money. Well, much good may it do them! And so, I suppose, they often
7608 talk of having Longbourn when your father is dead. They look upon it as
7609 quite their own, I dare say, whenever that happens."
7610
7611 "It was a subject which they could not mention before me."
7612
7613 "No; it would have been strange if they had; but I make no doubt they
7614 often talk of it between themselves. Well, if they can be easy with an
7615 estate that is not lawfully their own, so much the better. I should be
7616 ashamed of having one that was only entailed on me."
7617
7618
7619
7620 Chapter 41
7621
7622
7623 The first week of their return was soon gone. The second began. It was
7624 the last of the regiment's stay in Meryton, and all the young ladies
7625 in the neighbourhood were drooping apace. The dejection was almost
7626 universal. The elder Miss Bennets alone were still able to eat, drink,
7627 and sleep, and pursue the usual course of their employments. Very
7628 frequently were they reproached for this insensibility by Kitty and
7629 Lydia, whose own misery was extreme, and who could not comprehend such
7630 hard-heartedness in any of the family.
7631
7632 "Good Heaven! what is to become of us? What are we to do?" would they
7633 often exclaim in the bitterness of woe. "How can you be smiling so,
7634 Lizzy?"
7635
7636 Their affectionate mother shared all their grief; she remembered what
7637 she had herself endured on a similar occasion, five-and-twenty years
7638 ago.
7639
7640 "I am sure," said she, "I cried for two days together when Colonel
7641 Miller's regiment went away. I thought I should have broken my heart."
7642
7643 "I am sure I shall break _mine_," said Lydia.
7644
7645 "If one could but go to Brighton!" observed Mrs. Bennet.
7646
7647 "Oh, yes!--if one could but go to Brighton! But papa is so
7648 disagreeable."
7649
7650 "A little sea-bathing would set me up forever."
7651
7652 "And my aunt Phillips is sure it would do _me_ a great deal of good,"
7653 added Kitty.
7654
7655 Such were the kind of lamentations resounding perpetually through
7656 Longbourn House. Elizabeth tried to be diverted by them; but all sense
7657 of pleasure was lost in shame. She felt anew the justice of Mr. Darcy's
7658 objections; and never had she been so much disposed to pardon his
7659 interference in the views of his friend.
7660
7661 But the gloom of Lydia's prospect was shortly cleared away; for she
7662 received an invitation from Mrs. Forster, the wife of the colonel of
7663 the regiment, to accompany her to Brighton. This invaluable friend was a
7664 very young woman, and very lately married. A resemblance in good humour
7665 and good spirits had recommended her and Lydia to each other, and out of
7666 their _three_ months' acquaintance they had been intimate _two_.
7667
7668 The rapture of Lydia on this occasion, her adoration of Mrs. Forster,
7669 the delight of Mrs. Bennet, and the mortification of Kitty, are scarcely
7670 to be described. Wholly inattentive to her sister's feelings, Lydia
7671 flew about the house in restless ecstasy, calling for everyone's
7672 congratulations, and laughing and talking with more violence than ever;
7673 whilst the luckless Kitty continued in the parlour repined at her fate
7674 in terms as unreasonable as her accent was peevish.
7675
7676 "I cannot see why Mrs. Forster should not ask _me_ as well as Lydia,"
7677 said she, "Though I am _not_ her particular friend. I have just as much
7678 right to be asked as she has, and more too, for I am two years older."
7679
7680 In vain did Elizabeth attempt to make her reasonable, and Jane to make
7681 her resigned. As for Elizabeth herself, this invitation was so far from
7682 exciting in her the same feelings as in her mother and Lydia, that she
7683 considered it as the death warrant of all possibility of common sense
7684 for the latter; and detestable as such a step must make her were it
7685 known, she could not help secretly advising her father not to let her
7686 go. She represented to him all the improprieties of Lydia's general
7687 behaviour, the little advantage she could derive from the friendship of
7688 such a woman as Mrs. Forster, and the probability of her being yet more
7689 imprudent with such a companion at Brighton, where the temptations must
7690 be greater than at home. He heard her attentively, and then said:
7691
7692 "Lydia will never be easy until she has exposed herself in some public
7693 place or other, and we can never expect her to do it with so
7694 little expense or inconvenience to her family as under the present
7695 circumstances."
7696
7697 "If you were aware," said Elizabeth, "of the very great disadvantage to
7698 us all which must arise from the public notice of Lydia's unguarded and
7699 imprudent manner--nay, which has already arisen from it, I am sure you
7700 would judge differently in the affair."
7701
7702 "Already arisen?" repeated Mr. Bennet. "What, has she frightened away
7703 some of your lovers? Poor little Lizzy! But do not be cast down. Such
7704 squeamish youths as cannot bear to be connected with a little absurdity
7705 are not worth a regret. Come, let me see the list of pitiful fellows who
7706 have been kept aloof by Lydia's folly."
7707
7708 "Indeed you are mistaken. I have no such injuries to resent. It is not
7709 of particular, but of general evils, which I am now complaining. Our
7710 importance, our respectability in the world must be affected by the
7711 wild volatility, the assurance and disdain of all restraint which mark
7712 Lydia's character. Excuse me, for I must speak plainly. If you, my dear
7713 father, will not take the trouble of checking her exuberant spirits, and
7714 of teaching her that her present pursuits are not to be the business of
7715 her life, she will soon be beyond the reach of amendment. Her character
7716 will be fixed, and she will, at sixteen, be the most determined flirt
7717 that ever made herself or her family ridiculous; a flirt, too, in the
7718 worst and meanest degree of flirtation; without any attraction beyond
7719 youth and a tolerable person; and, from the ignorance and emptiness
7720 of her mind, wholly unable to ward off any portion of that universal
7721 contempt which her rage for admiration will excite. In this danger
7722 Kitty also is comprehended. She will follow wherever Lydia leads. Vain,
7723 ignorant, idle, and absolutely uncontrolled! Oh! my dear father, can you
7724 suppose it possible that they will not be censured and despised wherever
7725 they are known, and that their sisters will not be often involved in the
7726 disgrace?"
7727
7728 Mr. Bennet saw that her whole heart was in the subject, and
7729 affectionately taking her hand said in reply:
7730
7731 "Do not make yourself uneasy, my love. Wherever you and Jane are known
7732 you must be respected and valued; and you will not appear to less
7733 advantage for having a couple of--or I may say, three--very silly
7734 sisters. We shall have no peace at Longbourn if Lydia does not go to
7735 Brighton. Let her go, then. Colonel Forster is a sensible man, and will
7736 keep her out of any real mischief; and she is luckily too poor to be an
7737 object of prey to anybody. At Brighton she will be of less importance
7738 even as a common flirt than she has been here. The officers will find
7739 women better worth their notice. Let us hope, therefore, that her being
7740 there may teach her her own insignificance. At any rate, she cannot grow
7741 many degrees worse, without authorising us to lock her up for the rest
7742 of her life."
7743
7744 With this answer Elizabeth was forced to be content; but her own opinion
7745 continued the same, and she left him disappointed and sorry. It was not
7746 in her nature, however, to increase her vexations by dwelling on
7747 them. She was confident of having performed her duty, and to fret
7748 over unavoidable evils, or augment them by anxiety, was no part of her
7749 disposition.
7750
7751 Had Lydia and her mother known the substance of her conference with her
7752 father, their indignation would hardly have found expression in their
7753 united volubility. In Lydia's imagination, a visit to Brighton comprised
7754 every possibility of earthly happiness. She saw, with the creative eye
7755 of fancy, the streets of that gay bathing-place covered with officers.
7756 She saw herself the object of attention, to tens and to scores of them
7757 at present unknown. She saw all the glories of the camp--its tents
7758 stretched forth in beauteous uniformity of lines, crowded with the young
7759 and the gay, and dazzling with scarlet; and, to complete the view, she
7760 saw herself seated beneath a tent, tenderly flirting with at least six
7761 officers at once.
7762
7763 Had she known her sister sought to tear her from such prospects and such
7764 realities as these, what would have been her sensations? They could have
7765 been understood only by her mother, who might have felt nearly the same.
7766 Lydia's going to Brighton was all that consoled her for her melancholy
7767 conviction of her husband's never intending to go there himself.
7768
7769 But they were entirely ignorant of what had passed; and their raptures
7770 continued, with little intermission, to the very day of Lydia's leaving
7771 home.
7772
7773 Elizabeth was now to see Mr. Wickham for the last time. Having been
7774 frequently in company with him since her return, agitation was pretty
7775 well over; the agitations of former partiality entirely so. She had even
7776 learnt to detect, in the very gentleness which had first delighted
7777 her, an affectation and a sameness to disgust and weary. In his present
7778 behaviour to herself, moreover, she had a fresh source of displeasure,
7779 for the inclination he soon testified of renewing those intentions which
7780 had marked the early part of their acquaintance could only serve, after
7781 what had since passed, to provoke her. She lost all concern for him in
7782 finding herself thus selected as the object of such idle and frivolous
7783 gallantry; and while she steadily repressed it, could not but feel the
7784 reproof contained in his believing, that however long, and for whatever
7785 cause, his attentions had been withdrawn, her vanity would be gratified,
7786 and her preference secured at any time by their renewal.
7787
7788 On the very last day of the regiment's remaining at Meryton, he dined,
7789 with other of the officers, at Longbourn; and so little was Elizabeth
7790 disposed to part from him in good humour, that on his making some
7791 inquiry as to the manner in which her time had passed at Hunsford, she
7792 mentioned Colonel Fitzwilliam's and Mr. Darcy's having both spent three
7793 weeks at Rosings, and asked him, if he was acquainted with the former.
7794
7795 He looked surprised, displeased, alarmed; but with a moment's
7796 recollection and a returning smile, replied, that he had formerly seen
7797 him often; and, after observing that he was a very gentlemanlike man,
7798 asked her how she had liked him. Her answer was warmly in his favour.
7799 With an air of indifference he soon afterwards added:
7800
7801 "How long did you say he was at Rosings?"
7802
7803 "Nearly three weeks."
7804
7805 "And you saw him frequently?"
7806
7807 "Yes, almost every day."
7808
7809 "His manners are very different from his cousin's."
7810
7811 "Yes, very different. But I think Mr. Darcy improves upon acquaintance."
7812
7813 "Indeed!" cried Mr. Wickham with a look which did not escape her. "And
7814 pray, may I ask?--" But checking himself, he added, in a gayer tone, "Is
7815 it in address that he improves? Has he deigned to add aught of civility
7816 to his ordinary style?--for I dare not hope," he continued in a lower
7817 and more serious tone, "that he is improved in essentials."
7818
7819 "Oh, no!" said Elizabeth. "In essentials, I believe, he is very much
7820 what he ever was."
7821
7822 While she spoke, Wickham looked as if scarcely knowing whether to
7823 rejoice over her words, or to distrust their meaning. There was a
7824 something in her countenance which made him listen with an apprehensive
7825 and anxious attention, while she added:
7826
7827 "When I said that he improved on acquaintance, I did not mean that
7828 his mind or his manners were in a state of improvement, but that, from
7829 knowing him better, his disposition was better understood."
7830
7831 Wickham's alarm now appeared in a heightened complexion and agitated
7832 look; for a few minutes he was silent, till, shaking off his
7833 embarrassment, he turned to her again, and said in the gentlest of
7834 accents:
7835
7836 "You, who so well know my feeling towards Mr. Darcy, will readily
7837 comprehend how sincerely I must rejoice that he is wise enough to assume
7838 even the _appearance_ of what is right. His pride, in that direction,
7839 may be of service, if not to himself, to many others, for it must only
7840 deter him from such foul misconduct as I have suffered by. I only
7841 fear that the sort of cautiousness to which you, I imagine, have been
7842 alluding, is merely adopted on his visits to his aunt, of whose good
7843 opinion and judgement he stands much in awe. His fear of her has always
7844 operated, I know, when they were together; and a good deal is to be
7845 imputed to his wish of forwarding the match with Miss de Bourgh, which I
7846 am certain he has very much at heart."
7847
7848 Elizabeth could not repress a smile at this, but she answered only by a
7849 slight inclination of the head. She saw that he wanted to engage her on
7850 the old subject of his grievances, and she was in no humour to indulge
7851 him. The rest of the evening passed with the _appearance_, on his
7852 side, of usual cheerfulness, but with no further attempt to distinguish
7853 Elizabeth; and they parted at last with mutual civility, and possibly a
7854 mutual desire of never meeting again.
7855
7856 When the party broke up, Lydia returned with Mrs. Forster to Meryton,
7857 from whence they were to set out early the next morning. The separation
7858 between her and her family was rather noisy than pathetic. Kitty was the
7859 only one who shed tears; but she did weep from vexation and envy. Mrs.
7860 Bennet was diffuse in her good wishes for the felicity of her daughter,
7861 and impressive in her injunctions that she should not miss the
7862 opportunity of enjoying herself as much as possible--advice which
7863 there was every reason to believe would be well attended to; and in
7864 the clamorous happiness of Lydia herself in bidding farewell, the more
7865 gentle adieus of her sisters were uttered without being heard.
7866
7867
7868
7869 Chapter 42
7870
7871
7872 Had Elizabeth's opinion been all drawn from her own family, she could
7873 not have formed a very pleasing opinion of conjugal felicity or domestic
7874 comfort. Her father, captivated by youth and beauty, and that appearance
7875 of good humour which youth and beauty generally give, had married a
7876 woman whose weak understanding and illiberal mind had very early in
7877 their marriage put an end to all real affection for her. Respect,
7878 esteem, and confidence had vanished for ever; and all his views
7879 of domestic happiness were overthrown. But Mr. Bennet was not of
7880 a disposition to seek comfort for the disappointment which his own
7881 imprudence had brought on, in any of those pleasures which too often
7882 console the unfortunate for their folly or their vice. He was fond of
7883 the country and of books; and from these tastes had arisen his principal
7884 enjoyments. To his wife he was very little otherwise indebted, than as
7885 her ignorance and folly had contributed to his amusement. This is not
7886 the sort of happiness which a man would in general wish to owe to his
7887 wife; but where other powers of entertainment are wanting, the true
7888 philosopher will derive benefit from such as are given.
7889
7890 Elizabeth, however, had never been blind to the impropriety of her
7891 father's behaviour as a husband. She had always seen it with pain; but
7892 respecting his abilities, and grateful for his affectionate treatment of
7893 herself, she endeavoured to forget what she could not overlook, and to
7894 banish from her thoughts that continual breach of conjugal obligation
7895 and decorum which, in exposing his wife to the contempt of her own
7896 children, was so highly reprehensible. But she had never felt so
7897 strongly as now the disadvantages which must attend the children of so
7898 unsuitable a marriage, nor ever been so fully aware of the evils arising
7899 from so ill-judged a direction of talents; talents, which, rightly used,
7900 might at least have preserved the respectability of his daughters, even
7901 if incapable of enlarging the mind of his wife.
7902
7903 When Elizabeth had rejoiced over Wickham's departure she found little
7904 other cause for satisfaction in the loss of the regiment. Their parties
7905 abroad were less varied than before, and at home she had a mother and
7906 sister whose constant repinings at the dullness of everything around
7907 them threw a real gloom over their domestic circle; and, though Kitty
7908 might in time regain her natural degree of sense, since the disturbers
7909 of her brain were removed, her other sister, from whose disposition
7910 greater evil might be apprehended, was likely to be hardened in all
7911 her folly and assurance by a situation of such double danger as a
7912 watering-place and a camp. Upon the whole, therefore, she found, what
7913 has been sometimes found before, that an event to which she had been
7914 looking with impatient desire did not, in taking place, bring all the
7915 satisfaction she had promised herself. It was consequently necessary to
7916 name some other period for the commencement of actual felicity--to have
7917 some other point on which her wishes and hopes might be fixed, and by
7918 again enjoying the pleasure of anticipation, console herself for the
7919 present, and prepare for another disappointment. Her tour to the Lakes
7920 was now the object of her happiest thoughts; it was her best consolation
7921 for all the uncomfortable hours which the discontentedness of her mother
7922 and Kitty made inevitable; and could she have included Jane in the
7923 scheme, every part of it would have been perfect.
7924
7925 "But it is fortunate," thought she, "that I have something to wish for.
7926 Were the whole arrangement complete, my disappointment would be certain.
7927 But here, by carrying with me one ceaseless source of regret in my
7928 sister's absence, I may reasonably hope to have all my expectations of
7929 pleasure realised. A scheme of which every part promises delight can
7930 never be successful; and general disappointment is only warded off by
7931 the defence of some little peculiar vexation."
7932
7933 When Lydia went away she promised to write very often and very minutely
7934 to her mother and Kitty; but her letters were always long expected, and
7935 always very short. Those to her mother contained little else than that
7936 they were just returned from the library, where such and such officers
7937 had attended them, and where she had seen such beautiful ornaments as
7938 made her quite wild; that she had a new gown, or a new parasol, which
7939 she would have described more fully, but was obliged to leave off in a
7940 violent hurry, as Mrs. Forster called her, and they were going off to
7941 the camp; and from her correspondence with her sister, there was still
7942 less to be learnt--for her letters to Kitty, though rather longer, were
7943 much too full of lines under the words to be made public.
7944
7945 After the first fortnight or three weeks of her absence, health, good
7946 humour, and cheerfulness began to reappear at Longbourn. Everything wore
7947 a happier aspect. The families who had been in town for the winter came
7948 back again, and summer finery and summer engagements arose. Mrs. Bennet
7949 was restored to her usual querulous serenity; and, by the middle of
7950 June, Kitty was so much recovered as to be able to enter Meryton without
7951 tears; an event of such happy promise as to make Elizabeth hope that by
7952 the following Christmas she might be so tolerably reasonable as not to
7953 mention an officer above once a day, unless, by some cruel and malicious
7954 arrangement at the War Office, another regiment should be quartered in
7955 Meryton.
7956
7957 The time fixed for the beginning of their northern tour was now fast
7958 approaching, and a fortnight only was wanting of it, when a letter
7959 arrived from Mrs. Gardiner, which at once delayed its commencement and
7960 curtailed its extent. Mr. Gardiner would be prevented by business from
7961 setting out till a fortnight later in July, and must be in London again
7962 within a month, and as that left too short a period for them to go so
7963 far, and see so much as they had proposed, or at least to see it with
7964 the leisure and comfort they had built on, they were obliged to give up
7965 the Lakes, and substitute a more contracted tour, and, according to the
7966 present plan, were to go no farther northwards than Derbyshire. In that
7967 county there was enough to be seen to occupy the chief of their three
7968 weeks; and to Mrs. Gardiner it had a peculiarly strong attraction. The
7969 town where she had formerly passed some years of her life, and where
7970 they were now to spend a few days, was probably as great an object of
7971 her curiosity as all the celebrated beauties of Matlock, Chatsworth,
7972 Dovedale, or the Peak.
7973
7974 Elizabeth was excessively disappointed; she had set her heart on seeing
7975 the Lakes, and still thought there might have been time enough. But it
7976 was her business to be satisfied--and certainly her temper to be happy;
7977 and all was soon right again.
7978
7979 With the mention of Derbyshire there were many ideas connected. It was
7980 impossible for her to see the word without thinking of Pemberley and its
7981 owner. "But surely," said she, "I may enter his county with impunity,
7982 and rob it of a few petrified spars without his perceiving me."
7983
7984 The period of expectation was now doubled. Four weeks were to pass away
7985 before her uncle and aunt's arrival. But they did pass away, and Mr.
7986 and Mrs. Gardiner, with their four children, did at length appear at
7987 Longbourn. The children, two girls of six and eight years old, and two
7988 younger boys, were to be left under the particular care of their
7989 cousin Jane, who was the general favourite, and whose steady sense and
7990 sweetness of temper exactly adapted her for attending to them in every
7991 way--teaching them, playing with them, and loving them.
7992
7993 The Gardiners stayed only one night at Longbourn, and set off the
7994 next morning with Elizabeth in pursuit of novelty and amusement.
7995 One enjoyment was certain--that of suitableness of companions;
7996 a suitableness which comprehended health and temper to bear
7997 inconveniences--cheerfulness to enhance every pleasure--and affection
7998 and intelligence, which might supply it among themselves if there were
7999 disappointments abroad.
8000
8001 It is not the object of this work to give a description of Derbyshire,
8002 nor of any of the remarkable places through which their route thither
8003 lay; Oxford, Blenheim, Warwick, Kenilworth, Birmingham, etc. are
8004 sufficiently known. A small part of Derbyshire is all the present
8005 concern. To the little town of Lambton, the scene of Mrs. Gardiner's
8006 former residence, and where she had lately learned some acquaintance
8007 still remained, they bent their steps, after having seen all the
8008 principal wonders of the country; and within five miles of Lambton,
8009 Elizabeth found from her aunt that Pemberley was situated. It was not
8010 in their direct road, nor more than a mile or two out of it. In
8011 talking over their route the evening before, Mrs. Gardiner expressed
8012 an inclination to see the place again. Mr. Gardiner declared his
8013 willingness, and Elizabeth was applied to for her approbation.
8014
8015 "My love, should not you like to see a place of which you have heard
8016 so much?" said her aunt; "a place, too, with which so many of your
8017 acquaintances are connected. Wickham passed all his youth there, you
8018 know."
8019
8020 Elizabeth was distressed. She felt that she had no business at
8021 Pemberley, and was obliged to assume a disinclination for seeing it. She
8022 must own that she was tired of seeing great houses; after going over so
8023 many, she really had no pleasure in fine carpets or satin curtains.
8024
8025 Mrs. Gardiner abused her stupidity. "If it were merely a fine house
8026 richly furnished," said she, "I should not care about it myself; but
8027 the grounds are delightful. They have some of the finest woods in the
8028 country."
8029
8030 Elizabeth said no more--but her mind could not acquiesce. The
8031 possibility of meeting Mr. Darcy, while viewing the place, instantly
8032 occurred. It would be dreadful! She blushed at the very idea, and
8033 thought it would be better to speak openly to her aunt than to run such
8034 a risk. But against this there were objections; and she finally resolved
8035 that it could be the last resource, if her private inquiries to the
8036 absence of the family were unfavourably answered.
8037
8038 Accordingly, when she retired at night, she asked the chambermaid
8039 whether Pemberley were not a very fine place? what was the name of its
8040 proprietor? and, with no little alarm, whether the family were down for
8041 the summer? A most welcome negative followed the last question--and her
8042 alarms now being removed, she was at leisure to feel a great deal of
8043 curiosity to see the house herself; and when the subject was revived the
8044 next morning, and she was again applied to, could readily answer, and
8045 with a proper air of indifference, that she had not really any dislike
8046 to the scheme. To Pemberley, therefore, they were to go.
8047
8048
8049
8050 Chapter 43
8051
8052
8053 Elizabeth, as they drove along, watched for the first appearance of
8054 Pemberley Woods with some perturbation; and when at length they turned
8055 in at the lodge, her spirits were in a high flutter.
8056
8057 The park was very large, and contained great variety of ground. They
8058 entered it in one of its lowest points, and drove for some time through
8059 a beautiful wood stretching over a wide extent.
8060
8061 Elizabeth's mind was too full for conversation, but she saw and admired
8062 every remarkable spot and point of view. They gradually ascended for
8063 half-a-mile, and then found themselves at the top of a considerable
8064 eminence, where the wood ceased, and the eye was instantly caught by
8065 Pemberley House, situated on the opposite side of a valley, into which
8066 the road with some abruptness wound. It was a large, handsome stone
8067 building, standing well on rising ground, and backed by a ridge of
8068 high woody hills; and in front, a stream of some natural importance was
8069 swelled into greater, but without any artificial appearance. Its banks
8070 were neither formal nor falsely adorned. Elizabeth was delighted. She
8071 had never seen a place for which nature had done more, or where natural
8072 beauty had been so little counteracted by an awkward taste. They were
8073 all of them warm in their admiration; and at that moment she felt that
8074 to be mistress of Pemberley might be something!
8075
8076 They descended the hill, crossed the bridge, and drove to the door; and,
8077 while examining the nearer aspect of the house, all her apprehension of
8078 meeting its owner returned. She dreaded lest the chambermaid had been
8079 mistaken. On applying to see the place, they were admitted into the
8080 hall; and Elizabeth, as they waited for the housekeeper, had leisure to
8081 wonder at her being where she was.
8082
8083 The housekeeper came; a respectable-looking elderly woman, much less
8084 fine, and more civil, than she had any notion of finding her. They
8085 followed her into the dining-parlour. It was a large, well proportioned
8086 room, handsomely fitted up. Elizabeth, after slightly surveying it, went
8087 to a window to enjoy its prospect. The hill, crowned with wood, which
8088 they had descended, receiving increased abruptness from the distance,
8089 was a beautiful object. Every disposition of the ground was good; and
8090 she looked on the whole scene, the river, the trees scattered on its
8091 banks and the winding of the valley, as far as she could trace it,
8092 with delight. As they passed into other rooms these objects were taking
8093 different positions; but from every window there were beauties to be
8094 seen. The rooms were lofty and handsome, and their furniture suitable to
8095 the fortune of its proprietor; but Elizabeth saw, with admiration of
8096 his taste, that it was neither gaudy nor uselessly fine; with less of
8097 splendour, and more real elegance, than the furniture of Rosings.
8098
8099 "And of this place," thought she, "I might have been mistress! With
8100 these rooms I might now have been familiarly acquainted! Instead of
8101 viewing them as a stranger, I might have rejoiced in them as my own, and
8102 welcomed to them as visitors my uncle and aunt. But no,"--recollecting
8103 herself--"that could never be; my uncle and aunt would have been lost to
8104 me; I should not have been allowed to invite them."
8105
8106 This was a lucky recollection--it saved her from something very like
8107 regret.
8108
8109 She longed to inquire of the housekeeper whether her master was really
8110 absent, but had not the courage for it. At length however, the question
8111 was asked by her uncle; and she turned away with alarm, while Mrs.
8112 Reynolds replied that he was, adding, "But we expect him to-morrow, with
8113 a large party of friends." How rejoiced was Elizabeth that their own
8114 journey had not by any circumstance been delayed a day!
8115
8116 Her aunt now called her to look at a picture. She approached and saw the
8117 likeness of Mr. Wickham, suspended, amongst several other miniatures,
8118 over the mantelpiece. Her aunt asked her, smilingly, how she liked it.
8119 The housekeeper came forward, and told them it was a picture of a young
8120 gentleman, the son of her late master's steward, who had been brought
8121 up by him at his own expense. "He is now gone into the army," she added;
8122 "but I am afraid he has turned out very wild."
8123
8124 Mrs. Gardiner looked at her niece with a smile, but Elizabeth could not
8125 return it.
8126
8127 "And that," said Mrs. Reynolds, pointing to another of the miniatures,
8128 "is my master--and very like him. It was drawn at the same time as the
8129 other--about eight years ago."
8130
8131 "I have heard much of your master's fine person," said Mrs. Gardiner,
8132 looking at the picture; "it is a handsome face. But, Lizzy, you can tell
8133 us whether it is like or not."
8134
8135 Mrs. Reynolds respect for Elizabeth seemed to increase on this
8136 intimation of her knowing her master.
8137
8138 "Does that young lady know Mr. Darcy?"
8139
8140 Elizabeth coloured, and said: "A little."
8141
8142 "And do not you think him a very handsome gentleman, ma'am?"
8143
8144 "Yes, very handsome."
8145
8146 "I am sure I know none so handsome; but in the gallery up stairs you
8147 will see a finer, larger picture of him than this. This room was my late
8148 master's favourite room, and these miniatures are just as they used to
8149 be then. He was very fond of them."
8150
8151 This accounted to Elizabeth for Mr. Wickham's being among them.
8152
8153 Mrs. Reynolds then directed their attention to one of Miss Darcy, drawn
8154 when she was only eight years old.
8155
8156 "And is Miss Darcy as handsome as her brother?" said Mrs. Gardiner.
8157
8158 "Oh! yes--the handsomest young lady that ever was seen; and so
8159 accomplished!--She plays and sings all day long. In the next room is
8160 a new instrument just come down for her--a present from my master; she
8161 comes here to-morrow with him."
8162
8163 Mr. Gardiner, whose manners were very easy and pleasant, encouraged her
8164 communicativeness by his questions and remarks; Mrs. Reynolds, either
8165 by pride or attachment, had evidently great pleasure in talking of her
8166 master and his sister.
8167
8168 "Is your master much at Pemberley in the course of the year?"
8169
8170 "Not so much as I could wish, sir; but I dare say he may spend half his
8171 time here; and Miss Darcy is always down for the summer months."
8172
8173 "Except," thought Elizabeth, "when she goes to Ramsgate."
8174
8175 "If your master would marry, you might see more of him."
8176
8177 "Yes, sir; but I do not know when _that_ will be. I do not know who is
8178 good enough for him."
8179
8180 Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner smiled. Elizabeth could not help saying, "It is
8181 very much to his credit, I am sure, that you should think so."
8182
8183 "I say no more than the truth, and everybody will say that knows him,"
8184 replied the other. Elizabeth thought this was going pretty far; and she
8185 listened with increasing astonishment as the housekeeper added, "I have
8186 never known a cross word from him in my life, and I have known him ever
8187 since he was four years old."
8188
8189 This was praise, of all others most extraordinary, most opposite to her
8190 ideas. That he was not a good-tempered man had been her firmest opinion.
8191 Her keenest attention was awakened; she longed to hear more, and was
8192 grateful to her uncle for saying:
8193
8194 "There are very few people of whom so much can be said. You are lucky in
8195 having such a master."
8196
8197 "Yes, sir, I know I am. If I were to go through the world, I could
8198 not meet with a better. But I have always observed, that they who are
8199 good-natured when children, are good-natured when they grow up; and
8200 he was always the sweetest-tempered, most generous-hearted boy in the
8201 world."
8202
8203 Elizabeth almost stared at her. "Can this be Mr. Darcy?" thought she.
8204
8205 "His father was an excellent man," said Mrs. Gardiner.
8206
8207 "Yes, ma'am, that he was indeed; and his son will be just like him--just
8208 as affable to the poor."
8209
8210 Elizabeth listened, wondered, doubted, and was impatient for more. Mrs.
8211 Reynolds could interest her on no other point. She related the subjects
8212 of the pictures, the dimensions of the rooms, and the price of the
8213 furniture, in vain. Mr. Gardiner, highly amused by the kind of family
8214 prejudice to which he attributed her excessive commendation of her
8215 master, soon led again to the subject; and she dwelt with energy on his
8216 many merits as they proceeded together up the great staircase.
8217
8218 "He is the best landlord, and the best master," said she, "that ever
8219 lived; not like the wild young men nowadays, who think of nothing but
8220 themselves. There is not one of his tenants or servants but will give
8221 him a good name. Some people call him proud; but I am sure I never saw
8222 anything of it. To my fancy, it is only because he does not rattle away
8223 like other young men."
8224
8225 "In what an amiable light does this place him!" thought Elizabeth.
8226
8227 "This fine account of him," whispered her aunt as they walked, "is not
8228 quite consistent with his behaviour to our poor friend."
8229
8230 "Perhaps we might be deceived."
8231
8232 "That is not very likely; our authority was too good."
8233
8234 On reaching the spacious lobby above they were shown into a very pretty
8235 sitting-room, lately fitted up with greater elegance and lightness than
8236 the apartments below; and were informed that it was but just done to
8237 give pleasure to Miss Darcy, who had taken a liking to the room when
8238 last at Pemberley.
8239
8240 "He is certainly a good brother," said Elizabeth, as she walked towards
8241 one of the windows.
8242
8243 Mrs. Reynolds anticipated Miss Darcy's delight, when she should enter
8244 the room. "And this is always the way with him," she added. "Whatever
8245 can give his sister any pleasure is sure to be done in a moment. There
8246 is nothing he would not do for her."
8247
8248 The picture-gallery, and two or three of the principal bedrooms, were
8249 all that remained to be shown. In the former were many good paintings;
8250 but Elizabeth knew nothing of the art; and from such as had been already
8251 visible below, she had willingly turned to look at some drawings of Miss
8252 Darcy's, in crayons, whose subjects were usually more interesting, and
8253 also more intelligible.
8254
8255 In the gallery there were many family portraits, but they could have
8256 little to fix the attention of a stranger. Elizabeth walked in quest of
8257 the only face whose features would be known to her. At last it arrested
8258 her--and she beheld a striking resemblance to Mr. Darcy, with such a
8259 smile over the face as she remembered to have sometimes seen when he
8260 looked at her. She stood several minutes before the picture, in earnest
8261 contemplation, and returned to it again before they quitted the gallery.
8262 Mrs. Reynolds informed them that it had been taken in his father's
8263 lifetime.
8264
8265 There was certainly at this moment, in Elizabeth's mind, a more gentle
8266 sensation towards the original than she had ever felt at the height of
8267 their acquaintance. The commendation bestowed on him by Mrs. Reynolds
8268 was of no trifling nature. What praise is more valuable than the praise
8269 of an intelligent servant? As a brother, a landlord, a master, she
8270 considered how many people's happiness were in his guardianship!--how
8271 much of pleasure or pain was it in his power to bestow!--how much of
8272 good or evil must be done by him! Every idea that had been brought
8273 forward by the housekeeper was favourable to his character, and as she
8274 stood before the canvas on which he was represented, and fixed his
8275 eyes upon herself, she thought of his regard with a deeper sentiment of
8276 gratitude than it had ever raised before; she remembered its warmth, and
8277 softened its impropriety of expression.
8278
8279 When all of the house that was open to general inspection had been seen,
8280 they returned downstairs, and, taking leave of the housekeeper, were
8281 consigned over to the gardener, who met them at the hall-door.
8282
8283 As they walked across the hall towards the river, Elizabeth turned back
8284 to look again; her uncle and aunt stopped also, and while the former
8285 was conjecturing as to the date of the building, the owner of it himself
8286 suddenly came forward from the road, which led behind it to the stables.
8287
8288 They were within twenty yards of each other, and so abrupt was his
8289 appearance, that it was impossible to avoid his sight. Their eyes
8290 instantly met, and the cheeks of both were overspread with the deepest
8291 blush. He absolutely started, and for a moment seemed immovable from
8292 surprise; but shortly recovering himself, advanced towards the party,
8293 and spoke to Elizabeth, if not in terms of perfect composure, at least
8294 of perfect civility.
8295
8296 She had instinctively turned away; but stopping on his approach,
8297 received his compliments with an embarrassment impossible to be
8298 overcome. Had his first appearance, or his resemblance to the picture
8299 they had just been examining, been insufficient to assure the other two
8300 that they now saw Mr. Darcy, the gardener's expression of surprise, on
8301 beholding his master, must immediately have told it. They stood a little
8302 aloof while he was talking to their niece, who, astonished and confused,
8303 scarcely dared lift her eyes to his face, and knew not what answer
8304 she returned to his civil inquiries after her family. Amazed at the
8305 alteration of his manner since they last parted, every sentence that
8306 he uttered was increasing her embarrassment; and every idea of the
8307 impropriety of her being found there recurring to her mind, the few
8308 minutes in which they continued were some of the most uncomfortable in
8309 her life. Nor did he seem much more at ease; when he spoke, his accent
8310 had none of its usual sedateness; and he repeated his inquiries as
8311 to the time of her having left Longbourn, and of her having stayed in
8312 Derbyshire, so often, and in so hurried a way, as plainly spoke the
8313 distraction of his thoughts.
8314
8315 At length every idea seemed to fail him; and, after standing a few
8316 moments without saying a word, he suddenly recollected himself, and took
8317 leave.
8318
8319 The others then joined her, and expressed admiration of his figure; but
8320 Elizabeth heard not a word, and wholly engrossed by her own feelings,
8321 followed them in silence. She was overpowered by shame and vexation. Her
8322 coming there was the most unfortunate, the most ill-judged thing in the
8323 world! How strange it must appear to him! In what a disgraceful light
8324 might it not strike so vain a man! It might seem as if she had purposely
8325 thrown herself in his way again! Oh! why did she come? Or, why did he
8326 thus come a day before he was expected? Had they been only ten minutes
8327 sooner, they should have been beyond the reach of his discrimination;
8328 for it was plain that he was that moment arrived--that moment alighted
8329 from his horse or his carriage. She blushed again and again over
8330 the perverseness of the meeting. And his behaviour, so strikingly
8331 altered--what could it mean? That he should even speak to her was
8332 amazing!--but to speak with such civility, to inquire after her family!
8333 Never in her life had she seen his manners so little dignified, never
8334 had he spoken with such gentleness as on this unexpected meeting. What
8335 a contrast did it offer to his last address in Rosings Park, when he put
8336 his letter into her hand! She knew not what to think, or how to account
8337 for it.
8338
8339 They had now entered a beautiful walk by the side of the water, and
8340 every step was bringing forward a nobler fall of ground, or a finer
8341 reach of the woods to which they were approaching; but it was some time
8342 before Elizabeth was sensible of any of it; and, though she answered
8343 mechanically to the repeated appeals of her uncle and aunt, and
8344 seemed to direct her eyes to such objects as they pointed out, she
8345 distinguished no part of the scene. Her thoughts were all fixed on that
8346 one spot of Pemberley House, whichever it might be, where Mr. Darcy then
8347 was. She longed to know what at the moment was passing in his mind--in
8348 what manner he thought of her, and whether, in defiance of everything,
8349 she was still dear to him. Perhaps he had been civil only because he
8350 felt himself at ease; yet there had been _that_ in his voice which was
8351 not like ease. Whether he had felt more of pain or of pleasure in
8352 seeing her she could not tell, but he certainly had not seen her with
8353 composure.
8354
8355 At length, however, the remarks of her companions on her absence of mind
8356 aroused her, and she felt the necessity of appearing more like herself.
8357
8358 They entered the woods, and bidding adieu to the river for a while,
8359 ascended some of the higher grounds; when, in spots where the opening of
8360 the trees gave the eye power to wander, were many charming views of the
8361 valley, the opposite hills, with the long range of woods overspreading
8362 many, and occasionally part of the stream. Mr. Gardiner expressed a wish
8363 of going round the whole park, but feared it might be beyond a walk.
8364 With a triumphant smile they were told that it was ten miles round.
8365 It settled the matter; and they pursued the accustomed circuit; which
8366 brought them again, after some time, in a descent among hanging woods,
8367 to the edge of the water, and one of its narrowest parts. They crossed
8368 it by a simple bridge, in character with the general air of the scene;
8369 it was a spot less adorned than any they had yet visited; and the
8370 valley, here contracted into a glen, allowed room only for the stream,
8371 and a narrow walk amidst the rough coppice-wood which bordered it.
8372 Elizabeth longed to explore its windings; but when they had crossed the
8373 bridge, and perceived their distance from the house, Mrs. Gardiner,
8374 who was not a great walker, could go no farther, and thought only
8375 of returning to the carriage as quickly as possible. Her niece was,
8376 therefore, obliged to submit, and they took their way towards the house
8377 on the opposite side of the river, in the nearest direction; but their
8378 progress was slow, for Mr. Gardiner, though seldom able to indulge the
8379 taste, was very fond of fishing, and was so much engaged in watching the
8380 occasional appearance of some trout in the water, and talking to the
8381 man about them, that he advanced but little. Whilst wandering on in this
8382 slow manner, they were again surprised, and Elizabeth's astonishment
8383 was quite equal to what it had been at first, by the sight of Mr. Darcy
8384 approaching them, and at no great distance. The walk being here
8385 less sheltered than on the other side, allowed them to see him before
8386 they met. Elizabeth, however astonished, was at least more prepared
8387 for an interview than before, and resolved to appear and to speak with
8388 calmness, if he really intended to meet them. For a few moments, indeed,
8389 she felt that he would probably strike into some other path. The idea
8390 lasted while a turning in the walk concealed him from their view; the
8391 turning past, he was immediately before them. With a glance, she saw
8392 that he had lost none of his recent civility; and, to imitate his
8393 politeness, she began, as they met, to admire the beauty of the place;
8394 but she had not got beyond the words "delightful," and "charming," when
8395 some unlucky recollections obtruded, and she fancied that praise of
8396 Pemberley from her might be mischievously construed. Her colour changed,
8397 and she said no more.
8398
8399 Mrs. Gardiner was standing a little behind; and on her pausing, he asked
8400 her if she would do him the honour of introducing him to her friends.
8401 This was a stroke of civility for which she was quite unprepared;
8402 and she could hardly suppress a smile at his being now seeking the
8403 acquaintance of some of those very people against whom his pride had
8404 revolted in his offer to herself. "What will be his surprise," thought
8405 she, "when he knows who they are? He takes them now for people of
8406 fashion."
8407
8408 The introduction, however, was immediately made; and as she named their
8409 relationship to herself, she stole a sly look at him, to see how he bore
8410 it, and was not without the expectation of his decamping as fast as he
8411 could from such disgraceful companions. That he was _surprised_ by the
8412 connection was evident; he sustained it, however, with fortitude, and
8413 so far from going away, turned back with them, and entered into
8414 conversation with Mr. Gardiner. Elizabeth could not but be pleased,
8415 could not but triumph. It was consoling that he should know she had
8416 some relations for whom there was no need to blush. She listened most
8417 attentively to all that passed between them, and gloried in every
8418 expression, every sentence of her uncle, which marked his intelligence,
8419 his taste, or his good manners.
8420
8421 The conversation soon turned upon fishing; and she heard Mr. Darcy
8422 invite him, with the greatest civility, to fish there as often as he
8423 chose while he continued in the neighbourhood, offering at the same time
8424 to supply him with fishing tackle, and pointing out those parts of
8425 the stream where there was usually most sport. Mrs. Gardiner, who was
8426 walking arm-in-arm with Elizabeth, gave her a look expressive of wonder.
8427 Elizabeth said nothing, but it gratified her exceedingly; the compliment
8428 must be all for herself. Her astonishment, however, was extreme, and
8429 continually was she repeating, "Why is he so altered? From what can
8430 it proceed? It cannot be for _me_--it cannot be for _my_ sake that his
8431 manners are thus softened. My reproofs at Hunsford could not work such a
8432 change as this. It is impossible that he should still love me."
8433
8434 After walking some time in this way, the two ladies in front, the two
8435 gentlemen behind, on resuming their places, after descending to
8436 the brink of the river for the better inspection of some curious
8437 water-plant, there chanced to be a little alteration. It originated
8438 in Mrs. Gardiner, who, fatigued by the exercise of the morning, found
8439 Elizabeth's arm inadequate to her support, and consequently preferred
8440 her husband's. Mr. Darcy took her place by her niece, and they walked on
8441 together. After a short silence, the lady first spoke. She wished him
8442 to know that she had been assured of his absence before she came to the
8443 place, and accordingly began by observing, that his arrival had been
8444 very unexpected--"for your housekeeper," she added, "informed us that
8445 you would certainly not be here till to-morrow; and indeed, before we
8446 left Bakewell, we understood that you were not immediately expected
8447 in the country." He acknowledged the truth of it all, and said that
8448 business with his steward had occasioned his coming forward a few hours
8449 before the rest of the party with whom he had been travelling. "They
8450 will join me early to-morrow," he continued, "and among them are some
8451 who will claim an acquaintance with you--Mr. Bingley and his sisters."
8452
8453 Elizabeth answered only by a slight bow. Her thoughts were instantly
8454 driven back to the time when Mr. Bingley's name had been the last
8455 mentioned between them; and, if she might judge by his complexion, _his_
8456 mind was not very differently engaged.
8457
8458 "There is also one other person in the party," he continued after a
8459 pause, "who more particularly wishes to be known to you. Will you allow
8460 me, or do I ask too much, to introduce my sister to your acquaintance
8461 during your stay at Lambton?"
8462
8463 The surprise of such an application was great indeed; it was too great
8464 for her to know in what manner she acceded to it. She immediately felt
8465 that whatever desire Miss Darcy might have of being acquainted with her
8466 must be the work of her brother, and, without looking farther, it was
8467 satisfactory; it was gratifying to know that his resentment had not made
8468 him think really ill of her.
8469
8470 They now walked on in silence, each of them deep in thought. Elizabeth
8471 was not comfortable; that was impossible; but she was flattered and
8472 pleased. His wish of introducing his sister to her was a compliment of
8473 the highest kind. They soon outstripped the others, and when they had
8474 reached the carriage, Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner were half a quarter of a
8475 mile behind.
8476
8477 He then asked her to walk into the house--but she declared herself not
8478 tired, and they stood together on the lawn. At such a time much might
8479 have been said, and silence was very awkward. She wanted to talk, but
8480 there seemed to be an embargo on every subject. At last she recollected
8481 that she had been travelling, and they talked of Matlock and Dove Dale
8482 with great perseverance. Yet time and her aunt moved slowly--and her
8483 patience and her ideas were nearly worn out before the tete-a-tete was
8484 over. On Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner's coming up they were all pressed to go
8485 into the house and take some refreshment; but this was declined, and
8486 they parted on each side with utmost politeness. Mr. Darcy handed the
8487 ladies into the carriage; and when it drove off, Elizabeth saw him
8488 walking slowly towards the house.
8489
8490 The observations of her uncle and aunt now began; and each of them
8491 pronounced him to be infinitely superior to anything they had expected.
8492 "He is perfectly well behaved, polite, and unassuming," said her uncle.
8493
8494 "There _is_ something a little stately in him, to be sure," replied her
8495 aunt, "but it is confined to his air, and is not unbecoming. I can now
8496 say with the housekeeper, that though some people may call him proud, I
8497 have seen nothing of it."
8498
8499 "I was never more surprised than by his behaviour to us. It was more
8500 than civil; it was really attentive; and there was no necessity for such
8501 attention. His acquaintance with Elizabeth was very trifling."
8502
8503 "To be sure, Lizzy," said her aunt, "he is not so handsome as Wickham;
8504 or, rather, he has not Wickham's countenance, for his features
8505 are perfectly good. But how came you to tell me that he was so
8506 disagreeable?"
8507
8508 Elizabeth excused herself as well as she could; said that she had liked
8509 him better when they had met in Kent than before, and that she had never
8510 seen him so pleasant as this morning.
8511
8512 "But perhaps he may be a little whimsical in his civilities," replied
8513 her uncle. "Your great men often are; and therefore I shall not take him
8514 at his word, as he might change his mind another day, and warn me off
8515 his grounds."
8516
8517 Elizabeth felt that they had entirely misunderstood his character, but
8518 said nothing.
8519
8520 "From what we have seen of him," continued Mrs. Gardiner, "I really
8521 should not have thought that he could have behaved in so cruel a way by
8522 anybody as he has done by poor Wickham. He has not an ill-natured look.
8523 On the contrary, there is something pleasing about his mouth when he
8524 speaks. And there is something of dignity in his countenance that would
8525 not give one an unfavourable idea of his heart. But, to be sure, the
8526 good lady who showed us his house did give him a most flaming character!
8527 I could hardly help laughing aloud sometimes. But he is a liberal
8528 master, I suppose, and _that_ in the eye of a servant comprehends every
8529 virtue."
8530
8531 Elizabeth here felt herself called on to say something in vindication of
8532 his behaviour to Wickham; and therefore gave them to understand, in
8533 as guarded a manner as she could, that by what she had heard from
8534 his relations in Kent, his actions were capable of a very different
8535 construction; and that his character was by no means so faulty, nor
8536 Wickham's so amiable, as they had been considered in Hertfordshire. In
8537 confirmation of this, she related the particulars of all the pecuniary
8538 transactions in which they had been connected, without actually naming
8539 her authority, but stating it to be such as might be relied on.
8540
8541 Mrs. Gardiner was surprised and concerned; but as they were now
8542 approaching the scene of her former pleasures, every idea gave way to
8543 the charm of recollection; and she was too much engaged in pointing out
8544 to her husband all the interesting spots in its environs to think of
8545 anything else. Fatigued as she had been by the morning's walk they
8546 had no sooner dined than she set off again in quest of her former
8547 acquaintance, and the evening was spent in the satisfactions of a
8548 intercourse renewed after many years' discontinuance.
8549
8550 The occurrences of the day were too full of interest to leave Elizabeth
8551 much attention for any of these new friends; and she could do nothing
8552 but think, and think with wonder, of Mr. Darcy's civility, and, above
8553 all, of his wishing her to be acquainted with his sister.
8554
8555
8556
8557 Chapter 44
8558
8559
8560 Elizabeth had settled it that Mr. Darcy would bring his sister to visit
8561 her the very day after her reaching Pemberley; and was consequently
8562 resolved not to be out of sight of the inn the whole of that morning.
8563 But her conclusion was false; for on the very morning after their
8564 arrival at Lambton, these visitors came. They had been walking about the
8565 place with some of their new friends, and were just returning to the inn
8566 to dress themselves for dining with the same family, when the sound of a
8567 carriage drew them to a window, and they saw a gentleman and a lady in
8568 a curricle driving up the street. Elizabeth immediately recognizing
8569 the livery, guessed what it meant, and imparted no small degree of her
8570 surprise to her relations by acquainting them with the honour which she
8571 expected. Her uncle and aunt were all amazement; and the embarrassment
8572 of her manner as she spoke, joined to the circumstance itself, and many
8573 of the circumstances of the preceding day, opened to them a new idea on
8574 the business. Nothing had ever suggested it before, but they felt that
8575 there was no other way of accounting for such attentions from such a
8576 quarter than by supposing a partiality for their niece. While these
8577 newly-born notions were passing in their heads, the perturbation of
8578 Elizabeth's feelings was at every moment increasing. She was quite
8579 amazed at her own discomposure; but amongst other causes of disquiet,
8580 she dreaded lest the partiality of the brother should have said too much
8581 in her favour; and, more than commonly anxious to please, she naturally
8582 suspected that every power of pleasing would fail her.
8583
8584 She retreated from the window, fearful of being seen; and as she walked
8585 up and down the room, endeavouring to compose herself, saw such looks of
8586 inquiring surprise in her uncle and aunt as made everything worse.
8587
8588 Miss Darcy and her brother appeared, and this formidable introduction
8589 took place. With astonishment did Elizabeth see that her new
8590 acquaintance was at least as much embarrassed as herself. Since her
8591 being at Lambton, she had heard that Miss Darcy was exceedingly proud;
8592 but the observation of a very few minutes convinced her that she was
8593 only exceedingly shy. She found it difficult to obtain even a word from
8594 her beyond a monosyllable.
8595
8596 Miss Darcy was tall, and on a larger scale than Elizabeth; and, though
8597 little more than sixteen, her figure was formed, and her appearance
8598 womanly and graceful. She was less handsome than her brother; but there
8599 was sense and good humour in her face, and her manners were perfectly
8600 unassuming and gentle. Elizabeth, who had expected to find in her as
8601 acute and unembarrassed an observer as ever Mr. Darcy had been, was much
8602 relieved by discerning such different feelings.
8603
8604 They had not long been together before Mr. Darcy told her that Bingley
8605 was also coming to wait on her; and she had barely time to express her
8606 satisfaction, and prepare for such a visitor, when Bingley's quick
8607 step was heard on the stairs, and in a moment he entered the room. All
8608 Elizabeth's anger against him had been long done away; but had she still
8609 felt any, it could hardly have stood its ground against the unaffected
8610 cordiality with which he expressed himself on seeing her again. He
8611 inquired in a friendly, though general way, after her family, and looked
8612 and spoke with the same good-humoured ease that he had ever done.
8613
8614 To Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner he was scarcely a less interesting personage
8615 than to herself. They had long wished to see him. The whole party before
8616 them, indeed, excited a lively attention. The suspicions which had just
8617 arisen of Mr. Darcy and their niece directed their observation towards
8618 each with an earnest though guarded inquiry; and they soon drew from
8619 those inquiries the full conviction that one of them at least knew
8620 what it was to love. Of the lady's sensations they remained a little
8621 in doubt; but that the gentleman was overflowing with admiration was
8622 evident enough.
8623
8624 Elizabeth, on her side, had much to do. She wanted to ascertain the
8625 feelings of each of her visitors; she wanted to compose her own, and
8626 to make herself agreeable to all; and in the latter object, where she
8627 feared most to fail, she was most sure of success, for those to whom she
8628 endeavoured to give pleasure were prepossessed in her favour. Bingley
8629 was ready, Georgiana was eager, and Darcy determined, to be pleased.
8630
8631 In seeing Bingley, her thoughts naturally flew to her sister; and, oh!
8632 how ardently did she long to know whether any of his were directed in
8633 a like manner. Sometimes she could fancy that he talked less than on
8634 former occasions, and once or twice pleased herself with the notion
8635 that, as he looked at her, he was trying to trace a resemblance. But,
8636 though this might be imaginary, she could not be deceived as to his
8637 behaviour to Miss Darcy, who had been set up as a rival to Jane. No look
8638 appeared on either side that spoke particular regard. Nothing occurred
8639 between them that could justify the hopes of his sister. On this point
8640 she was soon satisfied; and two or three little circumstances occurred
8641 ere they parted, which, in her anxious interpretation, denoted a
8642 recollection of Jane not untinctured by tenderness, and a wish of saying
8643 more that might lead to the mention of her, had he dared. He observed
8644 to her, at a moment when the others were talking together, and in a tone
8645 which had something of real regret, that it "was a very long time since
8646 he had had the pleasure of seeing her;" and, before she could reply,
8647 he added, "It is above eight months. We have not met since the 26th of
8648 November, when we were all dancing together at Netherfield."
8649
8650 Elizabeth was pleased to find his memory so exact; and he afterwards
8651 took occasion to ask her, when unattended to by any of the rest, whether
8652 _all_ her sisters were at Longbourn. There was not much in the question,
8653 nor in the preceding remark; but there was a look and a manner which
8654 gave them meaning.
8655
8656 It was not often that she could turn her eyes on Mr. Darcy himself;
8657 but, whenever she did catch a glimpse, she saw an expression of general
8658 complaisance, and in all that he said she heard an accent so removed
8659 from _hauteur_ or disdain of his companions, as convinced her that
8660 the improvement of manners which she had yesterday witnessed however
8661 temporary its existence might prove, had at least outlived one day. When
8662 she saw him thus seeking the acquaintance and courting the good opinion
8663 of people with whom any intercourse a few months ago would have been a
8664 disgrace--when she saw him thus civil, not only to herself, but to the
8665 very relations whom he had openly disdained, and recollected their last
8666 lively scene in Hunsford Parsonage--the difference, the change was
8667 so great, and struck so forcibly on her mind, that she could hardly
8668 restrain her astonishment from being visible. Never, even in the company
8669 of his dear friends at Netherfield, or his dignified relations
8670 at Rosings, had she seen him so desirous to please, so free from
8671 self-consequence or unbending reserve, as now, when no importance
8672 could result from the success of his endeavours, and when even the
8673 acquaintance of those to whom his attentions were addressed would draw
8674 down the ridicule and censure of the ladies both of Netherfield and
8675 Rosings.
8676
8677 Their visitors stayed with them above half-an-hour; and when they arose
8678 to depart, Mr. Darcy called on his sister to join him in expressing
8679 their wish of seeing Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner, and Miss Bennet, to dinner
8680 at Pemberley, before they left the country. Miss Darcy, though with a
8681 diffidence which marked her little in the habit of giving invitations,
8682 readily obeyed. Mrs. Gardiner looked at her niece, desirous of knowing
8683 how _she_, whom the invitation most concerned, felt disposed as to its
8684 acceptance, but Elizabeth had turned away her head. Presuming however,
8685 that this studied avoidance spoke rather a momentary embarrassment than
8686 any dislike of the proposal, and seeing in her husband, who was fond of
8687 society, a perfect willingness to accept it, she ventured to engage for
8688 her attendance, and the day after the next was fixed on.
8689
8690 Bingley expressed great pleasure in the certainty of seeing Elizabeth
8691 again, having still a great deal to say to her, and many inquiries to
8692 make after all their Hertfordshire friends. Elizabeth, construing all
8693 this into a wish of hearing her speak of her sister, was pleased, and on
8694 this account, as well as some others, found herself, when their
8695 visitors left them, capable of considering the last half-hour with some
8696 satisfaction, though while it was passing, the enjoyment of it had been
8697 little. Eager to be alone, and fearful of inquiries or hints from her
8698 uncle and aunt, she stayed with them only long enough to hear their
8699 favourable opinion of Bingley, and then hurried away to dress.
8700
8701 But she had no reason to fear Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner's curiosity; it was
8702 not their wish to force her communication. It was evident that she was
8703 much better acquainted with Mr. Darcy than they had before any idea of;
8704 it was evident that he was very much in love with her. They saw much to
8705 interest, but nothing to justify inquiry.
8706
8707 Of Mr. Darcy it was now a matter of anxiety to think well; and, as far
8708 as their acquaintance reached, there was no fault to find. They could
8709 not be untouched by his politeness; and had they drawn his character
8710 from their own feelings and his servant's report, without any reference
8711 to any other account, the circle in Hertfordshire to which he was known
8712 would not have recognized it for Mr. Darcy. There was now an interest,
8713 however, in believing the housekeeper; and they soon became sensible
8714 that the authority of a servant who had known him since he was four
8715 years old, and whose own manners indicated respectability, was not to be
8716 hastily rejected. Neither had anything occurred in the intelligence of
8717 their Lambton friends that could materially lessen its weight. They had
8718 nothing to accuse him of but pride; pride he probably had, and if not,
8719 it would certainly be imputed by the inhabitants of a small market-town
8720 where the family did not visit. It was acknowledged, however, that he
8721 was a liberal man, and did much good among the poor.
8722
8723 With respect to Wickham, the travellers soon found that he was not held
8724 there in much estimation; for though the chief of his concerns with the
8725 son of his patron were imperfectly understood, it was yet a well-known
8726 fact that, on his quitting Derbyshire, he had left many debts behind
8727 him, which Mr. Darcy afterwards discharged.
8728
8729 As for Elizabeth, her thoughts were at Pemberley this evening more than
8730 the last; and the evening, though as it passed it seemed long, was not
8731 long enough to determine her feelings towards _one_ in that mansion;
8732 and she lay awake two whole hours endeavouring to make them out. She
8733 certainly did not hate him. No; hatred had vanished long ago, and she
8734 had almost as long been ashamed of ever feeling a dislike against him,
8735 that could be so called. The respect created by the conviction of his
8736 valuable qualities, though at first unwillingly admitted, had for some
8737 time ceased to be repugnant to her feeling; and it was now heightened
8738 into somewhat of a friendlier nature, by the testimony so highly in
8739 his favour, and bringing forward his disposition in so amiable a light,
8740 which yesterday had produced. But above all, above respect and esteem,
8741 there was a motive within her of goodwill which could not be overlooked.
8742 It was gratitude; gratitude, not merely for having once loved her,
8743 but for loving her still well enough to forgive all the petulance and
8744 acrimony of her manner in rejecting him, and all the unjust accusations
8745 accompanying her rejection. He who, she had been persuaded, would avoid
8746 her as his greatest enemy, seemed, on this accidental meeting, most
8747 eager to preserve the acquaintance, and without any indelicate display
8748 of regard, or any peculiarity of manner, where their two selves only
8749 were concerned, was soliciting the good opinion of her friends, and bent
8750 on making her known to his sister. Such a change in a man of so much
8751 pride exciting not only astonishment but gratitude--for to love, ardent
8752 love, it must be attributed; and as such its impression on her was of a
8753 sort to be encouraged, as by no means unpleasing, though it could not be
8754 exactly defined. She respected, she esteemed, she was grateful to him,
8755 she felt a real interest in his welfare; and she only wanted to know how
8756 far she wished that welfare to depend upon herself, and how far it would
8757 be for the happiness of both that she should employ the power, which her
8758 fancy told her she still possessed, of bringing on her the renewal of
8759 his addresses.
8760
8761 It had been settled in the evening between the aunt and the niece, that
8762 such a striking civility as Miss Darcy's in coming to see them on the
8763 very day of her arrival at Pemberley, for she had reached it only to a
8764 late breakfast, ought to be imitated, though it could not be equalled,
8765 by some exertion of politeness on their side; and, consequently, that
8766 it would be highly expedient to wait on her at Pemberley the following
8767 morning. They were, therefore, to go. Elizabeth was pleased; though when
8768 she asked herself the reason, she had very little to say in reply.
8769
8770 Mr. Gardiner left them soon after breakfast. The fishing scheme had been
8771 renewed the day before, and a positive engagement made of his meeting
8772 some of the gentlemen at Pemberley before noon.
8773
8774
8775
8776 Chapter 45
8777
8778
8779 Convinced as Elizabeth now was that Miss Bingley's dislike of her had
8780 originated in jealousy, she could not help feeling how unwelcome her
8781 appearance at Pemberley must be to her, and was curious to know with how
8782 much civility on that lady's side the acquaintance would now be renewed.
8783
8784 On reaching the house, they were shown through the hall into the saloon,
8785 whose northern aspect rendered it delightful for summer. Its windows
8786 opening to the ground, admitted a most refreshing view of the high woody
8787 hills behind the house, and of the beautiful oaks and Spanish chestnuts
8788 which were scattered over the intermediate lawn.
8789
8790 In this house they were received by Miss Darcy, who was sitting there
8791 with Mrs. Hurst and Miss Bingley, and the lady with whom she lived in
8792 London. Georgiana's reception of them was very civil, but attended with
8793 all the embarrassment which, though proceeding from shyness and the fear
8794 of doing wrong, would easily give to those who felt themselves inferior
8795 the belief of her being proud and reserved. Mrs. Gardiner and her niece,
8796 however, did her justice, and pitied her.
8797
8798 By Mrs. Hurst and Miss Bingley they were noticed only by a curtsey; and,
8799 on their being seated, a pause, awkward as such pauses must always be,
8800 succeeded for a few moments. It was first broken by Mrs. Annesley, a
8801 genteel, agreeable-looking woman, whose endeavour to introduce some kind
8802 of discourse proved her to be more truly well-bred than either of the
8803 others; and between her and Mrs. Gardiner, with occasional help from
8804 Elizabeth, the conversation was carried on. Miss Darcy looked as if she
8805 wished for courage enough to join in it; and sometimes did venture a
8806 short sentence when there was least danger of its being heard.
8807
8808 Elizabeth soon saw that she was herself closely watched by Miss Bingley,
8809 and that she could not speak a word, especially to Miss Darcy, without
8810 calling her attention. This observation would not have prevented her
8811 from trying to talk to the latter, had they not been seated at an
8812 inconvenient distance; but she was not sorry to be spared the necessity
8813 of saying much. Her own thoughts were employing her. She expected every
8814 moment that some of the gentlemen would enter the room. She wished, she
8815 feared that the master of the house might be amongst them; and whether
8816 she wished or feared it most, she could scarcely determine. After
8817 sitting in this manner a quarter of an hour without hearing Miss
8818 Bingley's voice, Elizabeth was roused by receiving from her a cold
8819 inquiry after the health of her family. She answered with equal
8820 indifference and brevity, and the other said no more.
8821
8822 The next variation which their visit afforded was produced by the
8823 entrance of servants with cold meat, cake, and a variety of all the
8824 finest fruits in season; but this did not take place till after many
8825 a significant look and smile from Mrs. Annesley to Miss Darcy had been
8826 given, to remind her of her post. There was now employment for the whole
8827 party--for though they could not all talk, they could all eat; and the
8828 beautiful pyramids of grapes, nectarines, and peaches soon collected
8829 them round the table.
8830
8831 While thus engaged, Elizabeth had a fair opportunity of deciding whether
8832 she most feared or wished for the appearance of Mr. Darcy, by the
8833 feelings which prevailed on his entering the room; and then, though but
8834 a moment before she had believed her wishes to predominate, she began to
8835 regret that he came.
8836
8837 He had been some time with Mr. Gardiner, who, with two or three other
8838 gentlemen from the house, was engaged by the river, and had left him
8839 only on learning that the ladies of the family intended a visit to
8840 Georgiana that morning. No sooner did he appear than Elizabeth wisely
8841 resolved to be perfectly easy and unembarrassed; a resolution the more
8842 necessary to be made, but perhaps not the more easily kept, because she
8843 saw that the suspicions of the whole party were awakened against them,
8844 and that there was scarcely an eye which did not watch his behaviour
8845 when he first came into the room. In no countenance was attentive
8846 curiosity so strongly marked as in Miss Bingley's, in spite of the
8847 smiles which overspread her face whenever she spoke to one of its
8848 objects; for jealousy had not yet made her desperate, and her attentions
8849 to Mr. Darcy were by no means over. Miss Darcy, on her brother's
8850 entrance, exerted herself much more to talk, and Elizabeth saw that he
8851 was anxious for his sister and herself to get acquainted, and forwarded
8852 as much as possible, every attempt at conversation on either side. Miss
8853 Bingley saw all this likewise; and, in the imprudence of anger, took the
8854 first opportunity of saying, with sneering civility:
8855
8856 "Pray, Miss Eliza, are not the ----shire Militia removed from Meryton?
8857 They must be a great loss to _your_ family."
8858
8859 In Darcy's presence she dared not mention Wickham's name; but Elizabeth
8860 instantly comprehended that he was uppermost in her thoughts; and the
8861 various recollections connected with him gave her a moment's distress;
8862 but exerting herself vigorously to repel the ill-natured attack, she
8863 presently answered the question in a tolerably detached tone. While
8864 she spoke, an involuntary glance showed her Darcy, with a heightened
8865 complexion, earnestly looking at her, and his sister overcome with
8866 confusion, and unable to lift up her eyes. Had Miss Bingley known what
8867 pain she was then giving her beloved friend, she undoubtedly would
8868 have refrained from the hint; but she had merely intended to discompose
8869 Elizabeth by bringing forward the idea of a man to whom she believed
8870 her partial, to make her betray a sensibility which might injure her in
8871 Darcy's opinion, and, perhaps, to remind the latter of all the follies
8872 and absurdities by which some part of her family were connected
8873 with that corps. Not a syllable had ever reached her of Miss Darcy's
8874 meditated elopement. To no creature had it been revealed, where secrecy
8875 was possible, except to Elizabeth; and from all Bingley's connections
8876 her brother was particularly anxious to conceal it, from the very
8877 wish which Elizabeth had long ago attributed to him, of their becoming
8878 hereafter her own. He had certainly formed such a plan, and without
8879 meaning that it should affect his endeavour to separate him from Miss
8880 Bennet, it is probable that it might add something to his lively concern
8881 for the welfare of his friend.
8882
8883 Elizabeth's collected behaviour, however, soon quieted his emotion; and
8884 as Miss Bingley, vexed and disappointed, dared not approach nearer to
8885 Wickham, Georgiana also recovered in time, though not enough to be able
8886 to speak any more. Her brother, whose eye she feared to meet, scarcely
8887 recollected her interest in the affair, and the very circumstance which
8888 had been designed to turn his thoughts from Elizabeth seemed to have
8889 fixed them on her more and more cheerfully.
8890
8891 Their visit did not continue long after the question and answer above
8892 mentioned; and while Mr. Darcy was attending them to their carriage Miss
8893 Bingley was venting her feelings in criticisms on Elizabeth's person,
8894 behaviour, and dress. But Georgiana would not join her. Her brother's
8895 recommendation was enough to ensure her favour; his judgement could not
8896 err. And he had spoken in such terms of Elizabeth as to leave Georgiana
8897 without the power of finding her otherwise than lovely and amiable. When
8898 Darcy returned to the saloon, Miss Bingley could not help repeating to
8899 him some part of what she had been saying to his sister.
8900
8901 "How very ill Miss Eliza Bennet looks this morning, Mr. Darcy," she
8902 cried; "I never in my life saw anyone so much altered as she is since
8903 the winter. She is grown so brown and coarse! Louisa and I were agreeing
8904 that we should not have known her again."
8905
8906 However little Mr. Darcy might have liked such an address, he contented
8907 himself with coolly replying that he perceived no other alteration than
8908 her being rather tanned, no miraculous consequence of travelling in the
8909 summer.
8910
8911 "For my own part," she rejoined, "I must confess that I never could
8912 see any beauty in her. Her face is too thin; her complexion has no
8913 brilliancy; and her features are not at all handsome. Her nose
8914 wants character--there is nothing marked in its lines. Her teeth are
8915 tolerable, but not out of the common way; and as for her eyes,
8916 which have sometimes been called so fine, I could never see anything
8917 extraordinary in them. They have a sharp, shrewish look, which I do
8918 not like at all; and in her air altogether there is a self-sufficiency
8919 without fashion, which is intolerable."
8920
8921 Persuaded as Miss Bingley was that Darcy admired Elizabeth, this was not
8922 the best method of recommending herself; but angry people are not always
8923 wise; and in seeing him at last look somewhat nettled, she had all the
8924 success she expected. He was resolutely silent, however, and, from a
8925 determination of making him speak, she continued:
8926
8927 "I remember, when we first knew her in Hertfordshire, how amazed we all
8928 were to find that she was a reputed beauty; and I particularly recollect
8929 your saying one night, after they had been dining at Netherfield, '_She_
8930 a beauty!--I should as soon call her mother a wit.' But afterwards she
8931 seemed to improve on you, and I believe you thought her rather pretty at
8932 one time."
8933
8934 "Yes," replied Darcy, who could contain himself no longer, "but _that_
8935 was only when I first saw her, for it is many months since I have
8936 considered her as one of the handsomest women of my acquaintance."
8937
8938 He then went away, and Miss Bingley was left to all the satisfaction of
8939 having forced him to say what gave no one any pain but herself.
8940
8941 Mrs. Gardiner and Elizabeth talked of all that had occurred during their
8942 visit, as they returned, except what had particularly interested them
8943 both. The look and behaviour of everybody they had seen were discussed,
8944 except of the person who had mostly engaged their attention. They talked
8945 of his sister, his friends, his house, his fruit--of everything but
8946 himself; yet Elizabeth was longing to know what Mrs. Gardiner thought of
8947 him, and Mrs. Gardiner would have been highly gratified by her niece's
8948 beginning the subject.
8949
8950
8951
8952 Chapter 46
8953
8954
8955 Elizabeth had been a good deal disappointed in not finding a letter from
8956 Jane on their first arrival at Lambton; and this disappointment had been
8957 renewed on each of the mornings that had now been spent there; but
8958 on the third her repining was over, and her sister justified, by the
8959 receipt of two letters from her at once, on one of which was marked that
8960 it had been missent elsewhere. Elizabeth was not surprised at it, as
8961 Jane had written the direction remarkably ill.
8962
8963 They had just been preparing to walk as the letters came in; and
8964 her uncle and aunt, leaving her to enjoy them in quiet, set off by
8965 themselves. The one missent must first be attended to; it had been
8966 written five days ago. The beginning contained an account of all their
8967 little parties and engagements, with such news as the country afforded;
8968 but the latter half, which was dated a day later, and written in evident
8969 agitation, gave more important intelligence. It was to this effect:
8970
8971 "Since writing the above, dearest Lizzy, something has occurred of a
8972 most unexpected and serious nature; but I am afraid of alarming you--be
8973 assured that we are all well. What I have to say relates to poor Lydia.
8974 An express came at twelve last night, just as we were all gone to bed,
8975 from Colonel Forster, to inform us that she was gone off to Scotland
8976 with one of his officers; to own the truth, with Wickham! Imagine our
8977 surprise. To Kitty, however, it does not seem so wholly unexpected. I am
8978 very, very sorry. So imprudent a match on both sides! But I am willing
8979 to hope the best, and that his character has been misunderstood.
8980 Thoughtless and indiscreet I can easily believe him, but this step
8981 (and let us rejoice over it) marks nothing bad at heart. His choice is
8982 disinterested at least, for he must know my father can give her nothing.
8983 Our poor mother is sadly grieved. My father bears it better. How
8984 thankful am I that we never let them know what has been said against
8985 him; we must forget it ourselves. They were off Saturday night about
8986 twelve, as is conjectured, but were not missed till yesterday morning at
8987 eight. The express was sent off directly. My dear Lizzy, they must have
8988 passed within ten miles of us. Colonel Forster gives us reason to expect
8989 him here soon. Lydia left a few lines for his wife, informing her of
8990 their intention. I must conclude, for I cannot be long from my poor
8991 mother. I am afraid you will not be able to make it out, but I hardly
8992 know what I have written."
8993
8994 Without allowing herself time for consideration, and scarcely knowing
8995 what she felt, Elizabeth on finishing this letter instantly seized the
8996 other, and opening it with the utmost impatience, read as follows: it
8997 had been written a day later than the conclusion of the first.
8998
8999 "By this time, my dearest sister, you have received my hurried letter; I
9000 wish this may be more intelligible, but though not confined for time, my
9001 head is so bewildered that I cannot answer for being coherent. Dearest
9002 Lizzy, I hardly know what I would write, but I have bad news for you,
9003 and it cannot be delayed. Imprudent as the marriage between Mr. Wickham
9004 and our poor Lydia would be, we are now anxious to be assured it has
9005 taken place, for there is but too much reason to fear they are not gone
9006 to Scotland. Colonel Forster came yesterday, having left Brighton the
9007 day before, not many hours after the express. Though Lydia's short
9008 letter to Mrs. F. gave them to understand that they were going to Gretna
9009 Green, something was dropped by Denny expressing his belief that W.
9010 never intended to go there, or to marry Lydia at all, which was
9011 repeated to Colonel F., who, instantly taking the alarm, set off from B.
9012 intending to trace their route. He did trace them easily to Clapham,
9013 but no further; for on entering that place, they removed into a hackney
9014 coach, and dismissed the chaise that brought them from Epsom. All that
9015 is known after this is, that they were seen to continue the London road.
9016 I know not what to think. After making every possible inquiry on that
9017 side London, Colonel F. came on into Hertfordshire, anxiously renewing
9018 them at all the turnpikes, and at the inns in Barnet and Hatfield, but
9019 without any success--no such people had been seen to pass through. With
9020 the kindest concern he came on to Longbourn, and broke his apprehensions
9021 to us in a manner most creditable to his heart. I am sincerely grieved
9022 for him and Mrs. F., but no one can throw any blame on them. Our
9023 distress, my dear Lizzy, is very great. My father and mother believe the
9024 worst, but I cannot think so ill of him. Many circumstances might make
9025 it more eligible for them to be married privately in town than to pursue
9026 their first plan; and even if _he_ could form such a design against a
9027 young woman of Lydia's connections, which is not likely, can I suppose
9028 her so lost to everything? Impossible! I grieve to find, however, that
9029 Colonel F. is not disposed to depend upon their marriage; he shook his
9030 head when I expressed my hopes, and said he feared W. was not a man to
9031 be trusted. My poor mother is really ill, and keeps her room. Could she
9032 exert herself, it would be better; but this is not to be expected. And
9033 as to my father, I never in my life saw him so affected. Poor Kitty has
9034 anger for having concealed their attachment; but as it was a matter of
9035 confidence, one cannot wonder. I am truly glad, dearest Lizzy, that you
9036 have been spared something of these distressing scenes; but now, as the
9037 first shock is over, shall I own that I long for your return? I am not
9038 so selfish, however, as to press for it, if inconvenient. Adieu! I
9039 take up my pen again to do what I have just told you I would not; but
9040 circumstances are such that I cannot help earnestly begging you all to
9041 come here as soon as possible. I know my dear uncle and aunt so well,
9042 that I am not afraid of requesting it, though I have still something
9043 more to ask of the former. My father is going to London with Colonel
9044 Forster instantly, to try to discover her. What he means to do I am sure
9045 I know not; but his excessive distress will not allow him to pursue any
9046 measure in the best and safest way, and Colonel Forster is obliged to
9047 be at Brighton again to-morrow evening. In such an exigence, my
9048 uncle's advice and assistance would be everything in the world; he will
9049 immediately comprehend what I must feel, and I rely upon his goodness."
9050
9051 "Oh! where, where is my uncle?" cried Elizabeth, darting from her seat
9052 as she finished the letter, in eagerness to follow him, without losing
9053 a moment of the time so precious; but as she reached the door it was
9054 opened by a servant, and Mr. Darcy appeared. Her pale face and impetuous
9055 manner made him start, and before he could recover himself to speak,
9056 she, in whose mind every idea was superseded by Lydia's situation,
9057 hastily exclaimed, "I beg your pardon, but I must leave you. I must find
9058 Mr. Gardiner this moment, on business that cannot be delayed; I have not
9059 an instant to lose."
9060
9061 "Good God! what is the matter?" cried he, with more feeling than
9062 politeness; then recollecting himself, "I will not detain you a minute;
9063 but let me, or let the servant go after Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner. You are
9064 not well enough; you cannot go yourself."
9065
9066 Elizabeth hesitated, but her knees trembled under her and she felt how
9067 little would be gained by her attempting to pursue them. Calling back
9068 the servant, therefore, she commissioned him, though in so breathless
9069 an accent as made her almost unintelligible, to fetch his master and
9070 mistress home instantly.
9071
9072 On his quitting the room she sat down, unable to support herself, and
9073 looking so miserably ill, that it was impossible for Darcy to leave her,
9074 or to refrain from saying, in a tone of gentleness and commiseration,
9075 "Let me call your maid. Is there nothing you could take to give you
9076 present relief? A glass of wine; shall I get you one? You are very ill."
9077
9078 "No, I thank you," she replied, endeavouring to recover herself. "There
9079 is nothing the matter with me. I am quite well; I am only distressed by
9080 some dreadful news which I have just received from Longbourn."
9081
9082 She burst into tears as she alluded to it, and for a few minutes could
9083 not speak another word. Darcy, in wretched suspense, could only say
9084 something indistinctly of his concern, and observe her in compassionate
9085 silence. At length she spoke again. "I have just had a letter from Jane,
9086 with such dreadful news. It cannot be concealed from anyone. My younger
9087 sister has left all her friends--has eloped; has thrown herself into
9088 the power of--of Mr. Wickham. They are gone off together from Brighton.
9089 _You_ know him too well to doubt the rest. She has no money, no
9090 connections, nothing that can tempt him to--she is lost for ever."
9091
9092 Darcy was fixed in astonishment. "When I consider," she added in a yet
9093 more agitated voice, "that I might have prevented it! I, who knew what
9094 he was. Had I but explained some part of it only--some part of what I
9095 learnt, to my own family! Had his character been known, this could not
9096 have happened. But it is all--all too late now."
9097
9098 "I am grieved indeed," cried Darcy; "grieved--shocked. But is it
9099 certain--absolutely certain?"
9100
9101 "Oh, yes! They left Brighton together on Sunday night, and were traced
9102 almost to London, but not beyond; they are certainly not gone to
9103 Scotland."
9104
9105 "And what has been done, what has been attempted, to recover her?"
9106
9107 "My father is gone to London, and Jane has written to beg my uncle's
9108 immediate assistance; and we shall be off, I hope, in half-an-hour. But
9109 nothing can be done--I know very well that nothing can be done. How is
9110 such a man to be worked on? How are they even to be discovered? I have
9111 not the smallest hope. It is every way horrible!"
9112
9113 Darcy shook his head in silent acquiescence.
9114
9115 "When _my_ eyes were opened to his real character--Oh! had I known what
9116 I ought, what I dared to do! But I knew not--I was afraid of doing too
9117 much. Wretched, wretched mistake!"
9118
9119 Darcy made no answer. He seemed scarcely to hear her, and was walking
9120 up and down the room in earnest meditation, his brow contracted, his air
9121 gloomy. Elizabeth soon observed, and instantly understood it. Her
9122 power was sinking; everything _must_ sink under such a proof of family
9123 weakness, such an assurance of the deepest disgrace. She could neither
9124 wonder nor condemn, but the belief of his self-conquest brought nothing
9125 consolatory to her bosom, afforded no palliation of her distress. It
9126 was, on the contrary, exactly calculated to make her understand her own
9127 wishes; and never had she so honestly felt that she could have loved
9128 him, as now, when all love must be vain.
9129
9130 But self, though it would intrude, could not engross her. Lydia--the
9131 humiliation, the misery she was bringing on them all, soon swallowed
9132 up every private care; and covering her face with her handkerchief,
9133 Elizabeth was soon lost to everything else; and, after a pause of
9134 several minutes, was only recalled to a sense of her situation by
9135 the voice of her companion, who, in a manner which, though it spoke
9136 compassion, spoke likewise restraint, said, "I am afraid you have been
9137 long desiring my absence, nor have I anything to plead in excuse of my
9138 stay, but real, though unavailing concern. Would to Heaven that anything
9139 could be either said or done on my part that might offer consolation to
9140 such distress! But I will not torment you with vain wishes, which may
9141 seem purposely to ask for your thanks. This unfortunate affair will, I
9142 fear, prevent my sister's having the pleasure of seeing you at Pemberley
9143 to-day."
9144
9145 "Oh, yes. Be so kind as to apologise for us to Miss Darcy. Say that
9146 urgent business calls us home immediately. Conceal the unhappy truth as
9147 long as it is possible, I know it cannot be long."
9148
9149 He readily assured her of his secrecy; again expressed his sorrow for
9150 her distress, wished it a happier conclusion than there was at present
9151 reason to hope, and leaving his compliments for her relations, with only
9152 one serious, parting look, went away.
9153
9154 As he quitted the room, Elizabeth felt how improbable it was that they
9155 should ever see each other again on such terms of cordiality as
9156 had marked their several meetings in Derbyshire; and as she threw a
9157 retrospective glance over the whole of their acquaintance, so full
9158 of contradictions and varieties, sighed at the perverseness of those
9159 feelings which would now have promoted its continuance, and would
9160 formerly have rejoiced in its termination.
9161
9162 If gratitude and esteem are good foundations of affection, Elizabeth's
9163 change of sentiment will be neither improbable nor faulty. But if
9164 otherwise--if regard springing from such sources is unreasonable or
9165 unnatural, in comparison of what is so often described as arising on
9166 a first interview with its object, and even before two words have been
9167 exchanged, nothing can be said in her defence, except that she had given
9168 somewhat of a trial to the latter method in her partiality for Wickham,
9169 and that its ill success might, perhaps, authorise her to seek the other
9170 less interesting mode of attachment. Be that as it may, she saw him
9171 go with regret; and in this early example of what Lydia's infamy must
9172 produce, found additional anguish as she reflected on that wretched
9173 business. Never, since reading Jane's second letter, had she entertained
9174 a hope of Wickham's meaning to marry her. No one but Jane, she thought,
9175 could flatter herself with such an expectation. Surprise was the least
9176 of her feelings on this development. While the contents of the first
9177 letter remained in her mind, she was all surprise--all astonishment that
9178 Wickham should marry a girl whom it was impossible he could marry
9179 for money; and how Lydia could ever have attached him had appeared
9180 incomprehensible. But now it was all too natural. For such an attachment
9181 as this she might have sufficient charms; and though she did not suppose
9182 Lydia to be deliberately engaging in an elopement without the intention
9183 of marriage, she had no difficulty in believing that neither her virtue
9184 nor her understanding would preserve her from falling an easy prey.
9185
9186 She had never perceived, while the regiment was in Hertfordshire, that
9187 Lydia had any partiality for him; but she was convinced that Lydia
9188 wanted only encouragement to attach herself to anybody. Sometimes one
9189 officer, sometimes another, had been her favourite, as their attentions
9190 raised them in her opinion. Her affections had continually been
9191 fluctuating but never without an object. The mischief of neglect and
9192 mistaken indulgence towards such a girl--oh! how acutely did she now
9193 feel it!
9194
9195 She was wild to be at home--to hear, to see, to be upon the spot to
9196 share with Jane in the cares that must now fall wholly upon her, in a
9197 family so deranged, a father absent, a mother incapable of exertion, and
9198 requiring constant attendance; and though almost persuaded that nothing
9199 could be done for Lydia, her uncle's interference seemed of the utmost
9200 importance, and till he entered the room her impatience was severe. Mr.
9201 and Mrs. Gardiner had hurried back in alarm, supposing by the servant's
9202 account that their niece was taken suddenly ill; but satisfying them
9203 instantly on that head, she eagerly communicated the cause of their
9204 summons, reading the two letters aloud, and dwelling on the postscript
9205 of the last with trembling energy.--Though Lydia had never been a
9206 favourite with them, Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner could not but be deeply
9207 afflicted. Not Lydia only, but all were concerned in it; and after the
9208 first exclamations of surprise and horror, Mr. Gardiner promised every
9209 assistance in his power. Elizabeth, though expecting no less, thanked
9210 him with tears of gratitude; and all three being actuated by one spirit,
9211 everything relating to their journey was speedily settled. They were to
9212 be off as soon as possible. "But what is to be done about Pemberley?"
9213 cried Mrs. Gardiner. "John told us Mr. Darcy was here when you sent for
9214 us; was it so?"
9215
9216 "Yes; and I told him we should not be able to keep our engagement.
9217 _That_ is all settled."
9218
9219 "What is all settled?" repeated the other, as she ran into her room to
9220 prepare. "And are they upon such terms as for her to disclose the real
9221 truth? Oh, that I knew how it was!"
9222
9223 But wishes were vain, or at least could only serve to amuse her in the
9224 hurry and confusion of the following hour. Had Elizabeth been at leisure
9225 to be idle, she would have remained certain that all employment was
9226 impossible to one so wretched as herself; but she had her share of
9227 business as well as her aunt, and amongst the rest there were notes to
9228 be written to all their friends at Lambton, with false excuses for their
9229 sudden departure. An hour, however, saw the whole completed; and Mr.
9230 Gardiner meanwhile having settled his account at the inn, nothing
9231 remained to be done but to go; and Elizabeth, after all the misery of
9232 the morning, found herself, in a shorter space of time than she could
9233 have supposed, seated in the carriage, and on the road to Longbourn.
9234
9235
9236
9237 Chapter 47
9238
9239
9240 "I have been thinking it over again, Elizabeth," said her uncle, as they
9241 drove from the town; "and really, upon serious consideration, I am much
9242 more inclined than I was to judge as your eldest sister does on the
9243 matter. It appears to me so very unlikely that any young man should
9244 form such a design against a girl who is by no means unprotected or
9245 friendless, and who was actually staying in his colonel's family, that I
9246 am strongly inclined to hope the best. Could he expect that her friends
9247 would not step forward? Could he expect to be noticed again by the
9248 regiment, after such an affront to Colonel Forster? His temptation is
9249 not adequate to the risk!"
9250
9251 "Do you really think so?" cried Elizabeth, brightening up for a moment.
9252
9253 "Upon my word," said Mrs. Gardiner, "I begin to be of your uncle's
9254 opinion. It is really too great a violation of decency, honour, and
9255 interest, for him to be guilty of. I cannot think so very ill of
9256 Wickham. Can you yourself, Lizzy, so wholly give him up, as to believe
9257 him capable of it?"
9258
9259 "Not, perhaps, of neglecting his own interest; but of every other
9260 neglect I can believe him capable. If, indeed, it should be so! But I
9261 dare not hope it. Why should they not go on to Scotland if that had been
9262 the case?"
9263
9264 "In the first place," replied Mr. Gardiner, "there is no absolute proof
9265 that they are not gone to Scotland."
9266
9267 "Oh! but their removing from the chaise into a hackney coach is such
9268 a presumption! And, besides, no traces of them were to be found on the
9269 Barnet road."
9270
9271 "Well, then--supposing them to be in London. They may be there, though
9272 for the purpose of concealment, for no more exceptional purpose. It is
9273 not likely that money should be very abundant on either side; and it
9274 might strike them that they could be more economically, though less
9275 expeditiously, married in London than in Scotland."
9276
9277 "But why all this secrecy? Why any fear of detection? Why must their
9278 marriage be private? Oh, no, no--this is not likely. His most particular
9279 friend, you see by Jane's account, was persuaded of his never intending
9280 to marry her. Wickham will never marry a woman without some money. He
9281 cannot afford it. And what claims has Lydia--what attraction has she
9282 beyond youth, health, and good humour that could make him, for her sake,
9283 forego every chance of benefiting himself by marrying well? As to what
9284 restraint the apprehensions of disgrace in the corps might throw on a
9285 dishonourable elopement with her, I am not able to judge; for I know
9286 nothing of the effects that such a step might produce. But as to your
9287 other objection, I am afraid it will hardly hold good. Lydia has
9288 no brothers to step forward; and he might imagine, from my father's
9289 behaviour, from his indolence and the little attention he has ever
9290 seemed to give to what was going forward in his family, that _he_ would
9291 do as little, and think as little about it, as any father could do, in
9292 such a matter."
9293
9294 "But can you think that Lydia is so lost to everything but love of him
9295 as to consent to live with him on any terms other than marriage?"
9296
9297 "It does seem, and it is most shocking indeed," replied Elizabeth, with
9298 tears in her eyes, "that a sister's sense of decency and virtue in such
9299 a point should admit of doubt. But, really, I know not what to say.
9300 Perhaps I am not doing her justice. But she is very young; she has never
9301 been taught to think on serious subjects; and for the last half-year,
9302 nay, for a twelvemonth--she has been given up to nothing but amusement
9303 and vanity. She has been allowed to dispose of her time in the most idle
9304 and frivolous manner, and to adopt any opinions that came in her way.
9305 Since the ----shire were first quartered in Meryton, nothing but love,
9306 flirtation, and officers have been in her head. She has been doing
9307 everything in her power by thinking and talking on the subject, to give
9308 greater--what shall I call it? susceptibility to her feelings; which are
9309 naturally lively enough. And we all know that Wickham has every charm of
9310 person and address that can captivate a woman."
9311
9312 "But you see that Jane," said her aunt, "does not think so very ill of
9313 Wickham as to believe him capable of the attempt."
9314
9315 "Of whom does Jane ever think ill? And who is there, whatever might be
9316 their former conduct, that she would think capable of such an attempt,
9317 till it were proved against them? But Jane knows, as well as I do, what
9318 Wickham really is. We both know that he has been profligate in every
9319 sense of the word; that he has neither integrity nor honour; that he is
9320 as false and deceitful as he is insinuating."
9321
9322 "And do you really know all this?" cried Mrs. Gardiner, whose curiosity
9323 as to the mode of her intelligence was all alive.
9324
9325 "I do indeed," replied Elizabeth, colouring. "I told you, the other day,
9326 of his infamous behaviour to Mr. Darcy; and you yourself, when last at
9327 Longbourn, heard in what manner he spoke of the man who had behaved
9328 with such forbearance and liberality towards him. And there are other
9329 circumstances which I am not at liberty--which it is not worth while to
9330 relate; but his lies about the whole Pemberley family are endless. From
9331 what he said of Miss Darcy I was thoroughly prepared to see a proud,
9332 reserved, disagreeable girl. Yet he knew to the contrary himself. He
9333 must know that she was as amiable and unpretending as we have found
9334 her."
9335
9336 "But does Lydia know nothing of this? can she be ignorant of what you
9337 and Jane seem so well to understand?"
9338
9339 "Oh, yes!--that, that is the worst of all. Till I was in Kent, and saw
9340 so much both of Mr. Darcy and his relation Colonel Fitzwilliam, I was
9341 ignorant of the truth myself. And when I returned home, the ----shire
9342 was to leave Meryton in a week or fortnight's time. As that was the
9343 case, neither Jane, to whom I related the whole, nor I, thought it
9344 necessary to make our knowledge public; for of what use could
9345 it apparently be to any one, that the good opinion which all the
9346 neighbourhood had of him should then be overthrown? And even when it was
9347 settled that Lydia should go with Mrs. Forster, the necessity of opening
9348 her eyes to his character never occurred to me. That _she_ could be
9349 in any danger from the deception never entered my head. That such a
9350 consequence as _this_ could ensue, you may easily believe, was far
9351 enough from my thoughts."
9352
9353 "When they all removed to Brighton, therefore, you had no reason, I
9354 suppose, to believe them fond of each other?"
9355
9356 "Not the slightest. I can remember no symptom of affection on either
9357 side; and had anything of the kind been perceptible, you must be aware
9358 that ours is not a family on which it could be thrown away. When first
9359 he entered the corps, she was ready enough to admire him; but so we all
9360 were. Every girl in or near Meryton was out of her senses about him for
9361 the first two months; but he never distinguished _her_ by any particular
9362 attention; and, consequently, after a moderate period of extravagant and
9363 wild admiration, her fancy for him gave way, and others of the regiment,
9364 who treated her with more distinction, again became her favourites."
9365
9366 * * * * *
9367
9368 It may be easily believed, that however little of novelty could be added
9369 to their fears, hopes, and conjectures, on this interesting subject, by
9370 its repeated discussion, no other could detain them from it long, during
9371 the whole of the journey. From Elizabeth's thoughts it was never absent.
9372 Fixed there by the keenest of all anguish, self-reproach, she could find
9373 no interval of ease or forgetfulness.
9374
9375 They travelled as expeditiously as possible, and, sleeping one night
9376 on the road, reached Longbourn by dinner time the next day. It was a
9377 comfort to Elizabeth to consider that Jane could not have been wearied
9378 by long expectations.
9379
9380 The little Gardiners, attracted by the sight of a chaise, were standing
9381 on the steps of the house as they entered the paddock; and, when the
9382 carriage drove up to the door, the joyful surprise that lighted up their
9383 faces, and displayed itself over their whole bodies, in a variety of
9384 capers and frisks, was the first pleasing earnest of their welcome.
9385
9386 Elizabeth jumped out; and, after giving each of them a hasty kiss,
9387 hurried into the vestibule, where Jane, who came running down from her
9388 mother's apartment, immediately met her.
9389
9390 Elizabeth, as she affectionately embraced her, whilst tears filled the
9391 eyes of both, lost not a moment in asking whether anything had been
9392 heard of the fugitives.
9393
9394 "Not yet," replied Jane. "But now that my dear uncle is come, I hope
9395 everything will be well."
9396
9397 "Is my father in town?"
9398
9399 "Yes, he went on Tuesday, as I wrote you word."
9400
9401 "And have you heard from him often?"
9402
9403 "We have heard only twice. He wrote me a few lines on Wednesday to say
9404 that he had arrived in safety, and to give me his directions, which I
9405 particularly begged him to do. He merely added that he should not write
9406 again till he had something of importance to mention."
9407
9408 "And my mother--how is she? How are you all?"
9409
9410 "My mother is tolerably well, I trust; though her spirits are greatly
9411 shaken. She is up stairs and will have great satisfaction in seeing you
9412 all. She does not yet leave her dressing-room. Mary and Kitty, thank
9413 Heaven, are quite well."
9414
9415 "But you--how are you?" cried Elizabeth. "You look pale. How much you
9416 must have gone through!"
9417
9418 Her sister, however, assured her of her being perfectly well; and their
9419 conversation, which had been passing while Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner were
9420 engaged with their children, was now put an end to by the approach
9421 of the whole party. Jane ran to her uncle and aunt, and welcomed and
9422 thanked them both, with alternate smiles and tears.
9423
9424 When they were all in the drawing-room, the questions which Elizabeth
9425 had already asked were of course repeated by the others, and they soon
9426 found that Jane had no intelligence to give. The sanguine hope of
9427 good, however, which the benevolence of her heart suggested had not yet
9428 deserted her; she still expected that it would all end well, and that
9429 every morning would bring some letter, either from Lydia or her father,
9430 to explain their proceedings, and, perhaps, announce their marriage.
9431
9432 Mrs. Bennet, to whose apartment they all repaired, after a few minutes'
9433 conversation together, received them exactly as might be expected; with
9434 tears and lamentations of regret, invectives against the villainous
9435 conduct of Wickham, and complaints of her own sufferings and ill-usage;
9436 blaming everybody but the person to whose ill-judging indulgence the
9437 errors of her daughter must principally be owing.
9438
9439 "If I had been able," said she, "to carry my point in going to Brighton,
9440 with all my family, _this_ would not have happened; but poor dear Lydia
9441 had nobody to take care of her. Why did the Forsters ever let her go out
9442 of their sight? I am sure there was some great neglect or other on their
9443 side, for she is not the kind of girl to do such a thing if she had been
9444 well looked after. I always thought they were very unfit to have the
9445 charge of her; but I was overruled, as I always am. Poor dear child!
9446 And now here's Mr. Bennet gone away, and I know he will fight Wickham,
9447 wherever he meets him and then he will be killed, and what is to become
9448 of us all? The Collinses will turn us out before he is cold in his
9449 grave, and if you are not kind to us, brother, I do not know what we
9450 shall do."
9451
9452 They all exclaimed against such terrific ideas; and Mr. Gardiner, after
9453 general assurances of his affection for her and all her family, told her
9454 that he meant to be in London the very next day, and would assist Mr.
9455 Bennet in every endeavour for recovering Lydia.
9456
9457 "Do not give way to useless alarm," added he; "though it is right to be
9458 prepared for the worst, there is no occasion to look on it as certain.
9459 It is not quite a week since they left Brighton. In a few days more we
9460 may gain some news of them; and till we know that they are not married,
9461 and have no design of marrying, do not let us give the matter over as
9462 lost. As soon as I get to town I shall go to my brother, and make
9463 him come home with me to Gracechurch Street; and then we may consult
9464 together as to what is to be done."
9465
9466 "Oh! my dear brother," replied Mrs. Bennet, "that is exactly what I
9467 could most wish for. And now do, when you get to town, find them out,
9468 wherever they may be; and if they are not married already, _make_ them
9469 marry. And as for wedding clothes, do not let them wait for that, but
9470 tell Lydia she shall have as much money as she chooses to buy them,
9471 after they are married. And, above all, keep Mr. Bennet from fighting.
9472 Tell him what a dreadful state I am in, that I am frighted out of my
9473 wits--and have such tremblings, such flutterings, all over me--such
9474 spasms in my side and pains in my head, and such beatings at heart, that
9475 I can get no rest by night nor by day. And tell my dear Lydia not to
9476 give any directions about her clothes till she has seen me, for she does
9477 not know which are the best warehouses. Oh, brother, how kind you are! I
9478 know you will contrive it all."
9479
9480 But Mr. Gardiner, though he assured her again of his earnest endeavours
9481 in the cause, could not avoid recommending moderation to her, as well
9482 in her hopes as her fear; and after talking with her in this manner till
9483 dinner was on the table, they all left her to vent all her feelings on
9484 the housekeeper, who attended in the absence of her daughters.
9485
9486 Though her brother and sister were persuaded that there was no real
9487 occasion for such a seclusion from the family, they did not attempt to
9488 oppose it, for they knew that she had not prudence enough to hold her
9489 tongue before the servants, while they waited at table, and judged it
9490 better that _one_ only of the household, and the one whom they could
9491 most trust should comprehend all her fears and solicitude on the
9492 subject.
9493
9494 In the dining-room they were soon joined by Mary and Kitty, who had been
9495 too busily engaged in their separate apartments to make their appearance
9496 before. One came from her books, and the other from her toilette. The
9497 faces of both, however, were tolerably calm; and no change was visible
9498 in either, except that the loss of her favourite sister, or the anger
9499 which she had herself incurred in this business, had given more of
9500 fretfulness than usual to the accents of Kitty. As for Mary, she was
9501 mistress enough of herself to whisper to Elizabeth, with a countenance
9502 of grave reflection, soon after they were seated at table:
9503
9504 "This is a most unfortunate affair, and will probably be much talked of.
9505 But we must stem the tide of malice, and pour into the wounded bosoms of
9506 each other the balm of sisterly consolation."
9507
9508 Then, perceiving in Elizabeth no inclination of replying, she added,
9509 "Unhappy as the event must be for Lydia, we may draw from it this useful
9510 lesson: that loss of virtue in a female is irretrievable; that one
9511 false step involves her in endless ruin; that her reputation is no less
9512 brittle than it is beautiful; and that she cannot be too much guarded in
9513 her behaviour towards the undeserving of the other sex."
9514
9515 Elizabeth lifted up her eyes in amazement, but was too much oppressed
9516 to make any reply. Mary, however, continued to console herself with such
9517 kind of moral extractions from the evil before them.
9518
9519 In the afternoon, the two elder Miss Bennets were able to be for
9520 half-an-hour by themselves; and Elizabeth instantly availed herself of
9521 the opportunity of making any inquiries, which Jane was equally eager to
9522 satisfy. After joining in general lamentations over the dreadful sequel
9523 of this event, which Elizabeth considered as all but certain, and Miss
9524 Bennet could not assert to be wholly impossible, the former continued
9525 the subject, by saying, "But tell me all and everything about it which
9526 I have not already heard. Give me further particulars. What did Colonel
9527 Forster say? Had they no apprehension of anything before the elopement
9528 took place? They must have seen them together for ever."
9529
9530 "Colonel Forster did own that he had often suspected some partiality,
9531 especially on Lydia's side, but nothing to give him any alarm. I am so
9532 grieved for him! His behaviour was attentive and kind to the utmost. He
9533 _was_ coming to us, in order to assure us of his concern, before he had
9534 any idea of their not being gone to Scotland: when that apprehension
9535 first got abroad, it hastened his journey."
9536
9537 "And was Denny convinced that Wickham would not marry? Did he know of
9538 their intending to go off? Had Colonel Forster seen Denny himself?"
9539
9540 "Yes; but, when questioned by _him_, Denny denied knowing anything of
9541 their plans, and would not give his real opinion about it. He did not
9542 repeat his persuasion of their not marrying--and from _that_, I am
9543 inclined to hope, he might have been misunderstood before."
9544
9545 "And till Colonel Forster came himself, not one of you entertained a
9546 doubt, I suppose, of their being really married?"
9547
9548 "How was it possible that such an idea should enter our brains? I felt
9549 a little uneasy--a little fearful of my sister's happiness with him
9550 in marriage, because I knew that his conduct had not been always quite
9551 right. My father and mother knew nothing of that; they only felt how
9552 imprudent a match it must be. Kitty then owned, with a very natural
9553 triumph on knowing more than the rest of us, that in Lydia's last letter
9554 she had prepared her for such a step. She had known, it seems, of their
9555 being in love with each other, many weeks."
9556
9557 "But not before they went to Brighton?"
9558
9559 "No, I believe not."
9560
9561 "And did Colonel Forster appear to think well of Wickham himself? Does
9562 he know his real character?"
9563
9564 "I must confess that he did not speak so well of Wickham as he formerly
9565 did. He believed him to be imprudent and extravagant. And since this sad
9566 affair has taken place, it is said that he left Meryton greatly in debt;
9567 but I hope this may be false."
9568
9569 "Oh, Jane, had we been less secret, had we told what we knew of him,
9570 this could not have happened!"
9571
9572 "Perhaps it would have been better," replied her sister. "But to expose
9573 the former faults of any person without knowing what their present
9574 feelings were, seemed unjustifiable. We acted with the best intentions."
9575
9576 "Could Colonel Forster repeat the particulars of Lydia's note to his
9577 wife?"
9578
9579 "He brought it with him for us to see."
9580
9581 Jane then took it from her pocket-book, and gave it to Elizabeth. These
9582 were the contents:
9583
9584 "MY DEAR HARRIET,
9585
9586 "You will laugh when you know where I am gone, and I cannot help
9587 laughing myself at your surprise to-morrow morning, as soon as I am
9588 missed. I am going to Gretna Green, and if you cannot guess with who,
9589 I shall think you a simpleton, for there is but one man in the world I
9590 love, and he is an angel. I should never be happy without him, so think
9591 it no harm to be off. You need not send them word at Longbourn of my
9592 going, if you do not like it, for it will make the surprise the greater,
9593 when I write to them and sign my name 'Lydia Wickham.' What a good joke
9594 it will be! I can hardly write for laughing. Pray make my excuses to
9595 Pratt for not keeping my engagement, and dancing with him to-night.
9596 Tell him I hope he will excuse me when he knows all; and tell him I will
9597 dance with him at the next ball we meet, with great pleasure. I shall
9598 send for my clothes when I get to Longbourn; but I wish you would tell
9599 Sally to mend a great slit in my worked muslin gown before they are
9600 packed up. Good-bye. Give my love to Colonel Forster. I hope you will
9601 drink to our good journey.
9602
9603 "Your affectionate friend,
9604
9605 "LYDIA BENNET."
9606
9607 "Oh! thoughtless, thoughtless Lydia!" cried Elizabeth when she had
9608 finished it. "What a letter is this, to be written at such a moment!
9609 But at least it shows that _she_ was serious on the subject of their
9610 journey. Whatever he might afterwards persuade her to, it was not on her
9611 side a _scheme_ of infamy. My poor father! how he must have felt it!"
9612
9613 "I never saw anyone so shocked. He could not speak a word for full ten
9614 minutes. My mother was taken ill immediately, and the whole house in
9615 such confusion!"
9616
9617 "Oh! Jane," cried Elizabeth, "was there a servant belonging to it who
9618 did not know the whole story before the end of the day?"
9619
9620 "I do not know. I hope there was. But to be guarded at such a time is
9621 very difficult. My mother was in hysterics, and though I endeavoured to
9622 give her every assistance in my power, I am afraid I did not do so
9623 much as I might have done! But the horror of what might possibly happen
9624 almost took from me my faculties."
9625
9626 "Your attendance upon her has been too much for you. You do not look
9627 well. Oh that I had been with you! you have had every care and anxiety
9628 upon yourself alone."
9629
9630 "Mary and Kitty have been very kind, and would have shared in every
9631 fatigue, I am sure; but I did not think it right for either of them.
9632 Kitty is slight and delicate; and Mary studies so much, that her hours
9633 of repose should not be broken in on. My aunt Phillips came to Longbourn
9634 on Tuesday, after my father went away; and was so good as to stay till
9635 Thursday with me. She was of great use and comfort to us all. And
9636 Lady Lucas has been very kind; she walked here on Wednesday morning to
9637 condole with us, and offered her services, or any of her daughters', if
9638 they should be of use to us."
9639
9640 "She had better have stayed at home," cried Elizabeth; "perhaps she
9641 _meant_ well, but, under such a misfortune as this, one cannot see
9642 too little of one's neighbours. Assistance is impossible; condolence
9643 insufferable. Let them triumph over us at a distance, and be satisfied."
9644
9645 She then proceeded to inquire into the measures which her father had
9646 intended to pursue, while in town, for the recovery of his daughter.
9647
9648 "He meant I believe," replied Jane, "to go to Epsom, the place where
9649 they last changed horses, see the postilions and try if anything could
9650 be made out from them. His principal object must be to discover the
9651 number of the hackney coach which took them from Clapham. It had come
9652 with a fare from London; and as he thought that the circumstance of a
9653 gentleman and lady's removing from one carriage into another might
9654 be remarked he meant to make inquiries at Clapham. If he could anyhow
9655 discover at what house the coachman had before set down his fare, he
9656 determined to make inquiries there, and hoped it might not be impossible
9657 to find out the stand and number of the coach. I do not know of any
9658 other designs that he had formed; but he was in such a hurry to be gone,
9659 and his spirits so greatly discomposed, that I had difficulty in finding
9660 out even so much as this."
9661
9662
9663
9664 Chapter 48
9665
9666
9667 The whole party were in hopes of a letter from Mr. Bennet the next
9668 morning, but the post came in without bringing a single line from him.
9669 His family knew him to be, on all common occasions, a most negligent and
9670 dilatory correspondent; but at such a time they had hoped for exertion.
9671 They were forced to conclude that he had no pleasing intelligence to
9672 send; but even of _that_ they would have been glad to be certain. Mr.
9673 Gardiner had waited only for the letters before he set off.
9674
9675 When he was gone, they were certain at least of receiving constant
9676 information of what was going on, and their uncle promised, at parting,
9677 to prevail on Mr. Bennet to return to Longbourn, as soon as he could,
9678 to the great consolation of his sister, who considered it as the only
9679 security for her husband's not being killed in a duel.
9680
9681 Mrs. Gardiner and the children were to remain in Hertfordshire a few
9682 days longer, as the former thought her presence might be serviceable
9683 to her nieces. She shared in their attendance on Mrs. Bennet, and was a
9684 great comfort to them in their hours of freedom. Their other aunt also
9685 visited them frequently, and always, as she said, with the design of
9686 cheering and heartening them up--though, as she never came without
9687 reporting some fresh instance of Wickham's extravagance or irregularity,
9688 she seldom went away without leaving them more dispirited than she found
9689 them.
9690
9691 All Meryton seemed striving to blacken the man who, but three months
9692 before, had been almost an angel of light. He was declared to be in debt
9693 to every tradesman in the place, and his intrigues, all honoured with
9694 the title of seduction, had been extended into every tradesman's family.
9695 Everybody declared that he was the wickedest young man in the world;
9696 and everybody began to find out that they had always distrusted the
9697 appearance of his goodness. Elizabeth, though she did not credit above
9698 half of what was said, believed enough to make her former assurance of
9699 her sister's ruin more certain; and even Jane, who believed still less
9700 of it, became almost hopeless, more especially as the time was now come
9701 when, if they had gone to Scotland, which she had never before entirely
9702 despaired of, they must in all probability have gained some news of
9703 them.
9704
9705 Mr. Gardiner left Longbourn on Sunday; on Tuesday his wife received a
9706 letter from him; it told them that, on his arrival, he had immediately
9707 found out his brother, and persuaded him to come to Gracechurch Street;
9708 that Mr. Bennet had been to Epsom and Clapham, before his arrival,
9709 but without gaining any satisfactory information; and that he was now
9710 determined to inquire at all the principal hotels in town, as Mr. Bennet
9711 thought it possible they might have gone to one of them, on their first
9712 coming to London, before they procured lodgings. Mr. Gardiner himself
9713 did not expect any success from this measure, but as his brother was
9714 eager in it, he meant to assist him in pursuing it. He added that Mr.
9715 Bennet seemed wholly disinclined at present to leave London and promised
9716 to write again very soon. There was also a postscript to this effect:
9717
9718 "I have written to Colonel Forster to desire him to find out, if
9719 possible, from some of the young man's intimates in the regiment,
9720 whether Wickham has any relations or connections who would be likely to
9721 know in what part of town he has now concealed himself. If there were
9722 anyone that one could apply to with a probability of gaining such a
9723 clue as that, it might be of essential consequence. At present we have
9724 nothing to guide us. Colonel Forster will, I dare say, do everything in
9725 his power to satisfy us on this head. But, on second thoughts, perhaps,
9726 Lizzy could tell us what relations he has now living, better than any
9727 other person."
9728
9729 Elizabeth was at no loss to understand from whence this deference to her
9730 authority proceeded; but it was not in her power to give any information
9731 of so satisfactory a nature as the compliment deserved. She had never
9732 heard of his having had any relations, except a father and mother, both
9733 of whom had been dead many years. It was possible, however, that some of
9734 his companions in the ----shire might be able to give more information;
9735 and though she was not very sanguine in expecting it, the application
9736 was a something to look forward to.
9737
9738 Every day at Longbourn was now a day of anxiety; but the most anxious
9739 part of each was when the post was expected. The arrival of letters
9740 was the grand object of every morning's impatience. Through letters,
9741 whatever of good or bad was to be told would be communicated, and every
9742 succeeding day was expected to bring some news of importance.
9743
9744 But before they heard again from Mr. Gardiner, a letter arrived for
9745 their father, from a different quarter, from Mr. Collins; which, as Jane
9746 had received directions to open all that came for him in his absence,
9747 she accordingly read; and Elizabeth, who knew what curiosities his
9748 letters always were, looked over her, and read it likewise. It was as
9749 follows:
9750
9751 "MY DEAR SIR,
9752
9753 "I feel myself called upon, by our relationship, and my situation
9754 in life, to condole with you on the grievous affliction you are now
9755 suffering under, of which we were yesterday informed by a letter from
9756 Hertfordshire. Be assured, my dear sir, that Mrs. Collins and myself
9757 sincerely sympathise with you and all your respectable family, in
9758 your present distress, which must be of the bitterest kind, because
9759 proceeding from a cause which no time can remove. No arguments shall be
9760 wanting on my part that can alleviate so severe a misfortune--or that
9761 may comfort you, under a circumstance that must be of all others the
9762 most afflicting to a parent's mind. The death of your daughter would
9763 have been a blessing in comparison of this. And it is the more to
9764 be lamented, because there is reason to suppose as my dear Charlotte
9765 informs me, that this licentiousness of behaviour in your daughter has
9766 proceeded from a faulty degree of indulgence; though, at the same time,
9767 for the consolation of yourself and Mrs. Bennet, I am inclined to think
9768 that her own disposition must be naturally bad, or she could not be
9769 guilty of such an enormity, at so early an age. Howsoever that may be,
9770 you are grievously to be pitied; in which opinion I am not only joined
9771 by Mrs. Collins, but likewise by Lady Catherine and her daughter, to
9772 whom I have related the affair. They agree with me in apprehending that
9773 this false step in one daughter will be injurious to the fortunes of
9774 all the others; for who, as Lady Catherine herself condescendingly says,
9775 will connect themselves with such a family? And this consideration leads
9776 me moreover to reflect, with augmented satisfaction, on a certain event
9777 of last November; for had it been otherwise, I must have been involved
9778 in all your sorrow and disgrace. Let me then advise you, dear sir, to
9779 console yourself as much as possible, to throw off your unworthy child
9780 from your affection for ever, and leave her to reap the fruits of her
9781 own heinous offense.
9782
9783 "I am, dear sir, etc., etc."
9784
9785 Mr. Gardiner did not write again till he had received an answer from
9786 Colonel Forster; and then he had nothing of a pleasant nature to send.
9787 It was not known that Wickham had a single relationship with whom he
9788 kept up any connection, and it was certain that he had no near one
9789 living. His former acquaintances had been numerous; but since he
9790 had been in the militia, it did not appear that he was on terms of
9791 particular friendship with any of them. There was no one, therefore,
9792 who could be pointed out as likely to give any news of him. And in the
9793 wretched state of his own finances, there was a very powerful motive for
9794 secrecy, in addition to his fear of discovery by Lydia's relations, for
9795 it had just transpired that he had left gaming debts behind him to a
9796 very considerable amount. Colonel Forster believed that more than a
9797 thousand pounds would be necessary to clear his expenses at Brighton.
9798 He owed a good deal in town, but his debts of honour were still more
9799 formidable. Mr. Gardiner did not attempt to conceal these particulars
9800 from the Longbourn family. Jane heard them with horror. "A gamester!"
9801 she cried. "This is wholly unexpected. I had not an idea of it."
9802
9803 Mr. Gardiner added in his letter, that they might expect to see their
9804 father at home on the following day, which was Saturday. Rendered
9805 spiritless by the ill-success of all their endeavours, he had yielded
9806 to his brother-in-law's entreaty that he would return to his family, and
9807 leave it to him to do whatever occasion might suggest to be advisable
9808 for continuing their pursuit. When Mrs. Bennet was told of this, she did
9809 not express so much satisfaction as her children expected, considering
9810 what her anxiety for his life had been before.
9811
9812 "What, is he coming home, and without poor Lydia?" she cried. "Sure he
9813 will not leave London before he has found them. Who is to fight Wickham,
9814 and make him marry her, if he comes away?"
9815
9816 As Mrs. Gardiner began to wish to be at home, it was settled that she
9817 and the children should go to London, at the same time that Mr. Bennet
9818 came from it. The coach, therefore, took them the first stage of their
9819 journey, and brought its master back to Longbourn.
9820
9821 Mrs. Gardiner went away in all the perplexity about Elizabeth and her
9822 Derbyshire friend that had attended her from that part of the world. His
9823 name had never been voluntarily mentioned before them by her niece; and
9824 the kind of half-expectation which Mrs. Gardiner had formed, of their
9825 being followed by a letter from him, had ended in nothing. Elizabeth had
9826 received none since her return that could come from Pemberley.
9827
9828 The present unhappy state of the family rendered any other excuse for
9829 the lowness of her spirits unnecessary; nothing, therefore, could be
9830 fairly conjectured from _that_, though Elizabeth, who was by this time
9831 tolerably well acquainted with her own feelings, was perfectly aware
9832 that, had she known nothing of Darcy, she could have borne the dread of
9833 Lydia's infamy somewhat better. It would have spared her, she thought,
9834 one sleepless night out of two.
9835
9836 When Mr. Bennet arrived, he had all the appearance of his usual
9837 philosophic composure. He said as little as he had ever been in the
9838 habit of saying; made no mention of the business that had taken him
9839 away, and it was some time before his daughters had courage to speak of
9840 it.
9841
9842 It was not till the afternoon, when he had joined them at tea, that
9843 Elizabeth ventured to introduce the subject; and then, on her briefly
9844 expressing her sorrow for what he must have endured, he replied, "Say
9845 nothing of that. Who should suffer but myself? It has been my own doing,
9846 and I ought to feel it."
9847
9848 "You must not be too severe upon yourself," replied Elizabeth.
9849
9850 "You may well warn me against such an evil. Human nature is so prone
9851 to fall into it! No, Lizzy, let me once in my life feel how much I have
9852 been to blame. I am not afraid of being overpowered by the impression.
9853 It will pass away soon enough."
9854
9855 "Do you suppose them to be in London?"
9856
9857 "Yes; where else can they be so well concealed?"
9858
9859 "And Lydia used to want to go to London," added Kitty.
9860
9861 "She is happy then," said her father drily; "and her residence there
9862 will probably be of some duration."
9863
9864 Then after a short silence he continued:
9865
9866 "Lizzy, I bear you no ill-will for being justified in your advice to me
9867 last May, which, considering the event, shows some greatness of mind."
9868
9869 They were interrupted by Miss Bennet, who came to fetch her mother's
9870 tea.
9871
9872 "This is a parade," he cried, "which does one good; it gives such an
9873 elegance to misfortune! Another day I will do the same; I will sit in my
9874 library, in my nightcap and powdering gown, and give as much trouble as
9875 I can; or, perhaps, I may defer it till Kitty runs away."
9876
9877 "I am not going to run away, papa," said Kitty fretfully. "If I should
9878 ever go to Brighton, I would behave better than Lydia."
9879
9880 "_You_ go to Brighton. I would not trust you so near it as Eastbourne
9881 for fifty pounds! No, Kitty, I have at last learnt to be cautious, and
9882 you will feel the effects of it. No officer is ever to enter into
9883 my house again, nor even to pass through the village. Balls will be
9884 absolutely prohibited, unless you stand up with one of your sisters.
9885 And you are never to stir out of doors till you can prove that you have
9886 spent ten minutes of every day in a rational manner."
9887
9888 Kitty, who took all these threats in a serious light, began to cry.
9889
9890 "Well, well," said he, "do not make yourself unhappy. If you are a good
9891 girl for the next ten years, I will take you to a review at the end of
9892 them."
9893
9894
9895
9896 Chapter 49
9897
9898
9899 Two days after Mr. Bennet's return, as Jane and Elizabeth were walking
9900 together in the shrubbery behind the house, they saw the housekeeper
9901 coming towards them, and, concluding that she came to call them to their
9902 mother, went forward to meet her; but, instead of the expected summons,
9903 when they approached her, she said to Miss Bennet, "I beg your pardon,
9904 madam, for interrupting you, but I was in hopes you might have got some
9905 good news from town, so I took the liberty of coming to ask."
9906
9907 "What do you mean, Hill? We have heard nothing from town."
9908
9909 "Dear madam," cried Mrs. Hill, in great astonishment, "don't you know
9910 there is an express come for master from Mr. Gardiner? He has been here
9911 this half-hour, and master has had a letter."
9912
9913 Away ran the girls, too eager to get in to have time for speech. They
9914 ran through the vestibule into the breakfast-room; from thence to the
9915 library; their father was in neither; and they were on the point of
9916 seeking him up stairs with their mother, when they were met by the
9917 butler, who said:
9918
9919 "If you are looking for my master, ma'am, he is walking towards the
9920 little copse."
9921
9922 Upon this information, they instantly passed through the hall once
9923 more, and ran across the lawn after their father, who was deliberately
9924 pursuing his way towards a small wood on one side of the paddock.
9925
9926 Jane, who was not so light nor so much in the habit of running as
9927 Elizabeth, soon lagged behind, while her sister, panting for breath,
9928 came up with him, and eagerly cried out:
9929
9930 "Oh, papa, what news--what news? Have you heard from my uncle?"
9931
9932 "Yes I have had a letter from him by express."
9933
9934 "Well, and what news does it bring--good or bad?"
9935
9936 "What is there of good to be expected?" said he, taking the letter from
9937 his pocket. "But perhaps you would like to read it."
9938
9939 Elizabeth impatiently caught it from his hand. Jane now came up.
9940
9941 "Read it aloud," said their father, "for I hardly know myself what it is
9942 about."
9943
9944 "Gracechurch Street, Monday, August 2.
9945
9946 "MY DEAR BROTHER,
9947
9948 "At last I am able to send you some tidings of my niece, and such as,
9949 upon the whole, I hope it will give you satisfaction. Soon after you
9950 left me on Saturday, I was fortunate enough to find out in what part of
9951 London they were. The particulars I reserve till we meet; it is enough
9952 to know they are discovered. I have seen them both--"
9953
9954 "Then it is as I always hoped," cried Jane; "they are married!"
9955
9956 Elizabeth read on:
9957
9958 "I have seen them both. They are not married, nor can I find there
9959 was any intention of being so; but if you are willing to perform the
9960 engagements which I have ventured to make on your side, I hope it will
9961 not be long before they are. All that is required of you is, to assure
9962 to your daughter, by settlement, her equal share of the five thousand
9963 pounds secured among your children after the decease of yourself and
9964 my sister; and, moreover, to enter into an engagement of allowing her,
9965 during your life, one hundred pounds per annum. These are conditions
9966 which, considering everything, I had no hesitation in complying with,
9967 as far as I thought myself privileged, for you. I shall send this by
9968 express, that no time may be lost in bringing me your answer. You
9969 will easily comprehend, from these particulars, that Mr. Wickham's
9970 circumstances are not so hopeless as they are generally believed to be.
9971 The world has been deceived in that respect; and I am happy to say there
9972 will be some little money, even when all his debts are discharged, to
9973 settle on my niece, in addition to her own fortune. If, as I conclude
9974 will be the case, you send me full powers to act in your name throughout
9975 the whole of this business, I will immediately give directions to
9976 Haggerston for preparing a proper settlement. There will not be the
9977 smallest occasion for your coming to town again; therefore stay quiet at
9978 Longbourn, and depend on my diligence and care. Send back your answer as
9979 fast as you can, and be careful to write explicitly. We have judged it
9980 best that my niece should be married from this house, of which I hope
9981 you will approve. She comes to us to-day. I shall write again as soon as
9982 anything more is determined on. Yours, etc.,
9983
9984 "EDW. GARDINER."
9985
9986 "Is it possible?" cried Elizabeth, when she had finished. "Can it be
9987 possible that he will marry her?"
9988
9989 "Wickham is not so undeserving, then, as we thought him," said her
9990 sister. "My dear father, I congratulate you."
9991
9992 "And have you answered the letter?" cried Elizabeth.
9993
9994 "No; but it must be done soon."
9995
9996 Most earnestly did she then entreat him to lose no more time before he
9997 wrote.
9998
9999 "Oh! my dear father," she cried, "come back and write immediately.
10000 Consider how important every moment is in such a case."
10001
10002 "Let me write for you," said Jane, "if you dislike the trouble
10003 yourself."
10004
10005 "I dislike it very much," he replied; "but it must be done."
10006
10007 And so saying, he turned back with them, and walked towards the house.
10008
10009 "And may I ask--" said Elizabeth; "but the terms, I suppose, must be
10010 complied with."
10011
10012 "Complied with! I am only ashamed of his asking so little."
10013
10014 "And they _must_ marry! Yet he is _such_ a man!"
10015
10016 "Yes, yes, they must marry. There is nothing else to be done. But there
10017 are two things that I want very much to know; one is, how much money
10018 your uncle has laid down to bring it about; and the other, how am I ever
10019 to pay him."
10020
10021 "Money! My uncle!" cried Jane, "what do you mean, sir?"
10022
10023 "I mean, that no man in his senses would marry Lydia on so slight a
10024 temptation as one hundred a year during my life, and fifty after I am
10025 gone."
10026
10027 "That is very true," said Elizabeth; "though it had not occurred to me
10028 before. His debts to be discharged, and something still to remain! Oh!
10029 it must be my uncle's doings! Generous, good man, I am afraid he has
10030 distressed himself. A small sum could not do all this."
10031
10032 "No," said her father; "Wickham's a fool if he takes her with a farthing
10033 less than ten thousand pounds. I should be sorry to think so ill of him,
10034 in the very beginning of our relationship."
10035
10036 "Ten thousand pounds! Heaven forbid! How is half such a sum to be
10037 repaid?"
10038
10039 Mr. Bennet made no answer, and each of them, deep in thought, continued
10040 silent till they reached the house. Their father then went on to the
10041 library to write, and the girls walked into the breakfast-room.
10042
10043 "And they are really to be married!" cried Elizabeth, as soon as they
10044 were by themselves. "How strange this is! And for _this_ we are to be
10045 thankful. That they should marry, small as is their chance of happiness,
10046 and wretched as is his character, we are forced to rejoice. Oh, Lydia!"
10047
10048 "I comfort myself with thinking," replied Jane, "that he certainly would
10049 not marry Lydia if he had not a real regard for her. Though our kind
10050 uncle has done something towards clearing him, I cannot believe that ten
10051 thousand pounds, or anything like it, has been advanced. He has children
10052 of his own, and may have more. How could he spare half ten thousand
10053 pounds?"
10054
10055 "If he were ever able to learn what Wickham's debts have been," said
10056 Elizabeth, "and how much is settled on his side on our sister, we shall
10057 exactly know what Mr. Gardiner has done for them, because Wickham has
10058 not sixpence of his own. The kindness of my uncle and aunt can never
10059 be requited. Their taking her home, and affording her their personal
10060 protection and countenance, is such a sacrifice to her advantage as
10061 years of gratitude cannot enough acknowledge. By this time she is
10062 actually with them! If such goodness does not make her miserable now,
10063 she will never deserve to be happy! What a meeting for her, when she
10064 first sees my aunt!"
10065
10066 "We must endeavour to forget all that has passed on either side," said
10067 Jane: "I hope and trust they will yet be happy. His consenting to
10068 marry her is a proof, I will believe, that he is come to a right way of
10069 thinking. Their mutual affection will steady them; and I flatter myself
10070 they will settle so quietly, and live in so rational a manner, as may in
10071 time make their past imprudence forgotten."
10072
10073 "Their conduct has been such," replied Elizabeth, "as neither you, nor
10074 I, nor anybody can ever forget. It is useless to talk of it."
10075
10076 It now occurred to the girls that their mother was in all likelihood
10077 perfectly ignorant of what had happened. They went to the library,
10078 therefore, and asked their father whether he would not wish them to make
10079 it known to her. He was writing and, without raising his head, coolly
10080 replied:
10081
10082 "Just as you please."
10083
10084 "May we take my uncle's letter to read to her?"
10085
10086 "Take whatever you like, and get away."
10087
10088 Elizabeth took the letter from his writing-table, and they went up stairs
10089 together. Mary and Kitty were both with Mrs. Bennet: one communication
10090 would, therefore, do for all. After a slight preparation for good news,
10091 the letter was read aloud. Mrs. Bennet could hardly contain herself. As
10092 soon as Jane had read Mr. Gardiner's hope of Lydia's being soon
10093 married, her joy burst forth, and every following sentence added to its
10094 exuberance. She was now in an irritation as violent from delight, as she
10095 had ever been fidgety from alarm and vexation. To know that her daughter
10096 would be married was enough. She was disturbed by no fear for her
10097 felicity, nor humbled by any remembrance of her misconduct.
10098
10099 "My dear, dear Lydia!" she cried. "This is delightful indeed! She will
10100 be married! I shall see her again! She will be married at sixteen!
10101 My good, kind brother! I knew how it would be. I knew he would manage
10102 everything! How I long to see her! and to see dear Wickham too! But the
10103 clothes, the wedding clothes! I will write to my sister Gardiner about
10104 them directly. Lizzy, my dear, run down to your father, and ask him
10105 how much he will give her. Stay, stay, I will go myself. Ring the bell,
10106 Kitty, for Hill. I will put on my things in a moment. My dear, dear
10107 Lydia! How merry we shall be together when we meet!"
10108
10109 Her eldest daughter endeavoured to give some relief to the violence of
10110 these transports, by leading her thoughts to the obligations which Mr.
10111 Gardiner's behaviour laid them all under.
10112
10113 "For we must attribute this happy conclusion," she added, "in a great
10114 measure to his kindness. We are persuaded that he has pledged himself to
10115 assist Mr. Wickham with money."
10116
10117 "Well," cried her mother, "it is all very right; who should do it but
10118 her own uncle? If he had not had a family of his own, I and my children
10119 must have had all his money, you know; and it is the first time we have
10120 ever had anything from him, except a few presents. Well! I am so happy!
10121 In a short time I shall have a daughter married. Mrs. Wickham! How well
10122 it sounds! And she was only sixteen last June. My dear Jane, I am in
10123 such a flutter, that I am sure I can't write; so I will dictate, and
10124 you write for me. We will settle with your father about the money
10125 afterwards; but the things should be ordered immediately."
10126
10127 She was then proceeding to all the particulars of calico, muslin, and
10128 cambric, and would shortly have dictated some very plentiful orders, had
10129 not Jane, though with some difficulty, persuaded her to wait till her
10130 father was at leisure to be consulted. One day's delay, she observed,
10131 would be of small importance; and her mother was too happy to be quite
10132 so obstinate as usual. Other schemes, too, came into her head.
10133
10134 "I will go to Meryton," said she, "as soon as I am dressed, and tell the
10135 good, good news to my sister Philips. And as I come back, I can call
10136 on Lady Lucas and Mrs. Long. Kitty, run down and order the carriage.
10137 An airing would do me a great deal of good, I am sure. Girls, can I do
10138 anything for you in Meryton? Oh! Here comes Hill! My dear Hill, have you
10139 heard the good news? Miss Lydia is going to be married; and you shall
10140 all have a bowl of punch to make merry at her wedding."
10141
10142 Mrs. Hill began instantly to express her joy. Elizabeth received her
10143 congratulations amongst the rest, and then, sick of this folly, took
10144 refuge in her own room, that she might think with freedom.
10145
10146 Poor Lydia's situation must, at best, be bad enough; but that it was
10147 no worse, she had need to be thankful. She felt it so; and though, in
10148 looking forward, neither rational happiness nor worldly prosperity could
10149 be justly expected for her sister, in looking back to what they had
10150 feared, only two hours ago, she felt all the advantages of what they had
10151 gained.
10152
10153
10154
10155 Chapter 50
10156
10157
10158 Mr. Bennet had very often wished before this period of his life that,
10159 instead of spending his whole income, he had laid by an annual sum for
10160 the better provision of his children, and of his wife, if she survived
10161 him. He now wished it more than ever. Had he done his duty in that
10162 respect, Lydia need not have been indebted to her uncle for whatever
10163 of honour or credit could now be purchased for her. The satisfaction of
10164 prevailing on one of the most worthless young men in Great Britain to be
10165 her husband might then have rested in its proper place.
10166
10167 He was seriously concerned that a cause of so little advantage to anyone
10168 should be forwarded at the sole expense of his brother-in-law, and he
10169 was determined, if possible, to find out the extent of his assistance,
10170 and to discharge the obligation as soon as he could.
10171
10172 When first Mr. Bennet had married, economy was held to be perfectly
10173 useless, for, of course, they were to have a son. The son was to join
10174 in cutting off the entail, as soon as he should be of age, and the widow
10175 and younger children would by that means be provided for. Five daughters
10176 successively entered the world, but yet the son was to come; and Mrs.
10177 Bennet, for many years after Lydia's birth, had been certain that he
10178 would. This event had at last been despaired of, but it was then
10179 too late to be saving. Mrs. Bennet had no turn for economy, and her
10180 husband's love of independence had alone prevented their exceeding their
10181 income.
10182
10183 Five thousand pounds was settled by marriage articles on Mrs. Bennet and
10184 the children. But in what proportions it should be divided amongst the
10185 latter depended on the will of the parents. This was one point, with
10186 regard to Lydia, at least, which was now to be settled, and Mr. Bennet
10187 could have no hesitation in acceding to the proposal before him. In
10188 terms of grateful acknowledgment for the kindness of his brother,
10189 though expressed most concisely, he then delivered on paper his perfect
10190 approbation of all that was done, and his willingness to fulfil the
10191 engagements that had been made for him. He had never before supposed
10192 that, could Wickham be prevailed on to marry his daughter, it would
10193 be done with so little inconvenience to himself as by the present
10194 arrangement. He would scarcely be ten pounds a year the loser by the
10195 hundred that was to be paid them; for, what with her board and pocket
10196 allowance, and the continual presents in money which passed to her
10197 through her mother's hands, Lydia's expenses had been very little within
10198 that sum.
10199
10200 That it would be done with such trifling exertion on his side, too, was
10201 another very welcome surprise; for his wish at present was to have as
10202 little trouble in the business as possible. When the first transports
10203 of rage which had produced his activity in seeking her were over, he
10204 naturally returned to all his former indolence. His letter was soon
10205 dispatched; for, though dilatory in undertaking business, he was quick
10206 in its execution. He begged to know further particulars of what he
10207 was indebted to his brother, but was too angry with Lydia to send any
10208 message to her.
10209
10210 The good news spread quickly through the house, and with proportionate
10211 speed through the neighbourhood. It was borne in the latter with decent
10212 philosophy. To be sure, it would have been more for the advantage
10213 of conversation had Miss Lydia Bennet come upon the town; or, as the
10214 happiest alternative, been secluded from the world, in some distant
10215 farmhouse. But there was much to be talked of in marrying her; and the
10216 good-natured wishes for her well-doing which had proceeded before from
10217 all the spiteful old ladies in Meryton lost but a little of their spirit
10218 in this change of circumstances, because with such an husband her misery
10219 was considered certain.
10220
10221 It was a fortnight since Mrs. Bennet had been downstairs; but on this
10222 happy day she again took her seat at the head of her table, and in
10223 spirits oppressively high. No sentiment of shame gave a damp to her
10224 triumph. The marriage of a daughter, which had been the first object
10225 of her wishes since Jane was sixteen, was now on the point of
10226 accomplishment, and her thoughts and her words ran wholly on those
10227 attendants of elegant nuptials, fine muslins, new carriages, and
10228 servants. She was busily searching through the neighbourhood for a
10229 proper situation for her daughter, and, without knowing or considering
10230 what their income might be, rejected many as deficient in size and
10231 importance.
10232
10233 "Haye Park might do," said she, "if the Gouldings could quit it--or the
10234 great house at Stoke, if the drawing-room were larger; but Ashworth is
10235 too far off! I could not bear to have her ten miles from me; and as for
10236 Pulvis Lodge, the attics are dreadful."
10237
10238 Her husband allowed her to talk on without interruption while the
10239 servants remained. But when they had withdrawn, he said to her: "Mrs.
10240 Bennet, before you take any or all of these houses for your son and
10241 daughter, let us come to a right understanding. Into _one_ house in this
10242 neighbourhood they shall never have admittance. I will not encourage the
10243 impudence of either, by receiving them at Longbourn."
10244
10245 A long dispute followed this declaration; but Mr. Bennet was firm. It
10246 soon led to another; and Mrs. Bennet found, with amazement and horror,
10247 that her husband would not advance a guinea to buy clothes for his
10248 daughter. He protested that she should receive from him no mark of
10249 affection whatever on the occasion. Mrs. Bennet could hardly comprehend
10250 it. That his anger could be carried to such a point of inconceivable
10251 resentment as to refuse his daughter a privilege without which her
10252 marriage would scarcely seem valid, exceeded all she could believe
10253 possible. She was more alive to the disgrace which her want of new
10254 clothes must reflect on her daughter's nuptials, than to any sense of
10255 shame at her eloping and living with Wickham a fortnight before they
10256 took place.
10257
10258 Elizabeth was now most heartily sorry that she had, from the distress of
10259 the moment, been led to make Mr. Darcy acquainted with their fears for
10260 her sister; for since her marriage would so shortly give the
10261 proper termination to the elopement, they might hope to conceal its
10262 unfavourable beginning from all those who were not immediately on the
10263 spot.
10264
10265 She had no fear of its spreading farther through his means. There were
10266 few people on whose secrecy she would have more confidently depended;
10267 but, at the same time, there was no one whose knowledge of a sister's
10268 frailty would have mortified her so much--not, however, from any fear
10269 of disadvantage from it individually to herself, for, at any rate,
10270 there seemed a gulf impassable between them. Had Lydia's marriage been
10271 concluded on the most honourable terms, it was not to be supposed that
10272 Mr. Darcy would connect himself with a family where, to every other
10273 objection, would now be added an alliance and relationship of the
10274 nearest kind with a man whom he so justly scorned.
10275
10276 From such a connection she could not wonder that he would shrink. The
10277 wish of procuring her regard, which she had assured herself of his
10278 feeling in Derbyshire, could not in rational expectation survive such a
10279 blow as this. She was humbled, she was grieved; she repented, though she
10280 hardly knew of what. She became jealous of his esteem, when she could no
10281 longer hope to be benefited by it. She wanted to hear of him, when there
10282 seemed the least chance of gaining intelligence. She was convinced that
10283 she could have been happy with him, when it was no longer likely they
10284 should meet.
10285
10286 What a triumph for him, as she often thought, could he know that the
10287 proposals which she had proudly spurned only four months ago, would now
10288 have been most gladly and gratefully received! He was as generous, she
10289 doubted not, as the most generous of his sex; but while he was mortal,
10290 there must be a triumph.
10291
10292 She began now to comprehend that he was exactly the man who, in
10293 disposition and talents, would most suit her. His understanding and
10294 temper, though unlike her own, would have answered all her wishes. It
10295 was an union that must have been to the advantage of both; by her ease
10296 and liveliness, his mind might have been softened, his manners improved;
10297 and from his judgement, information, and knowledge of the world, she
10298 must have received benefit of greater importance.
10299
10300 But no such happy marriage could now teach the admiring multitude what
10301 connubial felicity really was. An union of a different tendency, and
10302 precluding the possibility of the other, was soon to be formed in their
10303 family.
10304
10305 How Wickham and Lydia were to be supported in tolerable independence,
10306 she could not imagine. But how little of permanent happiness could
10307 belong to a couple who were only brought together because their passions
10308 were stronger than their virtue, she could easily conjecture.
10309
10310 * * * * *
10311
10312 Mr. Gardiner soon wrote again to his brother. To Mr. Bennet's
10313 acknowledgments he briefly replied, with assurance of his eagerness to
10314 promote the welfare of any of his family; and concluded with entreaties
10315 that the subject might never be mentioned to him again. The principal
10316 purport of his letter was to inform them that Mr. Wickham had resolved
10317 on quitting the militia.
10318
10319 "It was greatly my wish that he should do so," he added, "as soon as
10320 his marriage was fixed on. And I think you will agree with me, in
10321 considering the removal from that corps as highly advisable, both on
10322 his account and my niece's. It is Mr. Wickham's intention to go into
10323 the regulars; and among his former friends, there are still some who
10324 are able and willing to assist him in the army. He has the promise of an
10325 ensigncy in General ----'s regiment, now quartered in the North. It
10326 is an advantage to have it so far from this part of the kingdom. He
10327 promises fairly; and I hope among different people, where they may each
10328 have a character to preserve, they will both be more prudent. I have
10329 written to Colonel Forster, to inform him of our present arrangements,
10330 and to request that he will satisfy the various creditors of Mr. Wickham
10331 in and near Brighton, with assurances of speedy payment, for which I
10332 have pledged myself. And will you give yourself the trouble of carrying
10333 similar assurances to his creditors in Meryton, of whom I shall subjoin
10334 a list according to his information? He has given in all his debts; I
10335 hope at least he has not deceived us. Haggerston has our directions,
10336 and all will be completed in a week. They will then join his regiment,
10337 unless they are first invited to Longbourn; and I understand from Mrs.
10338 Gardiner, that my niece is very desirous of seeing you all before she
10339 leaves the South. She is well, and begs to be dutifully remembered to
10340 you and her mother.--Yours, etc.,
10341
10342 "E. GARDINER."
10343
10344 Mr. Bennet and his daughters saw all the advantages of Wickham's removal
10345 from the ----shire as clearly as Mr. Gardiner could do. But Mrs. Bennet
10346 was not so well pleased with it. Lydia's being settled in the North,
10347 just when she had expected most pleasure and pride in her company,
10348 for she had by no means given up her plan of their residing in
10349 Hertfordshire, was a severe disappointment; and, besides, it was such a
10350 pity that Lydia should be taken from a regiment where she was acquainted
10351 with everybody, and had so many favourites.
10352
10353 "She is so fond of Mrs. Forster," said she, "it will be quite shocking
10354 to send her away! And there are several of the young men, too, that she
10355 likes very much. The officers may not be so pleasant in General ----'s
10356 regiment."
10357
10358 His daughter's request, for such it might be considered, of being
10359 admitted into her family again before she set off for the North,
10360 received at first an absolute negative. But Jane and Elizabeth,
10361 who agreed in wishing, for the sake of their sister's feelings and
10362 consequence, that she should be noticed on her marriage by her parents,
10363 urged him so earnestly yet so rationally and so mildly, to receive her
10364 and her husband at Longbourn, as soon as they were married, that he was
10365 prevailed on to think as they thought, and act as they wished. And their
10366 mother had the satisfaction of knowing that she would be able to show
10367 her married daughter in the neighbourhood before she was banished to the
10368 North. When Mr. Bennet wrote again to his brother, therefore, he sent
10369 his permission for them to come; and it was settled, that as soon as
10370 the ceremony was over, they should proceed to Longbourn. Elizabeth was
10371 surprised, however, that Wickham should consent to such a scheme, and
10372 had she consulted only her own inclination, any meeting with him would
10373 have been the last object of her wishes.
10374
10375
10376
10377 Chapter 51
10378
10379
10380 Their sister's wedding day arrived; and Jane and Elizabeth felt for her
10381 probably more than she felt for herself. The carriage was sent to
10382 meet them at ----, and they were to return in it by dinner-time. Their
10383 arrival was dreaded by the elder Miss Bennets, and Jane more especially,
10384 who gave Lydia the feelings which would have attended herself, had she
10385 been the culprit, and was wretched in the thought of what her sister
10386 must endure.
10387
10388 They came. The family were assembled in the breakfast room to receive
10389 them. Smiles decked the face of Mrs. Bennet as the carriage drove up to
10390 the door; her husband looked impenetrably grave; her daughters, alarmed,
10391 anxious, uneasy.
10392
10393 Lydia's voice was heard in the vestibule; the door was thrown open, and
10394 she ran into the room. Her mother stepped forwards, embraced her, and
10395 welcomed her with rapture; gave her hand, with an affectionate smile,
10396 to Wickham, who followed his lady; and wished them both joy with an
10397 alacrity which shewed no doubt of their happiness.
10398
10399 Their reception from Mr. Bennet, to whom they then turned, was not quite
10400 so cordial. His countenance rather gained in austerity; and he scarcely
10401 opened his lips. The easy assurance of the young couple, indeed, was
10402 enough to provoke him. Elizabeth was disgusted, and even Miss Bennet
10403 was shocked. Lydia was Lydia still; untamed, unabashed, wild, noisy,
10404 and fearless. She turned from sister to sister, demanding their
10405 congratulations; and when at length they all sat down, looked eagerly
10406 round the room, took notice of some little alteration in it, and
10407 observed, with a laugh, that it was a great while since she had been
10408 there.
10409
10410 Wickham was not at all more distressed than herself, but his manners
10411 were always so pleasing, that had his character and his marriage been
10412 exactly what they ought, his smiles and his easy address, while he
10413 claimed their relationship, would have delighted them all. Elizabeth had
10414 not before believed him quite equal to such assurance; but she sat down,
10415 resolving within herself to draw no limits in future to the impudence
10416 of an impudent man. She blushed, and Jane blushed; but the cheeks of the
10417 two who caused their confusion suffered no variation of colour.
10418
10419 There was no want of discourse. The bride and her mother could neither
10420 of them talk fast enough; and Wickham, who happened to sit near
10421 Elizabeth, began inquiring after his acquaintance in that neighbourhood,
10422 with a good humoured ease which she felt very unable to equal in her
10423 replies. They seemed each of them to have the happiest memories in the
10424 world. Nothing of the past was recollected with pain; and Lydia led
10425 voluntarily to subjects which her sisters would not have alluded to for
10426 the world.
10427
10428 "Only think of its being three months," she cried, "since I went away;
10429 it seems but a fortnight I declare; and yet there have been things
10430 enough happened in the time. Good gracious! when I went away, I am sure
10431 I had no more idea of being married till I came back again! though I
10432 thought it would be very good fun if I was."
10433
10434 Her father lifted up his eyes. Jane was distressed. Elizabeth looked
10435 expressively at Lydia; but she, who never heard nor saw anything of
10436 which she chose to be insensible, gaily continued, "Oh! mamma, do the
10437 people hereabouts know I am married to-day? I was afraid they might not;
10438 and we overtook William Goulding in his curricle, so I was determined he
10439 should know it, and so I let down the side-glass next to him, and took
10440 off my glove, and let my hand just rest upon the window frame, so that
10441 he might see the ring, and then I bowed and smiled like anything."
10442
10443 Elizabeth could bear it no longer. She got up, and ran out of the room;
10444 and returned no more, till she heard them passing through the hall to
10445 the dining parlour. She then joined them soon enough to see Lydia, with
10446 anxious parade, walk up to her mother's right hand, and hear her say
10447 to her eldest sister, "Ah! Jane, I take your place now, and you must go
10448 lower, because I am a married woman."
10449
10450 It was not to be supposed that time would give Lydia that embarrassment
10451 from which she had been so wholly free at first. Her ease and good
10452 spirits increased. She longed to see Mrs. Phillips, the Lucases, and
10453 all their other neighbours, and to hear herself called "Mrs. Wickham"
10454 by each of them; and in the mean time, she went after dinner to show her
10455 ring, and boast of being married, to Mrs. Hill and the two housemaids.
10456
10457 "Well, mamma," said she, when they were all returned to the breakfast
10458 room, "and what do you think of my husband? Is not he a charming man? I
10459 am sure my sisters must all envy me. I only hope they may have half
10460 my good luck. They must all go to Brighton. That is the place to get
10461 husbands. What a pity it is, mamma, we did not all go."
10462
10463 "Very true; and if I had my will, we should. But my dear Lydia, I don't
10464 at all like your going such a way off. Must it be so?"
10465
10466 "Oh, lord! yes;--there is nothing in that. I shall like it of all
10467 things. You and papa, and my sisters, must come down and see us. We
10468 shall be at Newcastle all the winter, and I dare say there will be some
10469 balls, and I will take care to get good partners for them all."
10470
10471 "I should like it beyond anything!" said her mother.
10472
10473 "And then when you go away, you may leave one or two of my sisters
10474 behind you; and I dare say I shall get husbands for them before the
10475 winter is over."
10476
10477 "I thank you for my share of the favour," said Elizabeth; "but I do not
10478 particularly like your way of getting husbands."
10479
10480 Their visitors were not to remain above ten days with them. Mr. Wickham
10481 had received his commission before he left London, and he was to join
10482 his regiment at the end of a fortnight.
10483
10484 No one but Mrs. Bennet regretted that their stay would be so short; and
10485 she made the most of the time by visiting about with her daughter, and
10486 having very frequent parties at home. These parties were acceptable to
10487 all; to avoid a family circle was even more desirable to such as did
10488 think, than such as did not.
10489
10490 Wickham's affection for Lydia was just what Elizabeth had expected
10491 to find it; not equal to Lydia's for him. She had scarcely needed her
10492 present observation to be satisfied, from the reason of things, that
10493 their elopement had been brought on by the strength of her love, rather
10494 than by his; and she would have wondered why, without violently caring
10495 for her, he chose to elope with her at all, had she not felt certain
10496 that his flight was rendered necessary by distress of circumstances; and
10497 if that were the case, he was not the young man to resist an opportunity
10498 of having a companion.
10499
10500 Lydia was exceedingly fond of him. He was her dear Wickham on every
10501 occasion; no one was to be put in competition with him. He did every
10502 thing best in the world; and she was sure he would kill more birds on
10503 the first of September, than any body else in the country.
10504
10505 One morning, soon after their arrival, as she was sitting with her two
10506 elder sisters, she said to Elizabeth:
10507
10508 "Lizzy, I never gave _you_ an account of my wedding, I believe. You
10509 were not by, when I told mamma and the others all about it. Are not you
10510 curious to hear how it was managed?"
10511
10512 "No really," replied Elizabeth; "I think there cannot be too little said
10513 on the subject."
10514
10515 "La! You are so strange! But I must tell you how it went off. We were
10516 married, you know, at St. Clement's, because Wickham's lodgings were in
10517 that parish. And it was settled that we should all be there by eleven
10518 o'clock. My uncle and aunt and I were to go together; and the others
10519 were to meet us at the church. Well, Monday morning came, and I was in
10520 such a fuss! I was so afraid, you know, that something would happen to
10521 put it off, and then I should have gone quite distracted. And there was
10522 my aunt, all the time I was dressing, preaching and talking away just as
10523 if she was reading a sermon. However, I did not hear above one word in
10524 ten, for I was thinking, you may suppose, of my dear Wickham. I longed
10525 to know whether he would be married in his blue coat."
10526
10527 "Well, and so we breakfasted at ten as usual; I thought it would never
10528 be over; for, by the bye, you are to understand, that my uncle and aunt
10529 were horrid unpleasant all the time I was with them. If you'll believe
10530 me, I did not once put my foot out of doors, though I was there a
10531 fortnight. Not one party, or scheme, or anything. To be sure London was
10532 rather thin, but, however, the Little Theatre was open. Well, and so
10533 just as the carriage came to the door, my uncle was called away upon
10534 business to that horrid man Mr. Stone. And then, you know, when once
10535 they get together, there is no end of it. Well, I was so frightened I
10536 did not know what to do, for my uncle was to give me away; and if we
10537 were beyond the hour, we could not be married all day. But, luckily, he
10538 came back again in ten minutes' time, and then we all set out. However,
10539 I recollected afterwards that if he had been prevented going, the
10540 wedding need not be put off, for Mr. Darcy might have done as well."
10541
10542 "Mr. Darcy!" repeated Elizabeth, in utter amazement.
10543
10544 "Oh, yes!--he was to come there with Wickham, you know. But gracious
10545 me! I quite forgot! I ought not to have said a word about it. I promised
10546 them so faithfully! What will Wickham say? It was to be such a secret!"
10547
10548 "If it was to be secret," said Jane, "say not another word on the
10549 subject. You may depend upon my seeking no further."
10550
10551 "Oh! certainly," said Elizabeth, though burning with curiosity; "we will
10552 ask you no questions."
10553
10554 "Thank you," said Lydia, "for if you did, I should certainly tell you
10555 all, and then Wickham would be angry."
10556
10557 On such encouragement to ask, Elizabeth was forced to put it out of her
10558 power, by running away.
10559
10560 But to live in ignorance on such a point was impossible; or at least
10561 it was impossible not to try for information. Mr. Darcy had been at
10562 her sister's wedding. It was exactly a scene, and exactly among people,
10563 where he had apparently least to do, and least temptation to go.
10564 Conjectures as to the meaning of it, rapid and wild, hurried into her
10565 brain; but she was satisfied with none. Those that best pleased her, as
10566 placing his conduct in the noblest light, seemed most improbable. She
10567 could not bear such suspense; and hastily seizing a sheet of paper,
10568 wrote a short letter to her aunt, to request an explanation of what
10569 Lydia had dropt, if it were compatible with the secrecy which had been
10570 intended.
10571
10572 "You may readily comprehend," she added, "what my curiosity must be
10573 to know how a person unconnected with any of us, and (comparatively
10574 speaking) a stranger to our family, should have been amongst you at such
10575 a time. Pray write instantly, and let me understand it--unless it is,
10576 for very cogent reasons, to remain in the secrecy which Lydia seems
10577 to think necessary; and then I must endeavour to be satisfied with
10578 ignorance."
10579
10580 "Not that I _shall_, though," she added to herself, as she finished
10581 the letter; "and my dear aunt, if you do not tell me in an honourable
10582 manner, I shall certainly be reduced to tricks and stratagems to find it
10583 out."
10584
10585 Jane's delicate sense of honour would not allow her to speak to
10586 Elizabeth privately of what Lydia had let fall; Elizabeth was glad
10587 of it;--till it appeared whether her inquiries would receive any
10588 satisfaction, she had rather be without a confidante.
10589
10590
10591
10592 Chapter 52
10593
10594
10595 Elizabeth had the satisfaction of receiving an answer to her letter as
10596 soon as she possibly could. She was no sooner in possession of it
10597 than, hurrying into the little copse, where she was least likely to
10598 be interrupted, she sat down on one of the benches and prepared to
10599 be happy; for the length of the letter convinced her that it did not
10600 contain a denial.
10601
10602 "Gracechurch street, Sept. 6.
10603
10604 "MY DEAR NIECE,
10605
10606 "I have just received your letter, and shall devote this whole morning
10607 to answering it, as I foresee that a _little_ writing will not comprise
10608 what I have to tell you. I must confess myself surprised by your
10609 application; I did not expect it from _you_. Don't think me angry,
10610 however, for I only mean to let you know that I had not imagined such
10611 inquiries to be necessary on _your_ side. If you do not choose to
10612 understand me, forgive my impertinence. Your uncle is as much surprised
10613 as I am--and nothing but the belief of your being a party concerned
10614 would have allowed him to act as he has done. But if you are really
10615 innocent and ignorant, I must be more explicit.
10616
10617 "On the very day of my coming home from Longbourn, your uncle had a most
10618 unexpected visitor. Mr. Darcy called, and was shut up with him several
10619 hours. It was all over before I arrived; so my curiosity was not so
10620 dreadfully racked as _yours_ seems to have been. He came to tell Mr.
10621 Gardiner that he had found out where your sister and Mr. Wickham were,
10622 and that he had seen and talked with them both; Wickham repeatedly,
10623 Lydia once. From what I can collect, he left Derbyshire only one day
10624 after ourselves, and came to town with the resolution of hunting for
10625 them. The motive professed was his conviction of its being owing to
10626 himself that Wickham's worthlessness had not been so well known as to
10627 make it impossible for any young woman of character to love or confide
10628 in him. He generously imputed the whole to his mistaken pride, and
10629 confessed that he had before thought it beneath him to lay his private
10630 actions open to the world. His character was to speak for itself. He
10631 called it, therefore, his duty to step forward, and endeavour to remedy
10632 an evil which had been brought on by himself. If he _had another_
10633 motive, I am sure it would never disgrace him. He had been some days
10634 in town, before he was able to discover them; but he had something to
10635 direct his search, which was more than _we_ had; and the consciousness
10636 of this was another reason for his resolving to follow us.
10637
10638 "There is a lady, it seems, a Mrs. Younge, who was some time ago
10639 governess to Miss Darcy, and was dismissed from her charge on some cause
10640 of disapprobation, though he did not say what. She then took a large
10641 house in Edward-street, and has since maintained herself by letting
10642 lodgings. This Mrs. Younge was, he knew, intimately acquainted with
10643 Wickham; and he went to her for intelligence of him as soon as he got to
10644 town. But it was two or three days before he could get from her what he
10645 wanted. She would not betray her trust, I suppose, without bribery and
10646 corruption, for she really did know where her friend was to be found.
10647 Wickham indeed had gone to her on their first arrival in London, and had
10648 she been able to receive them into her house, they would have taken up
10649 their abode with her. At length, however, our kind friend procured the
10650 wished-for direction. They were in ---- street. He saw Wickham, and
10651 afterwards insisted on seeing Lydia. His first object with her, he
10652 acknowledged, had been to persuade her to quit her present disgraceful
10653 situation, and return to her friends as soon as they could be prevailed
10654 on to receive her, offering his assistance, as far as it would go. But
10655 he found Lydia absolutely resolved on remaining where she was. She cared
10656 for none of her friends; she wanted no help of his; she would not hear
10657 of leaving Wickham. She was sure they should be married some time or
10658 other, and it did not much signify when. Since such were her feelings,
10659 it only remained, he thought, to secure and expedite a marriage, which,
10660 in his very first conversation with Wickham, he easily learnt had never
10661 been _his_ design. He confessed himself obliged to leave the regiment,
10662 on account of some debts of honour, which were very pressing; and
10663 scrupled not to lay all the ill-consequences of Lydia's flight on her
10664 own folly alone. He meant to resign his commission immediately; and as
10665 to his future situation, he could conjecture very little about it. He
10666 must go somewhere, but he did not know where, and he knew he should have
10667 nothing to live on.
10668
10669 "Mr. Darcy asked him why he had not married your sister at once. Though
10670 Mr. Bennet was not imagined to be very rich, he would have been able
10671 to do something for him, and his situation must have been benefited by
10672 marriage. But he found, in reply to this question, that Wickham still
10673 cherished the hope of more effectually making his fortune by marriage in
10674 some other country. Under such circumstances, however, he was not likely
10675 to be proof against the temptation of immediate relief.
10676
10677 "They met several times, for there was much to be discussed. Wickham of
10678 course wanted more than he could get; but at length was reduced to be
10679 reasonable.
10680
10681 "Every thing being settled between _them_, Mr. Darcy's next step was to
10682 make your uncle acquainted with it, and he first called in Gracechurch
10683 street the evening before I came home. But Mr. Gardiner could not be
10684 seen, and Mr. Darcy found, on further inquiry, that your father was
10685 still with him, but would quit town the next morning. He did not judge
10686 your father to be a person whom he could so properly consult as your
10687 uncle, and therefore readily postponed seeing him till after the
10688 departure of the former. He did not leave his name, and till the next
10689 day it was only known that a gentleman had called on business.
10690
10691 "On Saturday he came again. Your father was gone, your uncle at home,
10692 and, as I said before, they had a great deal of talk together.
10693
10694 "They met again on Sunday, and then _I_ saw him too. It was not all
10695 settled before Monday: as soon as it was, the express was sent off to
10696 Longbourn. But our visitor was very obstinate. I fancy, Lizzy, that
10697 obstinacy is the real defect of his character, after all. He has been
10698 accused of many faults at different times, but _this_ is the true one.
10699 Nothing was to be done that he did not do himself; though I am sure (and
10700 I do not speak it to be thanked, therefore say nothing about it), your
10701 uncle would most readily have settled the whole.
10702
10703 "They battled it together for a long time, which was more than either
10704 the gentleman or lady concerned in it deserved. But at last your uncle
10705 was forced to yield, and instead of being allowed to be of use to his
10706 niece, was forced to put up with only having the probable credit of it,
10707 which went sorely against the grain; and I really believe your letter
10708 this morning gave him great pleasure, because it required an explanation
10709 that would rob him of his borrowed feathers, and give the praise where
10710 it was due. But, Lizzy, this must go no farther than yourself, or Jane
10711 at most.
10712
10713 "You know pretty well, I suppose, what has been done for the young
10714 people. His debts are to be paid, amounting, I believe, to considerably
10715 more than a thousand pounds, another thousand in addition to her own
10716 settled upon _her_, and his commission purchased. The reason why all
10717 this was to be done by him alone, was such as I have given above. It
10718 was owing to him, to his reserve and want of proper consideration, that
10719 Wickham's character had been so misunderstood, and consequently that he
10720 had been received and noticed as he was. Perhaps there was some truth
10721 in _this_; though I doubt whether _his_ reserve, or _anybody's_ reserve,
10722 can be answerable for the event. But in spite of all this fine talking,
10723 my dear Lizzy, you may rest perfectly assured that your uncle would
10724 never have yielded, if we had not given him credit for _another
10725 interest_ in the affair.
10726
10727 "When all this was resolved on, he returned again to his friends, who
10728 were still staying at Pemberley; but it was agreed that he should be in
10729 London once more when the wedding took place, and all money matters were
10730 then to receive the last finish.
10731
10732 "I believe I have now told you every thing. It is a relation which
10733 you tell me is to give you great surprise; I hope at least it will not
10734 afford you any displeasure. Lydia came to us; and Wickham had constant
10735 admission to the house. _He_ was exactly what he had been, when I
10736 knew him in Hertfordshire; but I would not tell you how little I was
10737 satisfied with her behaviour while she staid with us, if I had not
10738 perceived, by Jane's letter last Wednesday, that her conduct on coming
10739 home was exactly of a piece with it, and therefore what I now tell
10740 you can give you no fresh pain. I talked to her repeatedly in the most
10741 serious manner, representing to her all the wickedness of what she had
10742 done, and all the unhappiness she had brought on her family. If she
10743 heard me, it was by good luck, for I am sure she did not listen. I was
10744 sometimes quite provoked, but then I recollected my dear Elizabeth and
10745 Jane, and for their sakes had patience with her.
10746
10747 "Mr. Darcy was punctual in his return, and as Lydia informed you,
10748 attended the wedding. He dined with us the next day, and was to leave
10749 town again on Wednesday or Thursday. Will you be very angry with me, my
10750 dear Lizzy, if I take this opportunity of saying (what I was never bold
10751 enough to say before) how much I like him. His behaviour to us has,
10752 in every respect, been as pleasing as when we were in Derbyshire. His
10753 understanding and opinions all please me; he wants nothing but a little
10754 more liveliness, and _that_, if he marry _prudently_, his wife may teach
10755 him. I thought him very sly;--he hardly ever mentioned your name. But
10756 slyness seems the fashion.
10757
10758 "Pray forgive me if I have been very presuming, or at least do not
10759 punish me so far as to exclude me from P. I shall never be quite happy
10760 till I have been all round the park. A low phaeton, with a nice little
10761 pair of ponies, would be the very thing.
10762
10763 "But I must write no more. The children have been wanting me this half
10764 hour.
10765
10766 "Yours, very sincerely,
10767
10768 "M. GARDINER."
10769
10770 The contents of this letter threw Elizabeth into a flutter of spirits,
10771 in which it was difficult to determine whether pleasure or pain bore the
10772 greatest share. The vague and unsettled suspicions which uncertainty had
10773 produced of what Mr. Darcy might have been doing to forward her sister's
10774 match, which she had feared to encourage as an exertion of goodness too
10775 great to be probable, and at the same time dreaded to be just, from the
10776 pain of obligation, were proved beyond their greatest extent to be true!
10777 He had followed them purposely to town, he had taken on himself all
10778 the trouble and mortification attendant on such a research; in which
10779 supplication had been necessary to a woman whom he must abominate and
10780 despise, and where he was reduced to meet, frequently meet, reason
10781 with, persuade, and finally bribe, the man whom he always most wished to
10782 avoid, and whose very name it was punishment to him to pronounce. He had
10783 done all this for a girl whom he could neither regard nor esteem. Her
10784 heart did whisper that he had done it for her. But it was a hope shortly
10785 checked by other considerations, and she soon felt that even her vanity
10786 was insufficient, when required to depend on his affection for her--for
10787 a woman who had already refused him--as able to overcome a sentiment so
10788 natural as abhorrence against relationship with Wickham. Brother-in-law
10789 of Wickham! Every kind of pride must revolt from the connection. He had,
10790 to be sure, done much. She was ashamed to think how much. But he had
10791 given a reason for his interference, which asked no extraordinary
10792 stretch of belief. It was reasonable that he should feel he had been
10793 wrong; he had liberality, and he had the means of exercising it; and
10794 though she would not place herself as his principal inducement, she
10795 could, perhaps, believe that remaining partiality for her might assist
10796 his endeavours in a cause where her peace of mind must be materially
10797 concerned. It was painful, exceedingly painful, to know that they were
10798 under obligations to a person who could never receive a return. They
10799 owed the restoration of Lydia, her character, every thing, to him. Oh!
10800 how heartily did she grieve over every ungracious sensation she had ever
10801 encouraged, every saucy speech she had ever directed towards him. For
10802 herself she was humbled; but she was proud of him. Proud that in a cause
10803 of compassion and honour, he had been able to get the better of himself.
10804 She read over her aunt's commendation of him again and again. It
10805 was hardly enough; but it pleased her. She was even sensible of some
10806 pleasure, though mixed with regret, on finding how steadfastly both she
10807 and her uncle had been persuaded that affection and confidence subsisted
10808 between Mr. Darcy and herself.
10809
10810 She was roused from her seat, and her reflections, by some one's
10811 approach; and before she could strike into another path, she was
10812 overtaken by Wickham.
10813
10814 "I am afraid I interrupt your solitary ramble, my dear sister?" said he,
10815 as he joined her.
10816
10817 "You certainly do," she replied with a smile; "but it does not follow
10818 that the interruption must be unwelcome."
10819
10820 "I should be sorry indeed, if it were. We were always good friends; and
10821 now we are better."
10822
10823 "True. Are the others coming out?"
10824
10825 "I do not know. Mrs. Bennet and Lydia are going in the carriage to
10826 Meryton. And so, my dear sister, I find, from our uncle and aunt, that
10827 you have actually seen Pemberley."
10828
10829 She replied in the affirmative.
10830
10831 "I almost envy you the pleasure, and yet I believe it would be too much
10832 for me, or else I could take it in my way to Newcastle. And you saw the
10833 old housekeeper, I suppose? Poor Reynolds, she was always very fond of
10834 me. But of course she did not mention my name to you."
10835
10836 "Yes, she did."
10837
10838 "And what did she say?"
10839
10840 "That you were gone into the army, and she was afraid had--not turned
10841 out well. At such a distance as _that_, you know, things are strangely
10842 misrepresented."
10843
10844 "Certainly," he replied, biting his lips. Elizabeth hoped she had
10845 silenced him; but he soon afterwards said:
10846
10847 "I was surprised to see Darcy in town last month. We passed each other
10848 several times. I wonder what he can be doing there."
10849
10850 "Perhaps preparing for his marriage with Miss de Bourgh," said
10851 Elizabeth. "It must be something particular, to take him there at this
10852 time of year."
10853
10854 "Undoubtedly. Did you see him while you were at Lambton? I thought I
10855 understood from the Gardiners that you had."
10856
10857 "Yes; he introduced us to his sister."
10858
10859 "And do you like her?"
10860
10861 "Very much."
10862
10863 "I have heard, indeed, that she is uncommonly improved within this year
10864 or two. When I last saw her, she was not very promising. I am very glad
10865 you liked her. I hope she will turn out well."
10866
10867 "I dare say she will; she has got over the most trying age."
10868
10869 "Did you go by the village of Kympton?"
10870
10871 "I do not recollect that we did."
10872
10873 "I mention it, because it is the living which I ought to have had. A
10874 most delightful place!--Excellent Parsonage House! It would have suited
10875 me in every respect."
10876
10877 "How should you have liked making sermons?"
10878
10879 "Exceedingly well. I should have considered it as part of my duty,
10880 and the exertion would soon have been nothing. One ought not to
10881 repine;--but, to be sure, it would have been such a thing for me! The
10882 quiet, the retirement of such a life would have answered all my ideas
10883 of happiness! But it was not to be. Did you ever hear Darcy mention the
10884 circumstance, when you were in Kent?"
10885
10886 "I have heard from authority, which I thought _as good_, that it was
10887 left you conditionally only, and at the will of the present patron."
10888
10889 "You have. Yes, there was something in _that_; I told you so from the
10890 first, you may remember."
10891
10892 "I _did_ hear, too, that there was a time, when sermon-making was not
10893 so palatable to you as it seems to be at present; that you actually
10894 declared your resolution of never taking orders, and that the business
10895 had been compromised accordingly."
10896
10897 "You did! and it was not wholly without foundation. You may remember
10898 what I told you on that point, when first we talked of it."
10899
10900 They were now almost at the door of the house, for she had walked fast
10901 to get rid of him; and unwilling, for her sister's sake, to provoke him,
10902 she only said in reply, with a good-humoured smile:
10903
10904 "Come, Mr. Wickham, we are brother and sister, you know. Do not let
10905 us quarrel about the past. In future, I hope we shall be always of one
10906 mind."
10907
10908 She held out her hand; he kissed it with affectionate gallantry, though
10909 he hardly knew how to look, and they entered the house.
10910
10911
10912
10913 Chapter 53
10914
10915
10916 Mr. Wickham was so perfectly satisfied with this conversation that he
10917 never again distressed himself, or provoked his dear sister Elizabeth,
10918 by introducing the subject of it; and she was pleased to find that she
10919 had said enough to keep him quiet.
10920
10921 The day of his and Lydia's departure soon came, and Mrs. Bennet was
10922 forced to submit to a separation, which, as her husband by no means
10923 entered into her scheme of their all going to Newcastle, was likely to
10924 continue at least a twelvemonth.
10925
10926 "Oh! my dear Lydia," she cried, "when shall we meet again?"
10927
10928 "Oh, lord! I don't know. Not these two or three years, perhaps."
10929
10930 "Write to me very often, my dear."
10931
10932 "As often as I can. But you know married women have never much time for
10933 writing. My sisters may write to _me_. They will have nothing else to
10934 do."
10935
10936 Mr. Wickham's adieus were much more affectionate than his wife's. He
10937 smiled, looked handsome, and said many pretty things.
10938
10939 "He is as fine a fellow," said Mr. Bennet, as soon as they were out of
10940 the house, "as ever I saw. He simpers, and smirks, and makes love to
10941 us all. I am prodigiously proud of him. I defy even Sir William Lucas
10942 himself to produce a more valuable son-in-law."
10943
10944 The loss of her daughter made Mrs. Bennet very dull for several days.
10945
10946 "I often think," said she, "that there is nothing so bad as parting with
10947 one's friends. One seems so forlorn without them."
10948
10949 "This is the consequence, you see, Madam, of marrying a daughter," said
10950 Elizabeth. "It must make you better satisfied that your other four are
10951 single."
10952
10953 "It is no such thing. Lydia does not leave me because she is married,
10954 but only because her husband's regiment happens to be so far off. If
10955 that had been nearer, she would not have gone so soon."
10956
10957 But the spiritless condition which this event threw her into was shortly
10958 relieved, and her mind opened again to the agitation of hope, by an
10959 article of news which then began to be in circulation. The housekeeper
10960 at Netherfield had received orders to prepare for the arrival of her
10961 master, who was coming down in a day or two, to shoot there for several
10962 weeks. Mrs. Bennet was quite in the fidgets. She looked at Jane, and
10963 smiled and shook her head by turns.
10964
10965 "Well, well, and so Mr. Bingley is coming down, sister," (for Mrs.
10966 Phillips first brought her the news). "Well, so much the better. Not
10967 that I care about it, though. He is nothing to us, you know, and I am
10968 sure _I_ never want to see him again. But, however, he is very welcome
10969 to come to Netherfield, if he likes it. And who knows what _may_ happen?
10970 But that is nothing to us. You know, sister, we agreed long ago never to
10971 mention a word about it. And so, is it quite certain he is coming?"
10972
10973 "You may depend on it," replied the other, "for Mrs. Nicholls was in
10974 Meryton last night; I saw her passing by, and went out myself on purpose
10975 to know the truth of it; and she told me that it was certain true. He
10976 comes down on Thursday at the latest, very likely on Wednesday. She was
10977 going to the butcher's, she told me, on purpose to order in some meat on
10978 Wednesday, and she has got three couple of ducks just fit to be killed."
10979
10980 Miss Bennet had not been able to hear of his coming without changing
10981 colour. It was many months since she had mentioned his name to
10982 Elizabeth; but now, as soon as they were alone together, she said:
10983
10984 "I saw you look at me to-day, Lizzy, when my aunt told us of the present
10985 report; and I know I appeared distressed. But don't imagine it was from
10986 any silly cause. I was only confused for the moment, because I felt that
10987 I _should_ be looked at. I do assure you that the news does not affect
10988 me either with pleasure or pain. I am glad of one thing, that he comes
10989 alone; because we shall see the less of him. Not that I am afraid of
10990 _myself_, but I dread other people's remarks."
10991
10992 Elizabeth did not know what to make of it. Had she not seen him in
10993 Derbyshire, she might have supposed him capable of coming there with no
10994 other view than what was acknowledged; but she still thought him partial
10995 to Jane, and she wavered as to the greater probability of his coming
10996 there _with_ his friend's permission, or being bold enough to come
10997 without it.
10998
10999 "Yet it is hard," she sometimes thought, "that this poor man cannot
11000 come to a house which he has legally hired, without raising all this
11001 speculation! I _will_ leave him to himself."
11002
11003 In spite of what her sister declared, and really believed to be her
11004 feelings in the expectation of his arrival, Elizabeth could easily
11005 perceive that her spirits were affected by it. They were more disturbed,
11006 more unequal, than she had often seen them.
11007
11008 The subject which had been so warmly canvassed between their parents,
11009 about a twelvemonth ago, was now brought forward again.
11010
11011 "As soon as ever Mr. Bingley comes, my dear," said Mrs. Bennet, "you
11012 will wait on him of course."
11013
11014 "No, no. You forced me into visiting him last year, and promised, if I
11015 went to see him, he should marry one of my daughters. But it ended in
11016 nothing, and I will not be sent on a fool's errand again."
11017
11018 His wife represented to him how absolutely necessary such an attention
11019 would be from all the neighbouring gentlemen, on his returning to
11020 Netherfield.
11021
11022 "'Tis an etiquette I despise," said he. "If he wants our society,
11023 let him seek it. He knows where we live. I will not spend my hours
11024 in running after my neighbours every time they go away and come back
11025 again."
11026
11027 "Well, all I know is, that it will be abominably rude if you do not wait
11028 on him. But, however, that shan't prevent my asking him to dine here, I
11029 am determined. We must have Mrs. Long and the Gouldings soon. That will
11030 make thirteen with ourselves, so there will be just room at table for
11031 him."
11032
11033 Consoled by this resolution, she was the better able to bear her
11034 husband's incivility; though it was very mortifying to know that her
11035 neighbours might all see Mr. Bingley, in consequence of it, before
11036 _they_ did. As the day of his arrival drew near,--
11037
11038 "I begin to be sorry that he comes at all," said Jane to her sister. "It
11039 would be nothing; I could see him with perfect indifference, but I can
11040 hardly bear to hear it thus perpetually talked of. My mother means well;
11041 but she does not know, no one can know, how much I suffer from what she
11042 says. Happy shall I be, when his stay at Netherfield is over!"
11043
11044 "I wish I could say anything to comfort you," replied Elizabeth; "but it
11045 is wholly out of my power. You must feel it; and the usual satisfaction
11046 of preaching patience to a sufferer is denied me, because you have
11047 always so much."
11048
11049 Mr. Bingley arrived. Mrs. Bennet, through the assistance of servants,
11050 contrived to have the earliest tidings of it, that the period of anxiety
11051 and fretfulness on her side might be as long as it could. She counted
11052 the days that must intervene before their invitation could be sent;
11053 hopeless of seeing him before. But on the third morning after his
11054 arrival in Hertfordshire, she saw him, from her dressing-room window,
11055 enter the paddock and ride towards the house.
11056
11057 Her daughters were eagerly called to partake of her joy. Jane resolutely
11058 kept her place at the table; but Elizabeth, to satisfy her mother, went
11059 to the window--she looked,--she saw Mr. Darcy with him, and sat down
11060 again by her sister.
11061
11062 "There is a gentleman with him, mamma," said Kitty; "who can it be?"
11063
11064 "Some acquaintance or other, my dear, I suppose; I am sure I do not
11065 know."
11066
11067 "La!" replied Kitty, "it looks just like that man that used to be with
11068 him before. Mr. what's-his-name. That tall, proud man."
11069
11070 "Good gracious! Mr. Darcy!--and so it does, I vow. Well, any friend of
11071 Mr. Bingley's will always be welcome here, to be sure; but else I must
11072 say that I hate the very sight of him."
11073
11074 Jane looked at Elizabeth with surprise and concern. She knew but little
11075 of their meeting in Derbyshire, and therefore felt for the awkwardness
11076 which must attend her sister, in seeing him almost for the first time
11077 after receiving his explanatory letter. Both sisters were uncomfortable
11078 enough. Each felt for the other, and of course for themselves; and their
11079 mother talked on, of her dislike of Mr. Darcy, and her resolution to be
11080 civil to him only as Mr. Bingley's friend, without being heard by either
11081 of them. But Elizabeth had sources of uneasiness which could not be
11082 suspected by Jane, to whom she had never yet had courage to shew Mrs.
11083 Gardiner's letter, or to relate her own change of sentiment towards him.
11084 To Jane, he could be only a man whose proposals she had refused,
11085 and whose merit she had undervalued; but to her own more extensive
11086 information, he was the person to whom the whole family were indebted
11087 for the first of benefits, and whom she regarded herself with an
11088 interest, if not quite so tender, at least as reasonable and just as
11089 what Jane felt for Bingley. Her astonishment at his coming--at his
11090 coming to Netherfield, to Longbourn, and voluntarily seeking her again,
11091 was almost equal to what she had known on first witnessing his altered
11092 behaviour in Derbyshire.
11093
11094 The colour which had been driven from her face, returned for half a
11095 minute with an additional glow, and a smile of delight added lustre to
11096 her eyes, as she thought for that space of time that his affection and
11097 wishes must still be unshaken. But she would not be secure.
11098
11099 "Let me first see how he behaves," said she; "it will then be early
11100 enough for expectation."
11101
11102 She sat intently at work, striving to be composed, and without daring to
11103 lift up her eyes, till anxious curiosity carried them to the face of
11104 her sister as the servant was approaching the door. Jane looked a little
11105 paler than usual, but more sedate than Elizabeth had expected. On the
11106 gentlemen's appearing, her colour increased; yet she received them with
11107 tolerable ease, and with a propriety of behaviour equally free from any
11108 symptom of resentment or any unnecessary complaisance.
11109
11110 Elizabeth said as little to either as civility would allow, and sat down
11111 again to her work, with an eagerness which it did not often command. She
11112 had ventured only one glance at Darcy. He looked serious, as usual; and,
11113 she thought, more as he had been used to look in Hertfordshire, than as
11114 she had seen him at Pemberley. But, perhaps he could not in her mother's
11115 presence be what he was before her uncle and aunt. It was a painful, but
11116 not an improbable, conjecture.
11117
11118 Bingley, she had likewise seen for an instant, and in that short period
11119 saw him looking both pleased and embarrassed. He was received by Mrs.
11120 Bennet with a degree of civility which made her two daughters ashamed,
11121 especially when contrasted with the cold and ceremonious politeness of
11122 her curtsey and address to his friend.
11123
11124 Elizabeth, particularly, who knew that her mother owed to the latter
11125 the preservation of her favourite daughter from irremediable infamy,
11126 was hurt and distressed to a most painful degree by a distinction so ill
11127 applied.
11128
11129 Darcy, after inquiring of her how Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner did, a question
11130 which she could not answer without confusion, said scarcely anything. He
11131 was not seated by her; perhaps that was the reason of his silence; but
11132 it had not been so in Derbyshire. There he had talked to her friends,
11133 when he could not to herself. But now several minutes elapsed without
11134 bringing the sound of his voice; and when occasionally, unable to resist
11135 the impulse of curiosity, she raised her eyes to his face, she as often
11136 found him looking at Jane as at herself, and frequently on no object but
11137 the ground. More thoughtfulness and less anxiety to please, than when
11138 they last met, were plainly expressed. She was disappointed, and angry
11139 with herself for being so.
11140
11141 "Could I expect it to be otherwise!" said she. "Yet why did he come?"
11142
11143 She was in no humour for conversation with anyone but himself; and to
11144 him she had hardly courage to speak.
11145
11146 She inquired after his sister, but could do no more.
11147
11148 "It is a long time, Mr. Bingley, since you went away," said Mrs. Bennet.
11149
11150 He readily agreed to it.
11151
11152 "I began to be afraid you would never come back again. People _did_ say
11153 you meant to quit the place entirely at Michaelmas; but, however, I hope
11154 it is not true. A great many changes have happened in the neighbourhood,
11155 since you went away. Miss Lucas is married and settled. And one of my
11156 own daughters. I suppose you have heard of it; indeed, you must have
11157 seen it in the papers. It was in The Times and The Courier, I know;
11158 though it was not put in as it ought to be. It was only said, 'Lately,
11159 George Wickham, Esq. to Miss Lydia Bennet,' without there being a
11160 syllable said of her father, or the place where she lived, or anything.
11161 It was my brother Gardiner's drawing up too, and I wonder how he came to
11162 make such an awkward business of it. Did you see it?"
11163
11164 Bingley replied that he did, and made his congratulations. Elizabeth
11165 dared not lift up her eyes. How Mr. Darcy looked, therefore, she could
11166 not tell.
11167
11168 "It is a delightful thing, to be sure, to have a daughter well married,"
11169 continued her mother, "but at the same time, Mr. Bingley, it is very
11170 hard to have her taken such a way from me. They are gone down to
11171 Newcastle, a place quite northward, it seems, and there they are to stay
11172 I do not know how long. His regiment is there; for I suppose you have
11173 heard of his leaving the ----shire, and of his being gone into the
11174 regulars. Thank Heaven! he has _some_ friends, though perhaps not so
11175 many as he deserves."
11176
11177 Elizabeth, who knew this to be levelled at Mr. Darcy, was in such
11178 misery of shame, that she could hardly keep her seat. It drew from her,
11179 however, the exertion of speaking, which nothing else had so effectually
11180 done before; and she asked Bingley whether he meant to make any stay in
11181 the country at present. A few weeks, he believed.
11182
11183 "When you have killed all your own birds, Mr. Bingley," said her mother,
11184 "I beg you will come here, and shoot as many as you please on Mr.
11185 Bennet's manor. I am sure he will be vastly happy to oblige you, and
11186 will save all the best of the covies for you."
11187
11188 Elizabeth's misery increased, at such unnecessary, such officious
11189 attention! Were the same fair prospect to arise at present as had
11190 flattered them a year ago, every thing, she was persuaded, would be
11191 hastening to the same vexatious conclusion. At that instant, she felt
11192 that years of happiness could not make Jane or herself amends for
11193 moments of such painful confusion.
11194
11195 "The first wish of my heart," said she to herself, "is never more to
11196 be in company with either of them. Their society can afford no pleasure
11197 that will atone for such wretchedness as this! Let me never see either
11198 one or the other again!"
11199
11200 Yet the misery, for which years of happiness were to offer no
11201 compensation, received soon afterwards material relief, from observing
11202 how much the beauty of her sister re-kindled the admiration of her
11203 former lover. When first he came in, he had spoken to her but little;
11204 but every five minutes seemed to be giving her more of his attention. He
11205 found her as handsome as she had been last year; as good natured, and
11206 as unaffected, though not quite so chatty. Jane was anxious that no
11207 difference should be perceived in her at all, and was really persuaded
11208 that she talked as much as ever. But her mind was so busily engaged,
11209 that she did not always know when she was silent.
11210
11211 When the gentlemen rose to go away, Mrs. Bennet was mindful of her
11212 intended civility, and they were invited and engaged to dine at
11213 Longbourn in a few days time.
11214
11215 "You are quite a visit in my debt, Mr. Bingley," she added, "for when
11216 you went to town last winter, you promised to take a family dinner with
11217 us, as soon as you returned. I have not forgot, you see; and I assure
11218 you, I was very much disappointed that you did not come back and keep
11219 your engagement."
11220
11221 Bingley looked a little silly at this reflection, and said something of
11222 his concern at having been prevented by business. They then went away.
11223
11224 Mrs. Bennet had been strongly inclined to ask them to stay and dine
11225 there that day; but, though she always kept a very good table, she did
11226 not think anything less than two courses could be good enough for a man
11227 on whom she had such anxious designs, or satisfy the appetite and pride
11228 of one who had ten thousand a year.
11229
11230
11231
11232 Chapter 54
11233
11234
11235 As soon as they were gone, Elizabeth walked out to recover her spirits;
11236 or in other words, to dwell without interruption on those subjects that
11237 must deaden them more. Mr. Darcy's behaviour astonished and vexed her.
11238
11239 "Why, if he came only to be silent, grave, and indifferent," said she,
11240 "did he come at all?"
11241
11242 She could settle it in no way that gave her pleasure.
11243
11244 "He could be still amiable, still pleasing, to my uncle and aunt, when
11245 he was in town; and why not to me? If he fears me, why come hither? If
11246 he no longer cares for me, why silent? Teasing, teasing, man! I will
11247 think no more about him."
11248
11249 Her resolution was for a short time involuntarily kept by the approach
11250 of her sister, who joined her with a cheerful look, which showed her
11251 better satisfied with their visitors, than Elizabeth.
11252
11253 "Now," said she, "that this first meeting is over, I feel perfectly
11254 easy. I know my own strength, and I shall never be embarrassed again by
11255 his coming. I am glad he dines here on Tuesday. It will then be publicly
11256 seen that, on both sides, we meet only as common and indifferent
11257 acquaintance."
11258
11259 "Yes, very indifferent indeed," said Elizabeth, laughingly. "Oh, Jane,
11260 take care."
11261
11262 "My dear Lizzy, you cannot think me so weak, as to be in danger now?"
11263
11264 "I think you are in very great danger of making him as much in love with
11265 you as ever."
11266
11267 * * * * *
11268
11269 They did not see the gentlemen again till Tuesday; and Mrs. Bennet, in
11270 the meanwhile, was giving way to all the happy schemes, which the good
11271 humour and common politeness of Bingley, in half an hour's visit, had
11272 revived.
11273
11274 On Tuesday there was a large party assembled at Longbourn; and the two
11275 who were most anxiously expected, to the credit of their punctuality
11276 as sportsmen, were in very good time. When they repaired to the
11277 dining-room, Elizabeth eagerly watched to see whether Bingley would take
11278 the place, which, in all their former parties, had belonged to him, by
11279 her sister. Her prudent mother, occupied by the same ideas, forbore
11280 to invite him to sit by herself. On entering the room, he seemed to
11281 hesitate; but Jane happened to look round, and happened to smile: it was
11282 decided. He placed himself by her.
11283
11284 Elizabeth, with a triumphant sensation, looked towards his friend.
11285 He bore it with noble indifference, and she would have imagined that
11286 Bingley had received his sanction to be happy, had she not seen his eyes
11287 likewise turned towards Mr. Darcy, with an expression of half-laughing
11288 alarm.
11289
11290 His behaviour to her sister was such, during dinner time, as showed an
11291 admiration of her, which, though more guarded than formerly, persuaded
11292 Elizabeth, that if left wholly to himself, Jane's happiness, and his
11293 own, would be speedily secured. Though she dared not depend upon the
11294 consequence, she yet received pleasure from observing his behaviour. It
11295 gave her all the animation that her spirits could boast; for she was in
11296 no cheerful humour. Mr. Darcy was almost as far from her as the table
11297 could divide them. He was on one side of her mother. She knew how little
11298 such a situation would give pleasure to either, or make either appear to
11299 advantage. She was not near enough to hear any of their discourse, but
11300 she could see how seldom they spoke to each other, and how formal and
11301 cold was their manner whenever they did. Her mother's ungraciousness,
11302 made the sense of what they owed him more painful to Elizabeth's mind;
11303 and she would, at times, have given anything to be privileged to tell
11304 him that his kindness was neither unknown nor unfelt by the whole of the
11305 family.
11306
11307 She was in hopes that the evening would afford some opportunity of
11308 bringing them together; that the whole of the visit would not pass away
11309 without enabling them to enter into something more of conversation than
11310 the mere ceremonious salutation attending his entrance. Anxious
11311 and uneasy, the period which passed in the drawing-room, before the
11312 gentlemen came, was wearisome and dull to a degree that almost made her
11313 uncivil. She looked forward to their entrance as the point on which all
11314 her chance of pleasure for the evening must depend.
11315
11316 "If he does not come to me, _then_," said she, "I shall give him up for
11317 ever."
11318
11319 The gentlemen came; and she thought he looked as if he would have
11320 answered her hopes; but, alas! the ladies had crowded round the table,
11321 where Miss Bennet was making tea, and Elizabeth pouring out the coffee,
11322 in so close a confederacy that there was not a single vacancy near her
11323 which would admit of a chair. And on the gentlemen's approaching, one of
11324 the girls moved closer to her than ever, and said, in a whisper:
11325
11326 "The men shan't come and part us, I am determined. We want none of them;
11327 do we?"
11328
11329 Darcy had walked away to another part of the room. She followed him with
11330 her eyes, envied everyone to whom he spoke, had scarcely patience enough
11331 to help anybody to coffee; and then was enraged against herself for
11332 being so silly!
11333
11334 "A man who has once been refused! How could I ever be foolish enough to
11335 expect a renewal of his love? Is there one among the sex, who would not
11336 protest against such a weakness as a second proposal to the same woman?
11337 There is no indignity so abhorrent to their feelings!"
11338
11339 She was a little revived, however, by his bringing back his coffee cup
11340 himself; and she seized the opportunity of saying:
11341
11342 "Is your sister at Pemberley still?"
11343
11344 "Yes, she will remain there till Christmas."
11345
11346 "And quite alone? Have all her friends left her?"
11347
11348 "Mrs. Annesley is with her. The others have been gone on to Scarborough,
11349 these three weeks."
11350
11351 She could think of nothing more to say; but if he wished to converse
11352 with her, he might have better success. He stood by her, however, for
11353 some minutes, in silence; and, at last, on the young lady's whispering
11354 to Elizabeth again, he walked away.
11355
11356 When the tea-things were removed, and the card-tables placed, the ladies
11357 all rose, and Elizabeth was then hoping to be soon joined by him,
11358 when all her views were overthrown by seeing him fall a victim to her
11359 mother's rapacity for whist players, and in a few moments after seated
11360 with the rest of the party. She now lost every expectation of pleasure.
11361 They were confined for the evening at different tables, and she had
11362 nothing to hope, but that his eyes were so often turned towards her side
11363 of the room, as to make him play as unsuccessfully as herself.
11364
11365 Mrs. Bennet had designed to keep the two Netherfield gentlemen to
11366 supper; but their carriage was unluckily ordered before any of the
11367 others, and she had no opportunity of detaining them.
11368
11369 "Well girls," said she, as soon as they were left to themselves, "What
11370 say you to the day? I think every thing has passed off uncommonly well,
11371 I assure you. The dinner was as well dressed as any I ever saw. The
11372 venison was roasted to a turn--and everybody said they never saw so
11373 fat a haunch. The soup was fifty times better than what we had at the
11374 Lucases' last week; and even Mr. Darcy acknowledged, that the partridges
11375 were remarkably well done; and I suppose he has two or three French
11376 cooks at least. And, my dear Jane, I never saw you look in greater
11377 beauty. Mrs. Long said so too, for I asked her whether you did not. And
11378 what do you think she said besides? 'Ah! Mrs. Bennet, we shall have her
11379 at Netherfield at last.' She did indeed. I do think Mrs. Long is as good
11380 a creature as ever lived--and her nieces are very pretty behaved girls,
11381 and not at all handsome: I like them prodigiously."
11382
11383 Mrs. Bennet, in short, was in very great spirits; she had seen enough of
11384 Bingley's behaviour to Jane, to be convinced that she would get him at
11385 last; and her expectations of advantage to her family, when in a happy
11386 humour, were so far beyond reason, that she was quite disappointed at
11387 not seeing him there again the next day, to make his proposals.
11388
11389 "It has been a very agreeable day," said Miss Bennet to Elizabeth. "The
11390 party seemed so well selected, so suitable one with the other. I hope we
11391 may often meet again."
11392
11393 Elizabeth smiled.
11394
11395 "Lizzy, you must not do so. You must not suspect me. It mortifies me.
11396 I assure you that I have now learnt to enjoy his conversation as an
11397 agreeable and sensible young man, without having a wish beyond it. I am
11398 perfectly satisfied, from what his manners now are, that he never had
11399 any design of engaging my affection. It is only that he is blessed
11400 with greater sweetness of address, and a stronger desire of generally
11401 pleasing, than any other man."
11402
11403 "You are very cruel," said her sister, "you will not let me smile, and
11404 are provoking me to it every moment."
11405
11406 "How hard it is in some cases to be believed!"
11407
11408 "And how impossible in others!"
11409
11410 "But why should you wish to persuade me that I feel more than I
11411 acknowledge?"
11412
11413 "That is a question which I hardly know how to answer. We all love to
11414 instruct, though we can teach only what is not worth knowing. Forgive
11415 me; and if you persist in indifference, do not make me your confidante."
11416
11417
11418
11419 Chapter 55
11420
11421
11422 A few days after this visit, Mr. Bingley called again, and alone. His
11423 friend had left him that morning for London, but was to return home in
11424 ten days time. He sat with them above an hour, and was in remarkably
11425 good spirits. Mrs. Bennet invited him to dine with them; but, with many
11426 expressions of concern, he confessed himself engaged elsewhere.
11427
11428 "Next time you call," said she, "I hope we shall be more lucky."
11429
11430 He should be particularly happy at any time, etc. etc.; and if she would
11431 give him leave, would take an early opportunity of waiting on them.
11432
11433 "Can you come to-morrow?"
11434
11435 Yes, he had no engagement at all for to-morrow; and her invitation was
11436 accepted with alacrity.
11437
11438 He came, and in such very good time that the ladies were none of them
11439 dressed. In ran Mrs. Bennet to her daughter's room, in her dressing
11440 gown, and with her hair half finished, crying out:
11441
11442 "My dear Jane, make haste and hurry down. He is come--Mr. Bingley is
11443 come. He is, indeed. Make haste, make haste. Here, Sarah, come to Miss
11444 Bennet this moment, and help her on with her gown. Never mind Miss
11445 Lizzy's hair."
11446
11447 "We will be down as soon as we can," said Jane; "but I dare say Kitty is
11448 forwarder than either of us, for she went up stairs half an hour ago."
11449
11450 "Oh! hang Kitty! what has she to do with it? Come be quick, be quick!
11451 Where is your sash, my dear?"
11452
11453 But when her mother was gone, Jane would not be prevailed on to go down
11454 without one of her sisters.
11455
11456 The same anxiety to get them by themselves was visible again in the
11457 evening. After tea, Mr. Bennet retired to the library, as was his
11458 custom, and Mary went up stairs to her instrument. Two obstacles of
11459 the five being thus removed, Mrs. Bennet sat looking and winking at
11460 Elizabeth and Catherine for a considerable time, without making any
11461 impression on them. Elizabeth would not observe her; and when at last
11462 Kitty did, she very innocently said, "What is the matter mamma? What do
11463 you keep winking at me for? What am I to do?"
11464
11465 "Nothing child, nothing. I did not wink at you." She then sat still
11466 five minutes longer; but unable to waste such a precious occasion, she
11467 suddenly got up, and saying to Kitty, "Come here, my love, I want to
11468 speak to you," took her out of the room. Jane instantly gave a look
11469 at Elizabeth which spoke her distress at such premeditation, and her
11470 entreaty that _she_ would not give in to it. In a few minutes, Mrs.
11471 Bennet half-opened the door and called out:
11472
11473 "Lizzy, my dear, I want to speak with you."
11474
11475 Elizabeth was forced to go.
11476
11477 "We may as well leave them by themselves you know;" said her mother, as
11478 soon as she was in the hall. "Kitty and I are going up stairs to sit in
11479 my dressing-room."
11480
11481 Elizabeth made no attempt to reason with her mother, but remained
11482 quietly in the hall, till she and Kitty were out of sight, then returned
11483 into the drawing-room.
11484
11485 Mrs. Bennet's schemes for this day were ineffectual. Bingley was every
11486 thing that was charming, except the professed lover of her daughter. His
11487 ease and cheerfulness rendered him a most agreeable addition to their
11488 evening party; and he bore with the ill-judged officiousness of the
11489 mother, and heard all her silly remarks with a forbearance and command
11490 of countenance particularly grateful to the daughter.
11491
11492 He scarcely needed an invitation to stay supper; and before he went
11493 away, an engagement was formed, chiefly through his own and Mrs.
11494 Bennet's means, for his coming next morning to shoot with her husband.
11495
11496 After this day, Jane said no more of her indifference. Not a word passed
11497 between the sisters concerning Bingley; but Elizabeth went to bed in
11498 the happy belief that all must speedily be concluded, unless Mr. Darcy
11499 returned within the stated time. Seriously, however, she felt tolerably
11500 persuaded that all this must have taken place with that gentleman's
11501 concurrence.
11502
11503 Bingley was punctual to his appointment; and he and Mr. Bennet spent
11504 the morning together, as had been agreed on. The latter was much more
11505 agreeable than his companion expected. There was nothing of presumption
11506 or folly in Bingley that could provoke his ridicule, or disgust him into
11507 silence; and he was more communicative, and less eccentric, than the
11508 other had ever seen him. Bingley of course returned with him to dinner;
11509 and in the evening Mrs. Bennet's invention was again at work to get
11510 every body away from him and her daughter. Elizabeth, who had a letter
11511 to write, went into the breakfast room for that purpose soon after tea;
11512 for as the others were all going to sit down to cards, she could not be
11513 wanted to counteract her mother's schemes.
11514
11515 But on returning to the drawing-room, when her letter was finished, she
11516 saw, to her infinite surprise, there was reason to fear that her mother
11517 had been too ingenious for her. On opening the door, she perceived her
11518 sister and Bingley standing together over the hearth, as if engaged in
11519 earnest conversation; and had this led to no suspicion, the faces of
11520 both, as they hastily turned round and moved away from each other, would
11521 have told it all. Their situation was awkward enough; but _hers_ she
11522 thought was still worse. Not a syllable was uttered by either; and
11523 Elizabeth was on the point of going away again, when Bingley, who as
11524 well as the other had sat down, suddenly rose, and whispering a few
11525 words to her sister, ran out of the room.
11526
11527 Jane could have no reserves from Elizabeth, where confidence would give
11528 pleasure; and instantly embracing her, acknowledged, with the liveliest
11529 emotion, that she was the happiest creature in the world.
11530
11531 "'Tis too much!" she added, "by far too much. I do not deserve it. Oh!
11532 why is not everybody as happy?"
11533
11534 Elizabeth's congratulations were given with a sincerity, a warmth,
11535 a delight, which words could but poorly express. Every sentence of
11536 kindness was a fresh source of happiness to Jane. But she would not
11537 allow herself to stay with her sister, or say half that remained to be
11538 said for the present.
11539
11540 "I must go instantly to my mother;" she cried. "I would not on any
11541 account trifle with her affectionate solicitude; or allow her to hear it
11542 from anyone but myself. He is gone to my father already. Oh! Lizzy, to
11543 know that what I have to relate will give such pleasure to all my dear
11544 family! how shall I bear so much happiness!"
11545
11546 She then hastened away to her mother, who had purposely broken up the
11547 card party, and was sitting up stairs with Kitty.
11548
11549 Elizabeth, who was left by herself, now smiled at the rapidity and ease
11550 with which an affair was finally settled, that had given them so many
11551 previous months of suspense and vexation.
11552
11553 "And this," said she, "is the end of all his friend's anxious
11554 circumspection! of all his sister's falsehood and contrivance! the
11555 happiest, wisest, most reasonable end!"
11556
11557 In a few minutes she was joined by Bingley, whose conference with her
11558 father had been short and to the purpose.
11559
11560 "Where is your sister?" said he hastily, as he opened the door.
11561
11562 "With my mother up stairs. She will be down in a moment, I dare say."
11563
11564 He then shut the door, and, coming up to her, claimed the good wishes
11565 and affection of a sister. Elizabeth honestly and heartily expressed
11566 her delight in the prospect of their relationship. They shook hands with
11567 great cordiality; and then, till her sister came down, she had to listen
11568 to all he had to say of his own happiness, and of Jane's perfections;
11569 and in spite of his being a lover, Elizabeth really believed all his
11570 expectations of felicity to be rationally founded, because they had for
11571 basis the excellent understanding, and super-excellent disposition of
11572 Jane, and a general similarity of feeling and taste between her and
11573 himself.
11574
11575 It was an evening of no common delight to them all; the satisfaction of
11576 Miss Bennet's mind gave a glow of such sweet animation to her face, as
11577 made her look handsomer than ever. Kitty simpered and smiled, and hoped
11578 her turn was coming soon. Mrs. Bennet could not give her consent or
11579 speak her approbation in terms warm enough to satisfy her feelings,
11580 though she talked to Bingley of nothing else for half an hour; and when
11581 Mr. Bennet joined them at supper, his voice and manner plainly showed
11582 how really happy he was.
11583
11584 Not a word, however, passed his lips in allusion to it, till their
11585 visitor took his leave for the night; but as soon as he was gone, he
11586 turned to his daughter, and said:
11587
11588 "Jane, I congratulate you. You will be a very happy woman."
11589
11590 Jane went to him instantly, kissed him, and thanked him for his
11591 goodness.
11592
11593 "You are a good girl;" he replied, "and I have great pleasure in
11594 thinking you will be so happily settled. I have not a doubt of your
11595 doing very well together. Your tempers are by no means unlike. You are
11596 each of you so complying, that nothing will ever be resolved on; so
11597 easy, that every servant will cheat you; and so generous, that you will
11598 always exceed your income."
11599
11600 "I hope not so. Imprudence or thoughtlessness in money matters would be
11601 unpardonable in me."
11602
11603 "Exceed their income! My dear Mr. Bennet," cried his wife, "what are you
11604 talking of? Why, he has four or five thousand a year, and very likely
11605 more." Then addressing her daughter, "Oh! my dear, dear Jane, I am so
11606 happy! I am sure I shan't get a wink of sleep all night. I knew how it
11607 would be. I always said it must be so, at last. I was sure you could not
11608 be so beautiful for nothing! I remember, as soon as ever I saw him, when
11609 he first came into Hertfordshire last year, I thought how likely it was
11610 that you should come together. Oh! he is the handsomest young man that
11611 ever was seen!"
11612
11613 Wickham, Lydia, were all forgotten. Jane was beyond competition her
11614 favourite child. At that moment, she cared for no other. Her younger
11615 sisters soon began to make interest with her for objects of happiness
11616 which she might in future be able to dispense.
11617
11618 Mary petitioned for the use of the library at Netherfield; and Kitty
11619 begged very hard for a few balls there every winter.
11620
11621 Bingley, from this time, was of course a daily visitor at Longbourn;
11622 coming frequently before breakfast, and always remaining till after
11623 supper; unless when some barbarous neighbour, who could not be enough
11624 detested, had given him an invitation to dinner which he thought himself
11625 obliged to accept.
11626
11627 Elizabeth had now but little time for conversation with her sister; for
11628 while he was present, Jane had no attention to bestow on anyone else;
11629 but she found herself considerably useful to both of them in those hours
11630 of separation that must sometimes occur. In the absence of Jane, he
11631 always attached himself to Elizabeth, for the pleasure of talking of
11632 her; and when Bingley was gone, Jane constantly sought the same means of
11633 relief.
11634
11635 "He has made me so happy," said she, one evening, "by telling me that he
11636 was totally ignorant of my being in town last spring! I had not believed
11637 it possible."
11638
11639 "I suspected as much," replied Elizabeth. "But how did he account for
11640 it?"
11641
11642 "It must have been his sister's doing. They were certainly no friends to
11643 his acquaintance with me, which I cannot wonder at, since he might have
11644 chosen so much more advantageously in many respects. But when they see,
11645 as I trust they will, that their brother is happy with me, they will
11646 learn to be contented, and we shall be on good terms again; though we
11647 can never be what we once were to each other."
11648
11649 "That is the most unforgiving speech," said Elizabeth, "that I ever
11650 heard you utter. Good girl! It would vex me, indeed, to see you again
11651 the dupe of Miss Bingley's pretended regard."
11652
11653 "Would you believe it, Lizzy, that when he went to town last November,
11654 he really loved me, and nothing but a persuasion of _my_ being
11655 indifferent would have prevented his coming down again!"
11656
11657 "He made a little mistake to be sure; but it is to the credit of his
11658 modesty."
11659
11660 This naturally introduced a panegyric from Jane on his diffidence, and
11661 the little value he put on his own good qualities. Elizabeth was pleased
11662 to find that he had not betrayed the interference of his friend; for,
11663 though Jane had the most generous and forgiving heart in the world, she
11664 knew it was a circumstance which must prejudice her against him.
11665
11666 "I am certainly the most fortunate creature that ever existed!" cried
11667 Jane. "Oh! Lizzy, why am I thus singled from my family, and blessed
11668 above them all! If I could but see _you_ as happy! If there _were_ but
11669 such another man for you!"
11670
11671 "If you were to give me forty such men, I never could be so happy as
11672 you. Till I have your disposition, your goodness, I never can have your
11673 happiness. No, no, let me shift for myself; and, perhaps, if I have very
11674 good luck, I may meet with another Mr. Collins in time."
11675
11676 The situation of affairs in the Longbourn family could not be long a
11677 secret. Mrs. Bennet was privileged to whisper it to Mrs. Phillips,
11678 and she ventured, without any permission, to do the same by all her
11679 neighbours in Meryton.
11680
11681 The Bennets were speedily pronounced to be the luckiest family in the
11682 world, though only a few weeks before, when Lydia had first run away,
11683 they had been generally proved to be marked out for misfortune.
11684
11685
11686
11687 Chapter 56
11688
11689
11690 One morning, about a week after Bingley's engagement with Jane had been
11691 formed, as he and the females of the family were sitting together in the
11692 dining-room, their attention was suddenly drawn to the window, by the
11693 sound of a carriage; and they perceived a chaise and four driving up
11694 the lawn. It was too early in the morning for visitors, and besides, the
11695 equipage did not answer to that of any of their neighbours. The horses
11696 were post; and neither the carriage, nor the livery of the servant who
11697 preceded it, were familiar to them. As it was certain, however, that
11698 somebody was coming, Bingley instantly prevailed on Miss Bennet to avoid
11699 the confinement of such an intrusion, and walk away with him into the
11700 shrubbery. They both set off, and the conjectures of the remaining three
11701 continued, though with little satisfaction, till the door was thrown
11702 open and their visitor entered. It was Lady Catherine de Bourgh.
11703
11704 They were of course all intending to be surprised; but their
11705 astonishment was beyond their expectation; and on the part of Mrs.
11706 Bennet and Kitty, though she was perfectly unknown to them, even
11707 inferior to what Elizabeth felt.
11708
11709 She entered the room with an air more than usually ungracious, made no
11710 other reply to Elizabeth's salutation than a slight inclination of the
11711 head, and sat down without saying a word. Elizabeth had mentioned her
11712 name to her mother on her ladyship's entrance, though no request of
11713 introduction had been made.
11714
11715 Mrs. Bennet, all amazement, though flattered by having a guest of such
11716 high importance, received her with the utmost politeness. After sitting
11717 for a moment in silence, she said very stiffly to Elizabeth,
11718
11719 "I hope you are well, Miss Bennet. That lady, I suppose, is your
11720 mother."
11721
11722 Elizabeth replied very concisely that she was.
11723
11724 "And _that_ I suppose is one of your sisters."
11725
11726 "Yes, madam," said Mrs. Bennet, delighted to speak to Lady Catherine.
11727 "She is my youngest girl but one. My youngest of all is lately married,
11728 and my eldest is somewhere about the grounds, walking with a young man
11729 who, I believe, will soon become a part of the family."
11730
11731 "You have a very small park here," returned Lady Catherine after a short
11732 silence.
11733
11734 "It is nothing in comparison of Rosings, my lady, I dare say; but I
11735 assure you it is much larger than Sir William Lucas's."
11736
11737 "This must be a most inconvenient sitting room for the evening, in
11738 summer; the windows are full west."
11739
11740 Mrs. Bennet assured her that they never sat there after dinner, and then
11741 added:
11742
11743 "May I take the liberty of asking your ladyship whether you left Mr. and
11744 Mrs. Collins well."
11745
11746 "Yes, very well. I saw them the night before last."
11747
11748 Elizabeth now expected that she would produce a letter for her from
11749 Charlotte, as it seemed the only probable motive for her calling. But no
11750 letter appeared, and she was completely puzzled.
11751
11752 Mrs. Bennet, with great civility, begged her ladyship to take some
11753 refreshment; but Lady Catherine very resolutely, and not very politely,
11754 declined eating anything; and then, rising up, said to Elizabeth,
11755
11756 "Miss Bennet, there seemed to be a prettyish kind of a little wilderness
11757 on one side of your lawn. I should be glad to take a turn in it, if you
11758 will favour me with your company."
11759
11760 "Go, my dear," cried her mother, "and show her ladyship about the
11761 different walks. I think she will be pleased with the hermitage."
11762
11763 Elizabeth obeyed, and running into her own room for her parasol,
11764 attended her noble guest downstairs. As they passed through the
11765 hall, Lady Catherine opened the doors into the dining-parlour and
11766 drawing-room, and pronouncing them, after a short survey, to be decent
11767 looking rooms, walked on.
11768
11769 Her carriage remained at the door, and Elizabeth saw that her
11770 waiting-woman was in it. They proceeded in silence along the gravel walk
11771 that led to the copse; Elizabeth was determined to make no effort for
11772 conversation with a woman who was now more than usually insolent and
11773 disagreeable.
11774
11775 "How could I ever think her like her nephew?" said she, as she looked in
11776 her face.
11777
11778 As soon as they entered the copse, Lady Catherine began in the following
11779 manner:--
11780
11781 "You can be at no loss, Miss Bennet, to understand the reason of my
11782 journey hither. Your own heart, your own conscience, must tell you why I
11783 come."
11784
11785 Elizabeth looked with unaffected astonishment.
11786
11787 "Indeed, you are mistaken, Madam. I have not been at all able to account
11788 for the honour of seeing you here."
11789
11790 "Miss Bennet," replied her ladyship, in an angry tone, "you ought to
11791 know, that I am not to be trifled with. But however insincere _you_ may
11792 choose to be, you shall not find _me_ so. My character has ever been
11793 celebrated for its sincerity and frankness, and in a cause of such
11794 moment as this, I shall certainly not depart from it. A report of a most
11795 alarming nature reached me two days ago. I was told that not only your
11796 sister was on the point of being most advantageously married, but that
11797 you, that Miss Elizabeth Bennet, would, in all likelihood, be soon
11798 afterwards united to my nephew, my own nephew, Mr. Darcy. Though I
11799 _know_ it must be a scandalous falsehood, though I would not injure him
11800 so much as to suppose the truth of it possible, I instantly resolved
11801 on setting off for this place, that I might make my sentiments known to
11802 you."
11803
11804 "If you believed it impossible to be true," said Elizabeth, colouring
11805 with astonishment and disdain, "I wonder you took the trouble of coming
11806 so far. What could your ladyship propose by it?"
11807
11808 "At once to insist upon having such a report universally contradicted."
11809
11810 "Your coming to Longbourn, to see me and my family," said Elizabeth
11811 coolly, "will be rather a confirmation of it; if, indeed, such a report
11812 is in existence."
11813
11814 "If! Do you then pretend to be ignorant of it? Has it not been
11815 industriously circulated by yourselves? Do you not know that such a
11816 report is spread abroad?"
11817
11818 "I never heard that it was."
11819
11820 "And can you likewise declare, that there is no foundation for it?"
11821
11822 "I do not pretend to possess equal frankness with your ladyship. You may
11823 ask questions which I shall not choose to answer."
11824
11825 "This is not to be borne. Miss Bennet, I insist on being satisfied. Has
11826 he, has my nephew, made you an offer of marriage?"
11827
11828 "Your ladyship has declared it to be impossible."
11829
11830 "It ought to be so; it must be so, while he retains the use of his
11831 reason. But your arts and allurements may, in a moment of infatuation,
11832 have made him forget what he owes to himself and to all his family. You
11833 may have drawn him in."
11834
11835 "If I have, I shall be the last person to confess it."
11836
11837 "Miss Bennet, do you know who I am? I have not been accustomed to such
11838 language as this. I am almost the nearest relation he has in the world,
11839 and am entitled to know all his dearest concerns."
11840
11841 "But you are not entitled to know mine; nor will such behaviour as this,
11842 ever induce me to be explicit."
11843
11844 "Let me be rightly understood. This match, to which you have the
11845 presumption to aspire, can never take place. No, never. Mr. Darcy is
11846 engaged to my daughter. Now what have you to say?"
11847
11848 "Only this; that if he is so, you can have no reason to suppose he will
11849 make an offer to me."
11850
11851 Lady Catherine hesitated for a moment, and then replied:
11852
11853 "The engagement between them is of a peculiar kind. From their infancy,
11854 they have been intended for each other. It was the favourite wish of
11855 _his_ mother, as well as of hers. While in their cradles, we planned
11856 the union: and now, at the moment when the wishes of both sisters would
11857 be accomplished in their marriage, to be prevented by a young woman of
11858 inferior birth, of no importance in the world, and wholly unallied to
11859 the family! Do you pay no regard to the wishes of his friends? To his
11860 tacit engagement with Miss de Bourgh? Are you lost to every feeling of
11861 propriety and delicacy? Have you not heard me say that from his earliest
11862 hours he was destined for his cousin?"
11863
11864 "Yes, and I had heard it before. But what is that to me? If there is
11865 no other objection to my marrying your nephew, I shall certainly not
11866 be kept from it by knowing that his mother and aunt wished him to
11867 marry Miss de Bourgh. You both did as much as you could in planning the
11868 marriage. Its completion depended on others. If Mr. Darcy is neither
11869 by honour nor inclination confined to his cousin, why is not he to make
11870 another choice? And if I am that choice, why may not I accept him?"
11871
11872 "Because honour, decorum, prudence, nay, interest, forbid it. Yes,
11873 Miss Bennet, interest; for do not expect to be noticed by his family or
11874 friends, if you wilfully act against the inclinations of all. You will
11875 be censured, slighted, and despised, by everyone connected with him.
11876 Your alliance will be a disgrace; your name will never even be mentioned
11877 by any of us."
11878
11879 "These are heavy misfortunes," replied Elizabeth. "But the wife of Mr.
11880 Darcy must have such extraordinary sources of happiness necessarily
11881 attached to her situation, that she could, upon the whole, have no cause
11882 to repine."
11883
11884 "Obstinate, headstrong girl! I am ashamed of you! Is this your gratitude
11885 for my attentions to you last spring? Is nothing due to me on that
11886 score? Let us sit down. You are to understand, Miss Bennet, that I came
11887 here with the determined resolution of carrying my purpose; nor will
11888 I be dissuaded from it. I have not been used to submit to any person's
11889 whims. I have not been in the habit of brooking disappointment."
11890
11891 "_That_ will make your ladyship's situation at present more pitiable;
11892 but it will have no effect on me."
11893
11894 "I will not be interrupted. Hear me in silence. My daughter and my
11895 nephew are formed for each other. They are descended, on the maternal
11896 side, from the same noble line; and, on the father's, from respectable,
11897 honourable, and ancient--though untitled--families. Their fortune on
11898 both sides is splendid. They are destined for each other by the voice of
11899 every member of their respective houses; and what is to divide them?
11900 The upstart pretensions of a young woman without family, connections,
11901 or fortune. Is this to be endured! But it must not, shall not be. If you
11902 were sensible of your own good, you would not wish to quit the sphere in
11903 which you have been brought up."
11904
11905 "In marrying your nephew, I should not consider myself as quitting that
11906 sphere. He is a gentleman; I am a gentleman's daughter; so far we are
11907 equal."
11908
11909 "True. You _are_ a gentleman's daughter. But who was your mother?
11910 Who are your uncles and aunts? Do not imagine me ignorant of their
11911 condition."
11912
11913 "Whatever my connections may be," said Elizabeth, "if your nephew does
11914 not object to them, they can be nothing to _you_."
11915
11916 "Tell me once for all, are you engaged to him?"
11917
11918 Though Elizabeth would not, for the mere purpose of obliging Lady
11919 Catherine, have answered this question, she could not but say, after a
11920 moment's deliberation:
11921
11922 "I am not."
11923
11924 Lady Catherine seemed pleased.
11925
11926 "And will you promise me, never to enter into such an engagement?"
11927
11928 "I will make no promise of the kind."
11929
11930 "Miss Bennet I am shocked and astonished. I expected to find a more
11931 reasonable young woman. But do not deceive yourself into a belief that
11932 I will ever recede. I shall not go away till you have given me the
11933 assurance I require."
11934
11935 "And I certainly _never_ shall give it. I am not to be intimidated into
11936 anything so wholly unreasonable. Your ladyship wants Mr. Darcy to marry
11937 your daughter; but would my giving you the wished-for promise make their
11938 marriage at all more probable? Supposing him to be attached to me, would
11939 my refusing to accept his hand make him wish to bestow it on his cousin?
11940 Allow me to say, Lady Catherine, that the arguments with which you have
11941 supported this extraordinary application have been as frivolous as the
11942 application was ill-judged. You have widely mistaken my character, if
11943 you think I can be worked on by such persuasions as these. How far your
11944 nephew might approve of your interference in his affairs, I cannot tell;
11945 but you have certainly no right to concern yourself in mine. I must beg,
11946 therefore, to be importuned no farther on the subject."
11947
11948 "Not so hasty, if you please. I have by no means done. To all the
11949 objections I have already urged, I have still another to add. I am
11950 no stranger to the particulars of your youngest sister's infamous
11951 elopement. I know it all; that the young man's marrying her was a
11952 patched-up business, at the expence of your father and uncles. And is
11953 such a girl to be my nephew's sister? Is her husband, is the son of his
11954 late father's steward, to be his brother? Heaven and earth!--of what are
11955 you thinking? Are the shades of Pemberley to be thus polluted?"
11956
11957 "You can now have nothing further to say," she resentfully answered.
11958 "You have insulted me in every possible method. I must beg to return to
11959 the house."
11960
11961 And she rose as she spoke. Lady Catherine rose also, and they turned
11962 back. Her ladyship was highly incensed.
11963
11964 "You have no regard, then, for the honour and credit of my nephew!
11965 Unfeeling, selfish girl! Do you not consider that a connection with you
11966 must disgrace him in the eyes of everybody?"
11967
11968 "Lady Catherine, I have nothing further to say. You know my sentiments."
11969
11970 "You are then resolved to have him?"
11971
11972 "I have said no such thing. I am only resolved to act in that manner,
11973 which will, in my own opinion, constitute my happiness, without
11974 reference to _you_, or to any person so wholly unconnected with me."
11975
11976 "It is well. You refuse, then, to oblige me. You refuse to obey the
11977 claims of duty, honour, and gratitude. You are determined to ruin him in
11978 the opinion of all his friends, and make him the contempt of the world."
11979
11980 "Neither duty, nor honour, nor gratitude," replied Elizabeth, "have any
11981 possible claim on me, in the present instance. No principle of either
11982 would be violated by my marriage with Mr. Darcy. And with regard to the
11983 resentment of his family, or the indignation of the world, if the former
11984 _were_ excited by his marrying me, it would not give me one moment's
11985 concern--and the world in general would have too much sense to join in
11986 the scorn."
11987
11988 "And this is your real opinion! This is your final resolve! Very well.
11989 I shall now know how to act. Do not imagine, Miss Bennet, that your
11990 ambition will ever be gratified. I came to try you. I hoped to find you
11991 reasonable; but, depend upon it, I will carry my point."
11992
11993 In this manner Lady Catherine talked on, till they were at the door of
11994 the carriage, when, turning hastily round, she added, "I take no leave
11995 of you, Miss Bennet. I send no compliments to your mother. You deserve
11996 no such attention. I am most seriously displeased."
11997
11998 Elizabeth made no answer; and without attempting to persuade her
11999 ladyship to return into the house, walked quietly into it herself. She
12000 heard the carriage drive away as she proceeded up stairs. Her mother
12001 impatiently met her at the door of the dressing-room, to ask why Lady
12002 Catherine would not come in again and rest herself.
12003
12004 "She did not choose it," said her daughter, "she would go."
12005
12006 "She is a very fine-looking woman! and her calling here was prodigiously
12007 civil! for she only came, I suppose, to tell us the Collinses were
12008 well. She is on her road somewhere, I dare say, and so, passing through
12009 Meryton, thought she might as well call on you. I suppose she had
12010 nothing particular to say to you, Lizzy?"
12011
12012 Elizabeth was forced to give into a little falsehood here; for to
12013 acknowledge the substance of their conversation was impossible.
12014
12015
12016
12017 Chapter 57
12018
12019
12020 The discomposure of spirits which this extraordinary visit threw
12021 Elizabeth into, could not be easily overcome; nor could she, for many
12022 hours, learn to think of it less than incessantly. Lady Catherine, it
12023 appeared, had actually taken the trouble of this journey from Rosings,
12024 for the sole purpose of breaking off her supposed engagement with Mr.
12025 Darcy. It was a rational scheme, to be sure! but from what the report
12026 of their engagement could originate, Elizabeth was at a loss to imagine;
12027 till she recollected that _his_ being the intimate friend of Bingley,
12028 and _her_ being the sister of Jane, was enough, at a time when the
12029 expectation of one wedding made everybody eager for another, to supply
12030 the idea. She had not herself forgotten to feel that the marriage of her
12031 sister must bring them more frequently together. And her neighbours
12032 at Lucas Lodge, therefore (for through their communication with the
12033 Collinses, the report, she concluded, had reached Lady Catherine), had
12034 only set that down as almost certain and immediate, which she had looked
12035 forward to as possible at some future time.
12036
12037 In revolving Lady Catherine's expressions, however, she could not help
12038 feeling some uneasiness as to the possible consequence of her persisting
12039 in this interference. From what she had said of her resolution to
12040 prevent their marriage, it occurred to Elizabeth that she must meditate
12041 an application to her nephew; and how _he_ might take a similar
12042 representation of the evils attached to a connection with her, she dared
12043 not pronounce. She knew not the exact degree of his affection for his
12044 aunt, or his dependence on her judgment, but it was natural to suppose
12045 that he thought much higher of her ladyship than _she_ could do; and it
12046 was certain that, in enumerating the miseries of a marriage with _one_,
12047 whose immediate connections were so unequal to his own, his aunt would
12048 address him on his weakest side. With his notions of dignity, he would
12049 probably feel that the arguments, which to Elizabeth had appeared weak
12050 and ridiculous, contained much good sense and solid reasoning.
12051
12052 If he had been wavering before as to what he should do, which had often
12053 seemed likely, the advice and entreaty of so near a relation might
12054 settle every doubt, and determine him at once to be as happy as dignity
12055 unblemished could make him. In that case he would return no more. Lady
12056 Catherine might see him in her way through town; and his engagement to
12057 Bingley of coming again to Netherfield must give way.
12058
12059 "If, therefore, an excuse for not keeping his promise should come to his
12060 friend within a few days," she added, "I shall know how to understand
12061 it. I shall then give over every expectation, every wish of his
12062 constancy. If he is satisfied with only regretting me, when he might
12063 have obtained my affections and hand, I shall soon cease to regret him
12064 at all."
12065
12066 * * * * *
12067
12068 The surprise of the rest of the family, on hearing who their visitor had
12069 been, was very great; but they obligingly satisfied it, with the same
12070 kind of supposition which had appeased Mrs. Bennet's curiosity; and
12071 Elizabeth was spared from much teasing on the subject.
12072
12073 The next morning, as she was going downstairs, she was met by her
12074 father, who came out of his library with a letter in his hand.
12075
12076 "Lizzy," said he, "I was going to look for you; come into my room."
12077
12078 She followed him thither; and her curiosity to know what he had to
12079 tell her was heightened by the supposition of its being in some manner
12080 connected with the letter he held. It suddenly struck her that it
12081 might be from Lady Catherine; and she anticipated with dismay all the
12082 consequent explanations.
12083
12084 She followed her father to the fire place, and they both sat down. He
12085 then said,
12086
12087 "I have received a letter this morning that has astonished me
12088 exceedingly. As it principally concerns yourself, you ought to know its
12089 contents. I did not know before, that I had two daughters on the brink
12090 of matrimony. Let me congratulate you on a very important conquest."
12091
12092 The colour now rushed into Elizabeth's cheeks in the instantaneous
12093 conviction of its being a letter from the nephew, instead of the aunt;
12094 and she was undetermined whether most to be pleased that he explained
12095 himself at all, or offended that his letter was not rather addressed to
12096 herself; when her father continued:
12097
12098 "You look conscious. Young ladies have great penetration in such matters
12099 as these; but I think I may defy even _your_ sagacity, to discover the
12100 name of your admirer. This letter is from Mr. Collins."
12101
12102 "From Mr. Collins! and what can _he_ have to say?"
12103
12104 "Something very much to the purpose of course. He begins with
12105 congratulations on the approaching nuptials of my eldest daughter, of
12106 which, it seems, he has been told by some of the good-natured, gossiping
12107 Lucases. I shall not sport with your impatience, by reading what he says
12108 on that point. What relates to yourself, is as follows: 'Having thus
12109 offered you the sincere congratulations of Mrs. Collins and myself on
12110 this happy event, let me now add a short hint on the subject of another;
12111 of which we have been advertised by the same authority. Your daughter
12112 Elizabeth, it is presumed, will not long bear the name of Bennet, after
12113 her elder sister has resigned it, and the chosen partner of her fate may
12114 be reasonably looked up to as one of the most illustrious personages in
12115 this land.'
12116
12117 "Can you possibly guess, Lizzy, who is meant by this? 'This young
12118 gentleman is blessed, in a peculiar way, with every thing the heart of
12119 mortal can most desire,--splendid property, noble kindred, and extensive
12120 patronage. Yet in spite of all these temptations, let me warn my cousin
12121 Elizabeth, and yourself, of what evils you may incur by a precipitate
12122 closure with this gentleman's proposals, which, of course, you will be
12123 inclined to take immediate advantage of.'
12124
12125 "Have you any idea, Lizzy, who this gentleman is? But now it comes out:
12126
12127 "'My motive for cautioning you is as follows. We have reason to imagine
12128 that his aunt, Lady Catherine de Bourgh, does not look on the match with
12129 a friendly eye.'
12130
12131 "_Mr. Darcy_, you see, is the man! Now, Lizzy, I think I _have_
12132 surprised you. Could he, or the Lucases, have pitched on any man within
12133 the circle of our acquaintance, whose name would have given the lie
12134 more effectually to what they related? Mr. Darcy, who never looks at any
12135 woman but to see a blemish, and who probably never looked at you in his
12136 life! It is admirable!"
12137
12138 Elizabeth tried to join in her father's pleasantry, but could only force
12139 one most reluctant smile. Never had his wit been directed in a manner so
12140 little agreeable to her.
12141
12142 "Are you not diverted?"
12143
12144 "Oh! yes. Pray read on."
12145
12146 "'After mentioning the likelihood of this marriage to her ladyship last
12147 night, she immediately, with her usual condescension, expressed what she
12148 felt on the occasion; when it became apparent, that on the score of some
12149 family objections on the part of my cousin, she would never give her
12150 consent to what she termed so disgraceful a match. I thought it my duty
12151 to give the speediest intelligence of this to my cousin, that she and
12152 her noble admirer may be aware of what they are about, and not run
12153 hastily into a marriage which has not been properly sanctioned.' Mr.
12154 Collins moreover adds, 'I am truly rejoiced that my cousin Lydia's sad
12155 business has been so well hushed up, and am only concerned that their
12156 living together before the marriage took place should be so generally
12157 known. I must not, however, neglect the duties of my station, or refrain
12158 from declaring my amazement at hearing that you received the young
12159 couple into your house as soon as they were married. It was an
12160 encouragement of vice; and had I been the rector of Longbourn, I should
12161 very strenuously have opposed it. You ought certainly to forgive them,
12162 as a Christian, but never to admit them in your sight, or allow their
12163 names to be mentioned in your hearing.' That is his notion of Christian
12164 forgiveness! The rest of his letter is only about his dear Charlotte's
12165 situation, and his expectation of a young olive-branch. But, Lizzy, you
12166 look as if you did not enjoy it. You are not going to be _missish_,
12167 I hope, and pretend to be affronted at an idle report. For what do we
12168 live, but to make sport for our neighbours, and laugh at them in our
12169 turn?"
12170
12171 "Oh!" cried Elizabeth, "I am excessively diverted. But it is so
12172 strange!"
12173
12174 "Yes--_that_ is what makes it amusing. Had they fixed on any other man
12175 it would have been nothing; but _his_ perfect indifference, and _your_
12176 pointed dislike, make it so delightfully absurd! Much as I abominate
12177 writing, I would not give up Mr. Collins's correspondence for any
12178 consideration. Nay, when I read a letter of his, I cannot help giving
12179 him the preference even over Wickham, much as I value the impudence and
12180 hypocrisy of my son-in-law. And pray, Lizzy, what said Lady Catherine
12181 about this report? Did she call to refuse her consent?"
12182
12183 To this question his daughter replied only with a laugh; and as it had
12184 been asked without the least suspicion, she was not distressed by
12185 his repeating it. Elizabeth had never been more at a loss to make her
12186 feelings appear what they were not. It was necessary to laugh, when she
12187 would rather have cried. Her father had most cruelly mortified her, by
12188 what he said of Mr. Darcy's indifference, and she could do nothing but
12189 wonder at such a want of penetration, or fear that perhaps, instead of
12190 his seeing too little, she might have fancied too much.
12191
12192
12193
12194 Chapter 58
12195
12196
12197 Instead of receiving any such letter of excuse from his friend, as
12198 Elizabeth half expected Mr. Bingley to do, he was able to bring Darcy
12199 with him to Longbourn before many days had passed after Lady Catherine's
12200 visit. The gentlemen arrived early; and, before Mrs. Bennet had time
12201 to tell him of their having seen his aunt, of which her daughter sat
12202 in momentary dread, Bingley, who wanted to be alone with Jane, proposed
12203 their all walking out. It was agreed to. Mrs. Bennet was not in the
12204 habit of walking; Mary could never spare time; but the remaining five
12205 set off together. Bingley and Jane, however, soon allowed the others
12206 to outstrip them. They lagged behind, while Elizabeth, Kitty, and Darcy
12207 were to entertain each other. Very little was said by either; Kitty
12208 was too much afraid of him to talk; Elizabeth was secretly forming a
12209 desperate resolution; and perhaps he might be doing the same.
12210
12211 They walked towards the Lucases, because Kitty wished to call upon
12212 Maria; and as Elizabeth saw no occasion for making it a general concern,
12213 when Kitty left them she went boldly on with him alone. Now was the
12214 moment for her resolution to be executed, and, while her courage was
12215 high, she immediately said:
12216
12217 "Mr. Darcy, I am a very selfish creature; and, for the sake of giving
12218 relief to my own feelings, care not how much I may be wounding yours. I
12219 can no longer help thanking you for your unexampled kindness to my
12220 poor sister. Ever since I have known it, I have been most anxious to
12221 acknowledge to you how gratefully I feel it. Were it known to the rest
12222 of my family, I should not have merely my own gratitude to express."
12223
12224 "I am sorry, exceedingly sorry," replied Darcy, in a tone of surprise
12225 and emotion, "that you have ever been informed of what may, in a
12226 mistaken light, have given you uneasiness. I did not think Mrs. Gardiner
12227 was so little to be trusted."
12228
12229 "You must not blame my aunt. Lydia's thoughtlessness first betrayed to
12230 me that you had been concerned in the matter; and, of course, I could
12231 not rest till I knew the particulars. Let me thank you again and again,
12232 in the name of all my family, for that generous compassion which induced
12233 you to take so much trouble, and bear so many mortifications, for the
12234 sake of discovering them."
12235
12236 "If you _will_ thank me," he replied, "let it be for yourself alone.
12237 That the wish of giving happiness to you might add force to the other
12238 inducements which led me on, I shall not attempt to deny. But your
12239 _family_ owe me nothing. Much as I respect them, I believe I thought
12240 only of _you_."
12241
12242 Elizabeth was too much embarrassed to say a word. After a short pause,
12243 her companion added, "You are too generous to trifle with me. If your
12244 feelings are still what they were last April, tell me so at once. _My_
12245 affections and wishes are unchanged, but one word from you will silence
12246 me on this subject for ever."
12247
12248 Elizabeth, feeling all the more than common awkwardness and anxiety of
12249 his situation, now forced herself to speak; and immediately, though not
12250 very fluently, gave him to understand that her sentiments had undergone
12251 so material a change, since the period to which he alluded, as to make
12252 her receive with gratitude and pleasure his present assurances. The
12253 happiness which this reply produced, was such as he had probably never
12254 felt before; and he expressed himself on the occasion as sensibly and as
12255 warmly as a man violently in love can be supposed to do. Had Elizabeth
12256 been able to encounter his eye, she might have seen how well the
12257 expression of heartfelt delight, diffused over his face, became him;
12258 but, though she could not look, she could listen, and he told her of
12259 feelings, which, in proving of what importance she was to him, made his
12260 affection every moment more valuable.
12261
12262 They walked on, without knowing in what direction. There was too much to
12263 be thought, and felt, and said, for attention to any other objects. She
12264 soon learnt that they were indebted for their present good understanding
12265 to the efforts of his aunt, who did call on him in her return through
12266 London, and there relate her journey to Longbourn, its motive, and the
12267 substance of her conversation with Elizabeth; dwelling emphatically on
12268 every expression of the latter which, in her ladyship's apprehension,
12269 peculiarly denoted her perverseness and assurance; in the belief that
12270 such a relation must assist her endeavours to obtain that promise
12271 from her nephew which she had refused to give. But, unluckily for her
12272 ladyship, its effect had been exactly contrariwise.
12273
12274 "It taught me to hope," said he, "as I had scarcely ever allowed myself
12275 to hope before. I knew enough of your disposition to be certain that,
12276 had you been absolutely, irrevocably decided against me, you would have
12277 acknowledged it to Lady Catherine, frankly and openly."
12278
12279 Elizabeth coloured and laughed as she replied, "Yes, you know enough
12280 of my frankness to believe me capable of _that_. After abusing you so
12281 abominably to your face, I could have no scruple in abusing you to all
12282 your relations."
12283
12284 "What did you say of me, that I did not deserve? For, though your
12285 accusations were ill-founded, formed on mistaken premises, my
12286 behaviour to you at the time had merited the severest reproof. It was
12287 unpardonable. I cannot think of it without abhorrence."
12288
12289 "We will not quarrel for the greater share of blame annexed to that
12290 evening," said Elizabeth. "The conduct of neither, if strictly examined,
12291 will be irreproachable; but since then, we have both, I hope, improved
12292 in civility."
12293
12294 "I cannot be so easily reconciled to myself. The recollection of what I
12295 then said, of my conduct, my manners, my expressions during the whole of
12296 it, is now, and has been many months, inexpressibly painful to me. Your
12297 reproof, so well applied, I shall never forget: 'had you behaved in a
12298 more gentlemanlike manner.' Those were your words. You know not, you can
12299 scarcely conceive, how they have tortured me;--though it was some time,
12300 I confess, before I was reasonable enough to allow their justice."
12301
12302 "I was certainly very far from expecting them to make so strong an
12303 impression. I had not the smallest idea of their being ever felt in such
12304 a way."
12305
12306 "I can easily believe it. You thought me then devoid of every proper
12307 feeling, I am sure you did. The turn of your countenance I shall never
12308 forget, as you said that I could not have addressed you in any possible
12309 way that would induce you to accept me."
12310
12311 "Oh! do not repeat what I then said. These recollections will not do at
12312 all. I assure you that I have long been most heartily ashamed of it."
12313
12314 Darcy mentioned his letter. "Did it," said he, "did it soon make you
12315 think better of me? Did you, on reading it, give any credit to its
12316 contents?"
12317
12318 She explained what its effect on her had been, and how gradually all her
12319 former prejudices had been removed.
12320
12321 "I knew," said he, "that what I wrote must give you pain, but it was
12322 necessary. I hope you have destroyed the letter. There was one part
12323 especially, the opening of it, which I should dread your having the
12324 power of reading again. I can remember some expressions which might
12325 justly make you hate me."
12326
12327 "The letter shall certainly be burnt, if you believe it essential to the
12328 preservation of my regard; but, though we have both reason to think my
12329 opinions not entirely unalterable, they are not, I hope, quite so easily
12330 changed as that implies."
12331
12332 "When I wrote that letter," replied Darcy, "I believed myself perfectly
12333 calm and cool, but I am since convinced that it was written in a
12334 dreadful bitterness of spirit."
12335
12336 "The letter, perhaps, began in bitterness, but it did not end so. The
12337 adieu is charity itself. But think no more of the letter. The feelings
12338 of the person who wrote, and the person who received it, are now
12339 so widely different from what they were then, that every unpleasant
12340 circumstance attending it ought to be forgotten. You must learn some
12341 of my philosophy. Think only of the past as its remembrance gives you
12342 pleasure."
12343
12344 "I cannot give you credit for any philosophy of the kind. Your
12345 retrospections must be so totally void of reproach, that the contentment
12346 arising from them is not of philosophy, but, what is much better, of
12347 innocence. But with me, it is not so. Painful recollections will intrude
12348 which cannot, which ought not, to be repelled. I have been a selfish
12349 being all my life, in practice, though not in principle. As a child I
12350 was taught what was right, but I was not taught to correct my temper. I
12351 was given good principles, but left to follow them in pride and conceit.
12352 Unfortunately an only son (for many years an only child), I was spoilt
12353 by my parents, who, though good themselves (my father, particularly, all
12354 that was benevolent and amiable), allowed, encouraged, almost taught
12355 me to be selfish and overbearing; to care for none beyond my own family
12356 circle; to think meanly of all the rest of the world; to wish at least
12357 to think meanly of their sense and worth compared with my own. Such I
12358 was, from eight to eight and twenty; and such I might still have been
12359 but for you, dearest, loveliest Elizabeth! What do I not owe you! You
12360 taught me a lesson, hard indeed at first, but most advantageous. By you,
12361 I was properly humbled. I came to you without a doubt of my reception.
12362 You showed me how insufficient were all my pretensions to please a woman
12363 worthy of being pleased."
12364
12365 "Had you then persuaded yourself that I should?"
12366
12367 "Indeed I had. What will you think of my vanity? I believed you to be
12368 wishing, expecting my addresses."
12369
12370 "My manners must have been in fault, but not intentionally, I assure
12371 you. I never meant to deceive you, but my spirits might often lead me
12372 wrong. How you must have hated me after _that_ evening?"
12373
12374 "Hate you! I was angry perhaps at first, but my anger soon began to take
12375 a proper direction."
12376
12377 "I am almost afraid of asking what you thought of me, when we met at
12378 Pemberley. You blamed me for coming?"
12379
12380 "No indeed; I felt nothing but surprise."
12381
12382 "Your surprise could not be greater than _mine_ in being noticed by you.
12383 My conscience told me that I deserved no extraordinary politeness, and I
12384 confess that I did not expect to receive _more_ than my due."
12385
12386 "My object then," replied Darcy, "was to show you, by every civility in
12387 my power, that I was not so mean as to resent the past; and I hoped to
12388 obtain your forgiveness, to lessen your ill opinion, by letting you
12389 see that your reproofs had been attended to. How soon any other wishes
12390 introduced themselves I can hardly tell, but I believe in about half an
12391 hour after I had seen you."
12392
12393 He then told her of Georgiana's delight in her acquaintance, and of her
12394 disappointment at its sudden interruption; which naturally leading to
12395 the cause of that interruption, she soon learnt that his resolution of
12396 following her from Derbyshire in quest of her sister had been formed
12397 before he quitted the inn, and that his gravity and thoughtfulness
12398 there had arisen from no other struggles than what such a purpose must
12399 comprehend.
12400
12401 She expressed her gratitude again, but it was too painful a subject to
12402 each, to be dwelt on farther.
12403
12404 After walking several miles in a leisurely manner, and too busy to know
12405 anything about it, they found at last, on examining their watches, that
12406 it was time to be at home.
12407
12408 "What could become of Mr. Bingley and Jane!" was a wonder which
12409 introduced the discussion of their affairs. Darcy was delighted with
12410 their engagement; his friend had given him the earliest information of
12411 it.
12412
12413 "I must ask whether you were surprised?" said Elizabeth.
12414
12415 "Not at all. When I went away, I felt that it would soon happen."
12416
12417 "That is to say, you had given your permission. I guessed as much." And
12418 though he exclaimed at the term, she found that it had been pretty much
12419 the case.
12420
12421 "On the evening before my going to London," said he, "I made a
12422 confession to him, which I believe I ought to have made long ago. I
12423 told him of all that had occurred to make my former interference in his
12424 affairs absurd and impertinent. His surprise was great. He had never had
12425 the slightest suspicion. I told him, moreover, that I believed myself
12426 mistaken in supposing, as I had done, that your sister was indifferent
12427 to him; and as I could easily perceive that his attachment to her was
12428 unabated, I felt no doubt of their happiness together."
12429
12430 Elizabeth could not help smiling at his easy manner of directing his
12431 friend.
12432
12433 "Did you speak from your own observation," said she, "when you told him
12434 that my sister loved him, or merely from my information last spring?"
12435
12436 "From the former. I had narrowly observed her during the two visits
12437 which I had lately made here; and I was convinced of her affection."
12438
12439 "And your assurance of it, I suppose, carried immediate conviction to
12440 him."
12441
12442 "It did. Bingley is most unaffectedly modest. His diffidence had
12443 prevented his depending on his own judgment in so anxious a case, but
12444 his reliance on mine made every thing easy. I was obliged to confess
12445 one thing, which for a time, and not unjustly, offended him. I could not
12446 allow myself to conceal that your sister had been in town three months
12447 last winter, that I had known it, and purposely kept it from him. He was
12448 angry. But his anger, I am persuaded, lasted no longer than he remained
12449 in any doubt of your sister's sentiments. He has heartily forgiven me
12450 now."
12451
12452 Elizabeth longed to observe that Mr. Bingley had been a most delightful
12453 friend; so easily guided that his worth was invaluable; but she checked
12454 herself. She remembered that he had yet to learn to be laughed at,
12455 and it was rather too early to begin. In anticipating the happiness
12456 of Bingley, which of course was to be inferior only to his own, he
12457 continued the conversation till they reached the house. In the hall they
12458 parted.
12459
12460
12461
12462 Chapter 59
12463
12464
12465 "My dear Lizzy, where can you have been walking to?" was a question
12466 which Elizabeth received from Jane as soon as she entered their room,
12467 and from all the others when they sat down to table. She had only to
12468 say in reply, that they had wandered about, till she was beyond her own
12469 knowledge. She coloured as she spoke; but neither that, nor anything
12470 else, awakened a suspicion of the truth.
12471
12472 The evening passed quietly, unmarked by anything extraordinary. The
12473 acknowledged lovers talked and laughed, the unacknowledged were silent.
12474 Darcy was not of a disposition in which happiness overflows in mirth;
12475 and Elizabeth, agitated and confused, rather _knew_ that she was happy
12476 than _felt_ herself to be so; for, besides the immediate embarrassment,
12477 there were other evils before her. She anticipated what would be felt
12478 in the family when her situation became known; she was aware that no
12479 one liked him but Jane; and even feared that with the others it was a
12480 dislike which not all his fortune and consequence might do away.
12481
12482 At night she opened her heart to Jane. Though suspicion was very far
12483 from Miss Bennet's general habits, she was absolutely incredulous here.
12484
12485 "You are joking, Lizzy. This cannot be!--engaged to Mr. Darcy! No, no,
12486 you shall not deceive me. I know it to be impossible."
12487
12488 "This is a wretched beginning indeed! My sole dependence was on you; and
12489 I am sure nobody else will believe me, if you do not. Yet, indeed, I am
12490 in earnest. I speak nothing but the truth. He still loves me, and we are
12491 engaged."
12492
12493 Jane looked at her doubtingly. "Oh, Lizzy! it cannot be. I know how much
12494 you dislike him."
12495
12496 "You know nothing of the matter. _That_ is all to be forgot. Perhaps I
12497 did not always love him so well as I do now. But in such cases as
12498 these, a good memory is unpardonable. This is the last time I shall ever
12499 remember it myself."
12500
12501 Miss Bennet still looked all amazement. Elizabeth again, and more
12502 seriously assured her of its truth.
12503
12504 "Good Heaven! can it be really so! Yet now I must believe you," cried
12505 Jane. "My dear, dear Lizzy, I would--I do congratulate you--but are you
12506 certain? forgive the question--are you quite certain that you can be
12507 happy with him?"
12508
12509 "There can be no doubt of that. It is settled between us already, that
12510 we are to be the happiest couple in the world. But are you pleased,
12511 Jane? Shall you like to have such a brother?"
12512
12513 "Very, very much. Nothing could give either Bingley or myself more
12514 delight. But we considered it, we talked of it as impossible. And do you
12515 really love him quite well enough? Oh, Lizzy! do anything rather than
12516 marry without affection. Are you quite sure that you feel what you ought
12517 to do?"
12518
12519 "Oh, yes! You will only think I feel _more_ than I ought to do, when I
12520 tell you all."
12521
12522 "What do you mean?"
12523
12524 "Why, I must confess that I love him better than I do Bingley. I am
12525 afraid you will be angry."
12526
12527 "My dearest sister, now _be_ serious. I want to talk very seriously. Let
12528 me know every thing that I am to know, without delay. Will you tell me
12529 how long you have loved him?"
12530
12531 "It has been coming on so gradually, that I hardly know when it began.
12532 But I believe I must date it from my first seeing his beautiful grounds
12533 at Pemberley."
12534
12535 Another entreaty that she would be serious, however, produced the
12536 desired effect; and she soon satisfied Jane by her solemn assurances
12537 of attachment. When convinced on that article, Miss Bennet had nothing
12538 further to wish.
12539
12540 "Now I am quite happy," said she, "for you will be as happy as myself.
12541 I always had a value for him. Were it for nothing but his love of you,
12542 I must always have esteemed him; but now, as Bingley's friend and your
12543 husband, there can be only Bingley and yourself more dear to me. But
12544 Lizzy, you have been very sly, very reserved with me. How little did you
12545 tell me of what passed at Pemberley and Lambton! I owe all that I know
12546 of it to another, not to you."
12547
12548 Elizabeth told her the motives of her secrecy. She had been unwilling
12549 to mention Bingley; and the unsettled state of her own feelings had made
12550 her equally avoid the name of his friend. But now she would no longer
12551 conceal from her his share in Lydia's marriage. All was acknowledged,
12552 and half the night spent in conversation.
12553
12554 * * * * *
12555
12556 "Good gracious!" cried Mrs. Bennet, as she stood at a window the next
12557 morning, "if that disagreeable Mr. Darcy is not coming here again with
12558 our dear Bingley! What can he mean by being so tiresome as to be always
12559 coming here? I had no notion but he would go a-shooting, or something or
12560 other, and not disturb us with his company. What shall we do with him?
12561 Lizzy, you must walk out with him again, that he may not be in Bingley's
12562 way."
12563
12564 Elizabeth could hardly help laughing at so convenient a proposal; yet
12565 was really vexed that her mother should be always giving him such an
12566 epithet.
12567
12568 As soon as they entered, Bingley looked at her so expressively, and
12569 shook hands with such warmth, as left no doubt of his good information;
12570 and he soon afterwards said aloud, "Mrs. Bennet, have you no more lanes
12571 hereabouts in which Lizzy may lose her way again to-day?"
12572
12573 "I advise Mr. Darcy, and Lizzy, and Kitty," said Mrs. Bennet, "to walk
12574 to Oakham Mount this morning. It is a nice long walk, and Mr. Darcy has
12575 never seen the view."
12576
12577 "It may do very well for the others," replied Mr. Bingley; "but I am
12578 sure it will be too much for Kitty. Won't it, Kitty?" Kitty owned that
12579 she had rather stay at home. Darcy professed a great curiosity to see
12580 the view from the Mount, and Elizabeth silently consented. As she went
12581 up stairs to get ready, Mrs. Bennet followed her, saying:
12582
12583 "I am quite sorry, Lizzy, that you should be forced to have that
12584 disagreeable man all to yourself. But I hope you will not mind it: it is
12585 all for Jane's sake, you know; and there is no occasion for talking
12586 to him, except just now and then. So, do not put yourself to
12587 inconvenience."
12588
12589 During their walk, it was resolved that Mr. Bennet's consent should be
12590 asked in the course of the evening. Elizabeth reserved to herself the
12591 application for her mother's. She could not determine how her mother
12592 would take it; sometimes doubting whether all his wealth and grandeur
12593 would be enough to overcome her abhorrence of the man. But whether she
12594 were violently set against the match, or violently delighted with it, it
12595 was certain that her manner would be equally ill adapted to do credit
12596 to her sense; and she could no more bear that Mr. Darcy should hear
12597 the first raptures of her joy, than the first vehemence of her
12598 disapprobation.
12599
12600 * * * * *
12601
12602 In the evening, soon after Mr. Bennet withdrew to the library, she saw
12603 Mr. Darcy rise also and follow him, and her agitation on seeing it was
12604 extreme. She did not fear her father's opposition, but he was going to
12605 be made unhappy; and that it should be through her means--that _she_,
12606 his favourite child, should be distressing him by her choice, should be
12607 filling him with fears and regrets in disposing of her--was a wretched
12608 reflection, and she sat in misery till Mr. Darcy appeared again, when,
12609 looking at him, she was a little relieved by his smile. In a few minutes
12610 he approached the table where she was sitting with Kitty; and, while
12611 pretending to admire her work said in a whisper, "Go to your father, he
12612 wants you in the library." She was gone directly.
12613
12614 Her father was walking about the room, looking grave and anxious.
12615 "Lizzy," said he, "what are you doing? Are you out of your senses, to be
12616 accepting this man? Have not you always hated him?"
12617
12618 How earnestly did she then wish that her former opinions had been more
12619 reasonable, her expressions more moderate! It would have spared her from
12620 explanations and professions which it was exceedingly awkward to give;
12621 but they were now necessary, and she assured him, with some confusion,
12622 of her attachment to Mr. Darcy.
12623
12624 "Or, in other words, you are determined to have him. He is rich, to be
12625 sure, and you may have more fine clothes and fine carriages than Jane.
12626 But will they make you happy?"
12627
12628 "Have you any other objection," said Elizabeth, "than your belief of my
12629 indifference?"
12630
12631 "None at all. We all know him to be a proud, unpleasant sort of man; but
12632 this would be nothing if you really liked him."
12633
12634 "I do, I do like him," she replied, with tears in her eyes, "I love him.
12635 Indeed he has no improper pride. He is perfectly amiable. You do not
12636 know what he really is; then pray do not pain me by speaking of him in
12637 such terms."
12638
12639 "Lizzy," said her father, "I have given him my consent. He is the kind
12640 of man, indeed, to whom I should never dare refuse anything, which he
12641 condescended to ask. I now give it to _you_, if you are resolved on
12642 having him. But let me advise you to think better of it. I know
12643 your disposition, Lizzy. I know that you could be neither happy nor
12644 respectable, unless you truly esteemed your husband; unless you looked
12645 up to him as a superior. Your lively talents would place you in the
12646 greatest danger in an unequal marriage. You could scarcely escape
12647 discredit and misery. My child, let me not have the grief of seeing
12648 _you_ unable to respect your partner in life. You know not what you are
12649 about."
12650
12651 Elizabeth, still more affected, was earnest and solemn in her reply; and
12652 at length, by repeated assurances that Mr. Darcy was really the object
12653 of her choice, by explaining the gradual change which her estimation of
12654 him had undergone, relating her absolute certainty that his affection
12655 was not the work of a day, but had stood the test of many months'
12656 suspense, and enumerating with energy all his good qualities, she did
12657 conquer her father's incredulity, and reconcile him to the match.
12658
12659 "Well, my dear," said he, when she ceased speaking, "I have no more to
12660 say. If this be the case, he deserves you. I could not have parted with
12661 you, my Lizzy, to anyone less worthy."
12662
12663 To complete the favourable impression, she then told him what Mr. Darcy
12664 had voluntarily done for Lydia. He heard her with astonishment.
12665
12666 "This is an evening of wonders, indeed! And so, Darcy did every thing;
12667 made up the match, gave the money, paid the fellow's debts, and got him
12668 his commission! So much the better. It will save me a world of trouble
12669 and economy. Had it been your uncle's doing, I must and _would_ have
12670 paid him; but these violent young lovers carry every thing their own
12671 way. I shall offer to pay him to-morrow; he will rant and storm about
12672 his love for you, and there will be an end of the matter."
12673
12674 He then recollected her embarrassment a few days before, on his reading
12675 Mr. Collins's letter; and after laughing at her some time, allowed her
12676 at last to go--saying, as she quitted the room, "If any young men come
12677 for Mary or Kitty, send them in, for I am quite at leisure."
12678
12679 Elizabeth's mind was now relieved from a very heavy weight; and, after
12680 half an hour's quiet reflection in her own room, she was able to join
12681 the others with tolerable composure. Every thing was too recent for
12682 gaiety, but the evening passed tranquilly away; there was no longer
12683 anything material to be dreaded, and the comfort of ease and familiarity
12684 would come in time.
12685
12686 When her mother went up to her dressing-room at night, she followed her,
12687 and made the important communication. Its effect was most extraordinary;
12688 for on first hearing it, Mrs. Bennet sat quite still, and unable to
12689 utter a syllable. Nor was it under many, many minutes that she could
12690 comprehend what she heard; though not in general backward to credit
12691 what was for the advantage of her family, or that came in the shape of a
12692 lover to any of them. She began at length to recover, to fidget about in
12693 her chair, get up, sit down again, wonder, and bless herself.
12694
12695 "Good gracious! Lord bless me! only think! dear me! Mr. Darcy! Who would
12696 have thought it! And is it really true? Oh! my sweetest Lizzy! how rich
12697 and how great you will be! What pin-money, what jewels, what carriages
12698 you will have! Jane's is nothing to it--nothing at all. I am so
12699 pleased--so happy. Such a charming man!--so handsome! so tall!--Oh, my
12700 dear Lizzy! pray apologise for my having disliked him so much before. I
12701 hope he will overlook it. Dear, dear Lizzy. A house in town! Every thing
12702 that is charming! Three daughters married! Ten thousand a year! Oh,
12703 Lord! What will become of me. I shall go distracted."
12704
12705 This was enough to prove that her approbation need not be doubted: and
12706 Elizabeth, rejoicing that such an effusion was heard only by herself,
12707 soon went away. But before she had been three minutes in her own room,
12708 her mother followed her.
12709
12710 "My dearest child," she cried, "I can think of nothing else! Ten
12711 thousand a year, and very likely more! 'Tis as good as a Lord! And a
12712 special licence. You must and shall be married by a special licence. But
12713 my dearest love, tell me what dish Mr. Darcy is particularly fond of,
12714 that I may have it to-morrow."
12715
12716 This was a sad omen of what her mother's behaviour to the gentleman
12717 himself might be; and Elizabeth found that, though in the certain
12718 possession of his warmest affection, and secure of her relations'
12719 consent, there was still something to be wished for. But the morrow
12720 passed off much better than she expected; for Mrs. Bennet luckily stood
12721 in such awe of her intended son-in-law that she ventured not to speak to
12722 him, unless it was in her power to offer him any attention, or mark her
12723 deference for his opinion.
12724
12725 Elizabeth had the satisfaction of seeing her father taking pains to get
12726 acquainted with him; and Mr. Bennet soon assured her that he was rising
12727 every hour in his esteem.
12728
12729 "I admire all my three sons-in-law highly," said he. "Wickham, perhaps,
12730 is my favourite; but I think I shall like _your_ husband quite as well
12731 as Jane's."
12732
12733
12734
12735 Chapter 60
12736
12737
12738 Elizabeth's spirits soon rising to playfulness again, she wanted Mr.
12739 Darcy to account for his having ever fallen in love with her. "How could
12740 you begin?" said she. "I can comprehend your going on charmingly, when
12741 you had once made a beginning; but what could set you off in the first
12742 place?"
12743
12744 "I cannot fix on the hour, or the spot, or the look, or the words, which
12745 laid the foundation. It is too long ago. I was in the middle before I
12746 knew that I _had_ begun."
12747
12748 "My beauty you had early withstood, and as for my manners--my behaviour
12749 to _you_ was at least always bordering on the uncivil, and I never spoke
12750 to you without rather wishing to give you pain than not. Now be sincere;
12751 did you admire me for my impertinence?"
12752
12753 "For the liveliness of your mind, I did."
12754
12755 "You may as well call it impertinence at once. It was very little less.
12756 The fact is, that you were sick of civility, of deference, of officious
12757 attention. You were disgusted with the women who were always speaking,
12758 and looking, and thinking for _your_ approbation alone. I roused, and
12759 interested you, because I was so unlike _them_. Had you not been really
12760 amiable, you would have hated me for it; but in spite of the pains you
12761 took to disguise yourself, your feelings were always noble and just; and
12762 in your heart, you thoroughly despised the persons who so assiduously
12763 courted you. There--I have saved you the trouble of accounting for
12764 it; and really, all things considered, I begin to think it perfectly
12765 reasonable. To be sure, you knew no actual good of me--but nobody thinks
12766 of _that_ when they fall in love."
12767
12768 "Was there no good in your affectionate behaviour to Jane while she was
12769 ill at Netherfield?"
12770
12771 "Dearest Jane! who could have done less for her? But make a virtue of it
12772 by all means. My good qualities are under your protection, and you are
12773 to exaggerate them as much as possible; and, in return, it belongs to me
12774 to find occasions for teasing and quarrelling with you as often as may
12775 be; and I shall begin directly by asking you what made you so unwilling
12776 to come to the point at last. What made you so shy of me, when you first
12777 called, and afterwards dined here? Why, especially, when you called, did
12778 you look as if you did not care about me?"
12779
12780 "Because you were grave and silent, and gave me no encouragement."
12781
12782 "But I was embarrassed."
12783
12784 "And so was I."
12785
12786 "You might have talked to me more when you came to dinner."
12787
12788 "A man who had felt less, might."
12789
12790 "How unlucky that you should have a reasonable answer to give, and that
12791 I should be so reasonable as to admit it! But I wonder how long you
12792 _would_ have gone on, if you had been left to yourself. I wonder when
12793 you _would_ have spoken, if I had not asked you! My resolution of
12794 thanking you for your kindness to Lydia had certainly great effect.
12795 _Too much_, I am afraid; for what becomes of the moral, if our comfort
12796 springs from a breach of promise? for I ought not to have mentioned the
12797 subject. This will never do."
12798
12799 "You need not distress yourself. The moral will be perfectly fair. Lady
12800 Catherine's unjustifiable endeavours to separate us were the means of
12801 removing all my doubts. I am not indebted for my present happiness to
12802 your eager desire of expressing your gratitude. I was not in a humour
12803 to wait for any opening of yours. My aunt's intelligence had given me
12804 hope, and I was determined at once to know every thing."
12805
12806 "Lady Catherine has been of infinite use, which ought to make her happy,
12807 for she loves to be of use. But tell me, what did you come down to
12808 Netherfield for? Was it merely to ride to Longbourn and be embarrassed?
12809 or had you intended any more serious consequence?"
12810
12811 "My real purpose was to see _you_, and to judge, if I could, whether I
12812 might ever hope to make you love me. My avowed one, or what I avowed to
12813 myself, was to see whether your sister were still partial to Bingley,
12814 and if she were, to make the confession to him which I have since made."
12815
12816 "Shall you ever have courage to announce to Lady Catherine what is to
12817 befall her?"
12818
12819 "I am more likely to want more time than courage, Elizabeth. But it
12820 ought to be done, and if you will give me a sheet of paper, it shall be
12821 done directly."
12822
12823 "And if I had not a letter to write myself, I might sit by you and
12824 admire the evenness of your writing, as another young lady once did. But
12825 I have an aunt, too, who must not be longer neglected."
12826
12827 From an unwillingness to confess how much her intimacy with Mr. Darcy
12828 had been over-rated, Elizabeth had never yet answered Mrs. Gardiner's
12829 long letter; but now, having _that_ to communicate which she knew would
12830 be most welcome, she was almost ashamed to find that her uncle and
12831 aunt had already lost three days of happiness, and immediately wrote as
12832 follows:
12833
12834 "I would have thanked you before, my dear aunt, as I ought to have done,
12835 for your long, kind, satisfactory, detail of particulars; but to say the
12836 truth, I was too cross to write. You supposed more than really existed.
12837 But _now_ suppose as much as you choose; give a loose rein to your
12838 fancy, indulge your imagination in every possible flight which the
12839 subject will afford, and unless you believe me actually married, you
12840 cannot greatly err. You must write again very soon, and praise him a
12841 great deal more than you did in your last. I thank you, again and again,
12842 for not going to the Lakes. How could I be so silly as to wish it! Your
12843 idea of the ponies is delightful. We will go round the Park every day. I
12844 am the happiest creature in the world. Perhaps other people have said so
12845 before, but not one with such justice. I am happier even than Jane; she
12846 only smiles, I laugh. Mr. Darcy sends you all the love in the world that
12847 he can spare from me. You are all to come to Pemberley at Christmas.
12848 Yours, etc."
12849
12850 Mr. Darcy's letter to Lady Catherine was in a different style; and still
12851 different from either was what Mr. Bennet sent to Mr. Collins, in reply
12852 to his last.
12853
12854 "DEAR SIR,
12855
12856 "I must trouble you once more for congratulations. Elizabeth will soon
12857 be the wife of Mr. Darcy. Console Lady Catherine as well as you can.
12858 But, if I were you, I would stand by the nephew. He has more to give.
12859
12860 "Yours sincerely, etc."
12861
12862 Miss Bingley's congratulations to her brother, on his approaching
12863 marriage, were all that was affectionate and insincere. She wrote even
12864 to Jane on the occasion, to express her delight, and repeat all her
12865 former professions of regard. Jane was not deceived, but she was
12866 affected; and though feeling no reliance on her, could not help writing
12867 her a much kinder answer than she knew was deserved.
12868
12869 The joy which Miss Darcy expressed on receiving similar information,
12870 was as sincere as her brother's in sending it. Four sides of paper were
12871 insufficient to contain all her delight, and all her earnest desire of
12872 being loved by her sister.
12873
12874 Before any answer could arrive from Mr. Collins, or any congratulations
12875 to Elizabeth from his wife, the Longbourn family heard that the
12876 Collinses were come themselves to Lucas Lodge. The reason of this
12877 sudden removal was soon evident. Lady Catherine had been rendered
12878 so exceedingly angry by the contents of her nephew's letter, that
12879 Charlotte, really rejoicing in the match, was anxious to get away till
12880 the storm was blown over. At such a moment, the arrival of her friend
12881 was a sincere pleasure to Elizabeth, though in the course of their
12882 meetings she must sometimes think the pleasure dearly bought, when she
12883 saw Mr. Darcy exposed to all the parading and obsequious civility of
12884 her husband. He bore it, however, with admirable calmness. He could even
12885 listen to Sir William Lucas, when he complimented him on carrying away
12886 the brightest jewel of the country, and expressed his hopes of their all
12887 meeting frequently at St. James's, with very decent composure. If he did
12888 shrug his shoulders, it was not till Sir William was out of sight.
12889
12890 Mrs. Phillips's vulgarity was another, and perhaps a greater, tax on his
12891 forbearance; and though Mrs. Phillips, as well as her sister, stood in
12892 too much awe of him to speak with the familiarity which Bingley's good
12893 humour encouraged, yet, whenever she _did_ speak, she must be vulgar.
12894 Nor was her respect for him, though it made her more quiet, at all
12895 likely to make her more elegant. Elizabeth did all she could to shield
12896 him from the frequent notice of either, and was ever anxious to keep
12897 him to herself, and to those of her family with whom he might converse
12898 without mortification; and though the uncomfortable feelings arising
12899 from all this took from the season of courtship much of its pleasure, it
12900 added to the hope of the future; and she looked forward with delight to
12901 the time when they should be removed from society so little pleasing
12902 to either, to all the comfort and elegance of their family party at
12903 Pemberley.
12904
12905
12906
12907 Chapter 61
12908
12909
12910 Happy for all her maternal feelings was the day on which Mrs. Bennet got
12911 rid of her two most deserving daughters. With what delighted pride
12912 she afterwards visited Mrs. Bingley, and talked of Mrs. Darcy, may
12913 be guessed. I wish I could say, for the sake of her family, that the
12914 accomplishment of her earnest desire in the establishment of so many
12915 of her children produced so happy an effect as to make her a sensible,
12916 amiable, well-informed woman for the rest of her life; though perhaps it
12917 was lucky for her husband, who might not have relished domestic felicity
12918 in so unusual a form, that she still was occasionally nervous and
12919 invariably silly.
12920
12921 Mr. Bennet missed his second daughter exceedingly; his affection for her
12922 drew him oftener from home than anything else could do. He delighted in
12923 going to Pemberley, especially when he was least expected.
12924
12925 Mr. Bingley and Jane remained at Netherfield only a twelvemonth. So near
12926 a vicinity to her mother and Meryton relations was not desirable even to
12927 _his_ easy temper, or _her_ affectionate heart. The darling wish of his
12928 sisters was then gratified; he bought an estate in a neighbouring county
12929 to Derbyshire, and Jane and Elizabeth, in addition to every other source
12930 of happiness, were within thirty miles of each other.
12931
12932 Kitty, to her very material advantage, spent the chief of her time with
12933 her two elder sisters. In society so superior to what she had generally
12934 known, her improvement was great. She was not of so ungovernable a
12935 temper as Lydia; and, removed from the influence of Lydia's example,
12936 she became, by proper attention and management, less irritable, less
12937 ignorant, and less insipid. From the further disadvantage of Lydia's
12938 society she was of course carefully kept, and though Mrs. Wickham
12939 frequently invited her to come and stay with her, with the promise of
12940 balls and young men, her father would never consent to her going.
12941
12942 Mary was the only daughter who remained at home; and she was necessarily
12943 drawn from the pursuit of accomplishments by Mrs. Bennet's being quite
12944 unable to sit alone. Mary was obliged to mix more with the world, but
12945 she could still moralize over every morning visit; and as she was no
12946 longer mortified by comparisons between her sisters' beauty and her own,
12947 it was suspected by her father that she submitted to the change without
12948 much reluctance.
12949
12950 As for Wickham and Lydia, their characters suffered no revolution from
12951 the marriage of her sisters. He bore with philosophy the conviction that
12952 Elizabeth must now become acquainted with whatever of his ingratitude
12953 and falsehood had before been unknown to her; and in spite of every
12954 thing, was not wholly without hope that Darcy might yet be prevailed on
12955 to make his fortune. The congratulatory letter which Elizabeth received
12956 from Lydia on her marriage, explained to her that, by his wife at least,
12957 if not by himself, such a hope was cherished. The letter was to this
12958 effect:
12959
12960 "MY DEAR LIZZY,
12961
12962 "I wish you joy. If you love Mr. Darcy half as well as I do my dear
12963 Wickham, you must be very happy. It is a great comfort to have you so
12964 rich, and when you have nothing else to do, I hope you will think of us.
12965 I am sure Wickham would like a place at court very much, and I do not
12966 think we shall have quite money enough to live upon without some help.
12967 Any place would do, of about three or four hundred a year; but however,
12968 do not speak to Mr. Darcy about it, if you had rather not.
12969
12970 "Yours, etc."
12971
12972 As it happened that Elizabeth had _much_ rather not, she endeavoured in
12973 her answer to put an end to every entreaty and expectation of the kind.
12974 Such relief, however, as it was in her power to afford, by the practice
12975 of what might be called economy in her own private expences, she
12976 frequently sent them. It had always been evident to her that such an
12977 income as theirs, under the direction of two persons so extravagant in
12978 their wants, and heedless of the future, must be very insufficient to
12979 their support; and whenever they changed their quarters, either Jane or
12980 herself were sure of being applied to for some little assistance
12981 towards discharging their bills. Their manner of living, even when the
12982 restoration of peace dismissed them to a home, was unsettled in the
12983 extreme. They were always moving from place to place in quest of a cheap
12984 situation, and always spending more than they ought. His affection for
12985 her soon sunk into indifference; hers lasted a little longer; and
12986 in spite of her youth and her manners, she retained all the claims to
12987 reputation which her marriage had given her.
12988
12989 Though Darcy could never receive _him_ at Pemberley, yet, for
12990 Elizabeth's sake, he assisted him further in his profession. Lydia was
12991 occasionally a visitor there, when her husband was gone to enjoy himself
12992 in London or Bath; and with the Bingleys they both of them frequently
12993 staid so long, that even Bingley's good humour was overcome, and he
12994 proceeded so far as to talk of giving them a hint to be gone.
12995
12996 Miss Bingley was very deeply mortified by Darcy's marriage; but as she
12997 thought it advisable to retain the right of visiting at Pemberley, she
12998 dropt all her resentment; was fonder than ever of Georgiana, almost as
12999 attentive to Darcy as heretofore, and paid off every arrear of civility
13000 to Elizabeth.
13001
13002 Pemberley was now Georgiana's home; and the attachment of the sisters
13003 was exactly what Darcy had hoped to see. They were able to love each
13004 other even as well as they intended. Georgiana had the highest opinion
13005 in the world of Elizabeth; though at first she often listened with
13006 an astonishment bordering on alarm at her lively, sportive, manner of
13007 talking to her brother. He, who had always inspired in herself a respect
13008 which almost overcame her affection, she now saw the object of open
13009 pleasantry. Her mind received knowledge which had never before fallen
13010 in her way. By Elizabeth's instructions, she began to comprehend that
13011 a woman may take liberties with her husband which a brother will not
13012 always allow in a sister more than ten years younger than himself.
13013
13014 Lady Catherine was extremely indignant on the marriage of her nephew;
13015 and as she gave way to all the genuine frankness of her character in
13016 her reply to the letter which announced its arrangement, she sent him
13017 language so very abusive, especially of Elizabeth, that for some time
13018 all intercourse was at an end. But at length, by Elizabeth's persuasion,
13019 he was prevailed on to overlook the offence, and seek a reconciliation;
13020 and, after a little further resistance on the part of his aunt, her
13021 resentment gave way, either to her affection for him, or her curiosity
13022 to see how his wife conducted herself; and she condescended to wait
13023 on them at Pemberley, in spite of that pollution which its woods had
13024 received, not merely from the presence of such a mistress, but the
13025 visits of her uncle and aunt from the city.
13026
13027 With the Gardiners, they were always on the most intimate terms.
13028 Darcy, as well as Elizabeth, really loved them; and they were both ever
13029 sensible of the warmest gratitude towards the persons who, by bringing
13030 her into Derbyshire, had been the means of uniting them.
13031